Quotations.ch
  Directory : The Strange Case Of Dr. Jekyll And Mr. Hyde
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Works of Robert Louis Stevenson -
  • Swanston Edition Vol. 5 (of 25), by Robert Louis Stevenson
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: The Works of Robert Louis Stevenson - Swanston Edition Vol. 5 (of 25)
  • Author: Robert Louis Stevenson
  • Other: Andrew Lang
  • Release Date: December 23, 2009 [EBook #30744]
  • Language: English
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WORKS OF STEVENSON ***
  • Produced by Marius Masi, Jonathan Ingram and the Online
  • Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
  • THE WORKS OF
  • ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON
  • SWANSTON EDITION
  • VOLUME V
  • _Of this SWANSTON EDITION in Twenty-five
  • Volumes of the Works of ROBERT LOUIS
  • STEVENSON Two Thousand and Sixty Copies
  • have been printed, of which only Two Thousand
  • Copies are for sale._
  • _This is No._ ........
  • [Illustration: 8 HOWARD PLACE, EDINBURGH, BIRTHPLACE OF R. L. S. IN 1850]
  • THE WORKS OF
  • ROBERT LOUIS
  • STEVENSON
  • VOLUME FIVE
  • LONDON: PUBLISHED BY CHATTO AND
  • WINDUS: IN ASSOCIATION WITH CASSELL
  • AND COMPANY LIMITED: WILLIAM
  • HEINEMANN: AND LONGMANS GREEN
  • AND COMPANY MDCCCCXI
  • ALL RIGHTS RESERVED
  • CONTENTS
  • MORE NEW ARABIAN NIGHTS
  • THE DYNAMITER
  • PAGE
  • PROLOGUE OF THE CIGAR DIVAN 7
  • CHALLONER'S ADVENTURE
  • THE SQUIRE OF DAMES 15
  • STORY OF THE DESTROYING ANGEL 24
  • THE SQUIRE OF DAMES (_concluded_) 57
  • SOMERSET'S ADVENTURE
  • THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION 73
  • NARRATIVE OF THE SPIRITED OLD LADY 78
  • THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION (_continued_) 104
  • ZERO'S TALE OF THE EXPLOSIVE BOMB 130
  • THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION (_continued_) 139
  • DESBOROUGH'S ADVENTURE
  • THE BROWN BOX 149
  • STORY OF THE FAIR CUBAN 155
  • THE BROWN BOX (_concluded_) 190
  • THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION (_concluded_) 202
  • EPILOGUE OF THE CIGAR DIVAN 212
  • STRANGE CASE OF DR. JEKYLL AND MR. HYDE
  • STORY OF THE DOOR 227
  • SEARCH FOR MR. HYDE 234
  • DR. JEKYLL WAS QUITE AT EASE 243
  • THE CAREW MURDER CASE 246
  • INCIDENT OF THE LETTER 251
  • REMARKABLE INCIDENT OF DR. LANYON 256
  • INCIDENT AT THE WINDOW 261
  • THE LAST NIGHT 263
  • DR. LANYON'S NARRATIVE 276
  • HENRY JEKYLL'S FULL STATEMENT OF THE CASE 284
  • THRAWN JANET 305
  • MORE NEW ARABIAN NIGHTS
  • THE DYNAMITER
  • WRITTEN IN COLLABORATION WITH MRS. STEVENSON
  • _TO
  • MESSRS. COLE AND COX_
  • _POLICE OFFICERS_
  • _Gentlemen,_
  • _In the volume now in your hands, the authors have touched upon that
  • ugly devil of crime, with which it is your glory to have contended. It
  • were a waste of ink to do so in a serious spirit. Let us dedicate our
  • horror to acts of a more mingled strain, where crime preserves some
  • features of nobility, and where reason and humanity can still relish the
  • temptation. Horror, in this case, is due to Mr. Parnell: he sits before
  • posterity silent, Mr. Forster's appeal echoing down the ages. Horror is
  • due to ourselves, in that we have so long coquetted with political
  • crime; not seriously weighing, not acutely following it from cause to
  • consequence; but with a generous, unfounded heat of sentiment, like the
  • schoolboy with the penny tale, applauding what was specious. When it
  • touched ourselves (truly in a vile shape), we proved false to these
  • imaginations; discovered, in a clap, that crime was no less cruel and no
  • less ugly under sounding names; and recoiled from our false deities._
  • _But seriousness comes most in place when we are to speak of our
  • defenders. Whoever be in the right in this great and confused war of
  • politics; whatever elements of greed, whatever traits of the bully,
  • dishonour both parties in this inhuman contest;--your side, your part,
  • is at least pure of doubt. Yours is the side of the child, of the
  • breeding woman, of individual pity and public trust. If our society were
  • the mere kingdom of the devil (as indeed it wears some of his colours),
  • it yet embraces many precious elements and many innocent persons whom
  • it_ _is a glory to defend. Courage and devotion, so common in the ranks
  • of the police, so little recognised, so meagrely rewarded, have at
  • length found their commemoration in an historical act. History, which
  • will represent Mr. Parnell sitting silent under the appeal of Mr.
  • Forster, and Gordon setting forth upon his tragic enterprise, will not
  • forget Mr. Cole carrying the dynamite in his defenceless hands, nor Mr.
  • Cox coming coolly to his aid._
  • _ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
  • FANNY VAN DE GRIFT STEVENSON._
  • _A NOTE FOR THE READER_
  • _It is within the bounds of possibility that you may take up this
  • volume, and yet be unacquainted with its predecessor: the first series
  • of_ NEW ARABIAN NIGHTS. _The loss is yours--and mine; or, to be more
  • exact, my publishers'. But if you are thus unlucky, the least I can do
  • is to pass you a hint. When you shall find a reference in the following
  • pages to one Theophilus Godall of the Bohemian Cigar Divan in Rupert
  • Street, Soho, you must be prepared to recognise under his features no
  • less a person than Prince Florizel of Bohemia, formerly one of the
  • magnates of Europe, now dethroned, exiled, impoverished, and embarked in
  • the tobacco trade._
  • _R. L. S._
  • MORE NEW ARABIAN NIGHTS
  • THE DYNAMITER
  • PROLOGUE OF THE CIGAR DIVAN
  • In the city of encounters, the Bagdad of the West, and, to be more
  • precise, on the broad northern pavement of Leicester Square, two young
  • men of five- or six-and-twenty met after years of separation. The first,
  • who was of a very smooth address, and clothed in the best fashion,
  • hesitated to recognise the pinched and shabby air of his companion.
  • "What!" he cried, "Paul Somerset!"
  • "I am indeed Paul Somerset," returned the other, "or what remains of him
  • after a well-deserved experience of poverty and law. But in you,
  • Challoner, I can perceive no change; and time may be said, without
  • hyperbole, to write no wrinkle on your azure brow."
  • "All," replied Challoner, "is not gold that glitters. But we are here in
  • an ill posture for confidences, and interrupt the movement of these
  • ladies. Let us, if you please, find a more private corner."
  • "If you will allow me to guide you," replied Somerset, "I will offer you
  • the best cigar in London."
  • And taking the arm of his companion, he led him in silence and at a
  • brisk pace to the door of a quiet establishment in Rupert Street, Soho.
  • The entrance was adorned with one of those gigantic Highlanders of wood
  • which have almost risen to the standing of antiquities; and across the
  • window-glass, which sheltered the usual display of pipes, tobacco, and
  • cigars, there ran the gilded legend: "Bohemian Cigar Divan, by T.
  • Godall." The interior of the shop was small, but commodious and ornate;
  • the salesman grave, smiling, and urbane; and the two young men, each
  • puffing a select regalia, had soon taken their places on a sofa of
  • mouse-coloured plush, and proceeded to exchange their stories.
  • "I am now," said Somerset, "a barrister; but Providence and the
  • attorneys have hitherto denied me the opportunity to shine. A select
  • society at the Cheshire Cheese engaged my evenings; my afternoons, as
  • Mr. Godall could testify, have been generally passed in this divan; and
  • my mornings, I have taken the precaution to abbreviate by not rising
  • before twelve. At this rate, my little patrimony was very rapidly and, I
  • am proud to remember, most agreeably expended. Since then a gentleman,
  • who has really nothing else to recommend him beyond the fact of being my
  • maternal uncle, deals me the small sum of ten shillings a week; and if
  • you behold me once more revisiting the glimpses of the street lamps in
  • my favourite quarter, you will readily divine that I have come into a
  • fortune."
  • "I should not have supposed so," replied Challoner. "But doubtless I met
  • you on the way to your tailors."
  • "It is a visit that I purpose to delay," returned Somerset, with a
  • smile. "My fortune has definite limits. It consists, or rather this
  • morning it consisted, of one hundred pounds."
  • "That is certainly odd," said Challoner; "yes, certainly the coincidence
  • is strange. I am myself reduced to the same margin."
  • "You!" cried Somerset. "And yet Solomon in all his glory----"
  • "Such is the fact. I am, dear boy, on my last legs," said Challoner.
  • "Besides the clothes in which you see me, I have scarcely a decent
  • trouser in my wardrobe; and if I knew how, I would this instant set
  • about some sort of work or commerce. With a hundred pounds for capital,
  • a man should push his way."
  • "It may be," returned Somerset; "but what to do with mine is more than I
  • can fancy.--Mr. Godall," he added, addressing the salesman, "you are a
  • man who knows the world: what can a young fellow of reasonable education
  • do with a hundred pounds?"
  • "It depends," replied the salesman, withdrawing his cheroot. "The power
  • of money is an article of faith in which I profess myself a sceptic. A
  • hundred pounds will with difficulty support you for a year; with
  • somewhat more difficulty you may spend it in a night; and without any
  • difficulty at all you may lose it in five minutes on the Stock Exchange.
  • If you are of that stamp of man that rises, a penny would be as useful;
  • if you belong to those that fall, a penny would be no more useless. When
  • I was myself thrown unexpectedly upon the world, it was my fortune to
  • possess an art: I knew a good cigar. Do you know nothing, Mr. Somerset?"
  • "Not even law," was the reply.
  • "The answer is worthy of a sage," returned Mr. Godall.--"And you, sir,"
  • he continued, turning to Challoner, "as the friend of Mr. Somerset, may
  • I be allowed to address you the same question?"
  • "Well," replied Challoner, "I play a fair hand at whist."
  • "How many persons are there in London," returned the salesman, "who have
  • two-and-thirty teeth? Believe me, young gentleman, there are more still
  • who play a fair hand at whist. Whist, sir, is wide as the world; 'tis an
  • accomplishment like breathing. I once knew a youth who announced that he
  • was studying to be Chancellor of England; the design was certainly
  • ambitious; but I find it less excessive than that of the man who aspires
  • to make a livelihood by whist."
  • "Dear me," said Challoner, "I am afraid I shall have to fall to be a
  • working man."
  • "Fall to be a working man?" echoed Mr. Godall. "Suppose a rural dean to
  • be unfrocked, does he fall to be a major? suppose a captain were
  • cashiered, would he fall to be a puisne judge? The ignorance of your
  • middle class surprises me. Outside itself, it thinks the world to lie
  • quite ignorant and equal, sunk in a common degradation; but to the eye
  • of the observer, all ranks are seen to stand in ordered hierarchies, and
  • each adorned with its particular aptitudes and knowledge. By the defects
  • of your education you are more disqualified to be a working man than to
  • be the ruler of an empire. The gulf, sir, is below; and the true learned
  • arts--those which alone are safe from the competition of insurgent
  • laymen--are those which give his title to the artisan."
  • "This is a very pompous fellow," said Challoner in the ear of his
  • companion.
  • "He is immense," said Somerset.
  • Just then the door of the divan was opened, and a third young fellow
  • made his appearance, and rather bashfully requested some tobacco. He was
  • younger than the others; and, in a somewhat meaningless and altogether
  • English way, he was a handsome lad. When he had been served, and had
  • lighted his pipe and taken his place upon the sofa, he recalled himself
  • to Challoner by the name of Desborough.
  • "Desborough, to be sure," cried Challoner. "Well, Desborough, and what
  • do you do?"
  • "The fact is," said Desborough, "that I am doing nothing."
  • "A private fortune, possibly?" inquired the other.
  • "Well, no," replied Desborough, rather sulkily. "The fact is that I am
  • waiting for something to turn up."
  • "All in the same boat!" cried Somerset. "And have you, too, one hundred
  • pounds?"
  • "Worse luck," said Mr. Desborough.
  • "This is a very pathetic sight, Mr. Godall," said Somerset: "three
  • futiles."
  • "A character of this crowded age," returned the salesman.
  • "Sir," said Somerset, "I deny that the age is crowded; I will admit one
  • fact, and one fact only: that I am futile, that he is futile, and that
  • we are all three as futile as the devil. What am I? I have smattered
  • law, smattered letters, smattered geography, smattered mathematics; I
  • have even a working knowledge of judicial astrology; and here I stand,
  • all London roaring by at the street's end, as impotent as any baby. I
  • have a prodigious contempt for my maternal uncle; but without him, it is
  • idle to deny it, I should simply resolve into my elements like an
  • unstable mixture. I begin to perceive that it is necessary to know some
  • one thing to the bottom--were it only literature. And yet, sir, the man
  • of the world is a great feature of this age; he is possessed of an
  • extraordinary mass and variety of knowledge; he is everywhere at home;
  • he has seen life in all its phases; and it is impossible but that this
  • great habit of existence should bear fruit. I count myself a man of the
  • world, accomplished, _cap-à-pie_. So do you, Challoner. And you, Mr.
  • Desborough?"
  • "Oh yes," returned the young man.
  • "Well, then, Mr. Godall, here we stand, three men of the world, without
  • a trade to cover us, but planted at the strategic centre of the universe
  • (for so you will allow me to call Rupert Street), in the midst of the
  • chief mass of people, and within earshot of the most continuous chink of
  • money on the surface of the globe. Sir, as civilised men, what do we do?
  • I will show you. You take in a paper?"
  • "I take," said Mr. Godall solemnly, "the best paper in the world, the
  • _Standard_."
  • "Good," resumed Somerset. "I now hold it in my hand, the voice of the
  • world, a telephone repeating all men's wants. I open it, and where my
  • eye first falls--well, no, not Morrison's Pills--but here, sure enough,
  • and but a little above, I find the joint that I was seeking; here is the
  • weak spot in the armour of society. Here is a want, a plaint, an offer
  • of substantial gratitude: '_Two Hundred Pounds Reward_.--The above
  • reward will be paid to any person giving information as to the identity
  • and whereabouts of a man observed yesterday in the neighbourhood of the
  • Green Park. He was over six feet in height, with shoulders
  • disproportionately broad, close shaved, with black moustaches, and
  • wearing a sealskin great-coat.' There, gentlemen, our fortune, if not
  • made, is founded."
  • "Do you then propose, dear boy, that we should turn detectives?"
  • inquired Challoner.
  • "Do I propose it? No, sir," cried Somerset. "It is reason, destiny, the
  • plain face of the world, that commands and imposes it. Here all our
  • merits tell; our manners, habit of the world, powers of conversation,
  • vast stores of unconnected knowledge, all that we are and have builds up
  • the character of the complete detective. It is, in short, the only
  • profession for a gentleman."
  • "The proposition is perhaps excessive," replied Challoner; "for hitherto
  • I own I have regarded it as of all dirty, sneaking, and ungentlemanly
  • trades, the least and lowest."
  • "To defend society?" asked Somerset; "to stake one's life for others? to
  • deracinate occult and powerful evil? I appeal to Mr. Godall. He, at
  • least, as a philosophic looker-on at life, will spit upon such
  • philistine opinions. He knows that the policeman, as he is called upon
  • continually to face greater odds, and that both worse equipped and for a
  • better cause, is in form and essence a more noble hero than the soldier.
  • Do you, by any chance, deceive yourself into supposing that a general
  • would either ask or expect, from the best army ever marshalled, and on
  • the most momentous battlefield, the conduct of a common constable at
  • Peckham Rye?"[1]
  • "I did not understand we were to join the force," said Challoner.
  • "Nor shall we. These are the hands; but here--here, sir, is the head,"
  • cried Somerset. "Enough; it is decreed. We shall hunt down this
  • miscreant in the sealskin coat."
  • "Suppose that we agreed," retorted Challoner, "you have no plan, no
  • knowledge; you know not where to seek for a beginning."
  • "Challoner!" cried Somerset, "is it possible that you hold the doctrine
  • of Free Will? And are you devoid of any tincture of philosophy, that you
  • should harp on such exploded fallacies? Chance, the blind Madonna of the
  • Pagan, rules this terrestrial bustle; and in Chance I place my sole
  • reliance. Chance has brought us three together; when we next separate
  • and go forth our several ways, Chance will continually drag before our
  • careless eyes a thousand eloquent clues, not to this mystery only, but
  • to the countless mysteries by which we live surrounded. Then comes the
  • part of the man of the world, of the detective born and bred. This clue,
  • which the whole town beholds without comprehension, swift as a cat, he
  • leaps upon it, makes it his, follows it with craft and passion, and from
  • one trifling circumstance divines a world."
  • "Just so," said Challoner; "and I am delighted that you should recognise
  • these virtues in yourself. But in the meanwhile, dear boy, I own myself
  • incapable of joining. I was neither born nor bred as a detective, but as
  • a placable and very thirsty gentleman; and, for my part, I begin to
  • weary for a drink. As for clues and adventures, the only adventure that
  • is ever likely to occur to me will be an adventure with a bailiff."
  • "Now there is the fallacy," cried Somerset. "There I catch the secret of
  • your futility in life. The world teems and bubbles with adventure; it
  • besieges you along the streets; hands waving out of windows, swindlers
  • coming up and swearing they knew you when you were abroad, affable and
  • doubtful people of all sorts and conditions begging and truckling for
  • your notice. But not you: you turn away, you walk your seedy mill round,
  • you must go the dullest way. Now here, I beg of you, the next adventure
  • that offers itself, embrace it in with both your arms; whatever it
  • looks, grimy or romantic, grasp it. I will do the like; the devil is in
  • it, but at least we shall have fun; and each in turn we shall narrate
  • the story of our fortunes to my philosophic friend of the divan, the
  • great Godall, now hearing me with inward joy. Come, is it a bargain?
  • Will you, indeed, both promise to welcome every chance that offers, to
  • plunge boldly into every opening, and, keeping the eye wary and the head
  • composed, to study and piece together all that happens? Come, promise:
  • let me open to you the doors of the great profession of intrigue."
  • "It is not much in my way," said Challoner, "but, since you make a point
  • of it, amen."
  • "I don't mind promising," said Desborough, "but nothing will happen to
  • me."
  • "O faithless ones!" cried Somerset. "But at least I have your promises;
  • and Godall, I perceive, is transported with delight."
  • "I promise myself at least much pleasure from your various narratives,"
  • said the salesman, with the customary calm polish of his manner.
  • "And now, gentlemen," concluded Somerset, "let us separate. I hasten to
  • put myself in fortune's way. Hark how, in this quiet corner, London
  • roars like the noise of battle; four million destinies are here
  • concentred; and in the strong panoply of one hundred pounds, payable to
  • the bearer, I am about to plunge into that web."
  • FOOTNOTE:
  • [1] Hereupon the Arabian author enters on one of his digressions.
  • Fearing, apparently, that the somewhat eccentric views of Mr.
  • Somerset should throw discredit on a part of truth, he calls upon
  • the English people to remember with more gratitude the services of
  • the police; to what unobserved and solitary acts of heroism they are
  • called; against what odds of numbers and of arms, and for how small
  • a reward, either in fame or money: matter, it has appeared to the
  • translators, too serious for this place.
  • CHALLONER'S ADVENTURE:
  • THE SQUIRE OF DAMES
  • Mr. Edward Challoner had set up lodgings in the suburb of Putney, where
  • he enjoyed a parlour and bedroom and the sincere esteem of the people of
  • the house. To this remote home he found himself, at a very early hour in
  • the morning of the next day, condemned to set forth on foot. He was a
  • young man of a portly habit; no lover of the exercises of the body;
  • bland, sedentary, patient of delay, a prop of omnibuses. In happier days
  • he would have chartered a cab; but these luxuries were now denied him;
  • and with what courage he could muster he addressed himself to walk.
  • It was then the height of the season and the summer; the weather was
  • serene and cloudless; and as he paced under the blinded houses and along
  • the vacant streets, the chill of the dawn had fled, and some of the
  • warmth and all the brightness of the July day already shone upon the
  • city. He walked at first in a profound abstraction, bitterly reviewing
  • and repenting his performances at whist; but as he advanced into the
  • labyrinth of the south-west, his ear was gradually mastered by the
  • silence. Street after street looked down upon his solitary figure, house
  • after house echoed upon his passage with a ghostly jar, shop after shop
  • displayed its shuttered front and its commercial legend; and meanwhile
  • he steered his course, under day's effulgent dome and through this
  • encampment of diurnal sleepers, lonely as a ship.
  • "Here," he reflected, "if I were like my scatter-brained companion, here
  • were indeed the scene where I might look for an adventure. Here, in
  • broad day, the streets are secret as in the blackest night of January,
  • and in the midst of some four million sleepers, solitary as the woods
  • of Yucatan. If I but raise my voice I could summon up the number of an
  • army, and yet the grave is not more silent than this city of sleep."
  • He was still following these quaint and serious musings when he came
  • into a street of more mingled ingredients than was common in the
  • quarter. Here, on the one hand, framed in walls and the green tops of
  • trees, were several of those discreet, _bijou_ residences on which
  • propriety is apt to look askance. Here, too, were many of the
  • brick-fronted barracks of the poor; a plaster cow, perhaps, serving as
  • ensign to a dairy, or a ticket announcing the business of the mangler.
  • Before one such house, that stood a little separate among walled
  • gardens, a cat was playing with a straw, and Challoner paused a moment,
  • looking on this sleek and solitary creature, who seemed an emblem of the
  • neighbouring peace. With the cessation of the sound of his own steps the
  • silence fell dead; the house stood smokeless; the blinds down, the whole
  • machinery of life arrested; and it seemed to Challoner that he should
  • hear the breathing of the sleepers.
  • As he so stood, he was startled by a dull and jarring detonation from
  • within. This was followed by a monstrous hissing and simmering as from a
  • kettle of the bigness of St. Paul's; and at the same time from every
  • chink of door and window spurted an ill-smelling vapour. The cat
  • disappeared with a cry. Within the lodging-house feet pounded on the
  • stairs; the door flew back, emitting clouds of smoke; and two men and an
  • elegantly dressed young lady tumbled forth into the street and fled
  • without a word. The hissing had already ceased, the smoke was melting in
  • the air, the whole event had come and gone as in a dream, and still
  • Challoner was rooted to the spot. At last his reason and his fear awoke
  • together, and with the most unwonted energy he fell to running.
  • Little by little this first dash relaxed, and presently he had resumed
  • his sober gait and begun to piece together, out of the confused report
  • of his senses, some theory of the occurrence. But the occasion of the
  • sounds and stench that had so suddenly assailed him, and the strange
  • conjunction of fugitives whom he had seen to issue from the house, were
  • mysteries beyond his plummet. With an obscure awe he considered them in
  • his mind, continuing, meanwhile, to thread the web of streets, and once
  • more alone in morning sunshine.
  • In his first retreat he had entirely wandered; and now, steering vaguely
  • west, it was his luck to light upon an unpretending street, which
  • presently widened so as to admit a strip of gardens in the midst. Here
  • was quite a stir of birds; even at that hour, the shadow of the leaves
  • was grateful; instead of the burnt atmosphere of cities, there was
  • something brisk and rural in the air; and Challoner paced forward, his
  • eyes upon the pavement and his mind running upon distant scenes, till he
  • was recalled, upon a sudden, by a wall that blocked his further
  • progress. This street, whose name I have forgotten, is no thoroughfare.
  • He was not the first who had wandered there that morning; for, as he
  • raised his eyes with an agreeable deliberation, they alighted on the
  • figure of a girl, in whom he was struck to recognise the third of the
  • incongruous fugitives. She had run there, seemingly, blindfold; the wall
  • had checked her career; and being entirely wearied, she had sunk upon
  • the ground beside the garden railings, soiling her dress among the
  • summer dust. Each saw the other in the same instant of time; and she,
  • with one wild look, sprang to her feet and began to hurry from the
  • scene.
  • Challoner was doubly startled to meet once more the heroine of his
  • adventure and to observe the fear with which she shunned him. Pity and
  • alarm, in nearly equal forces, contested the possession of his mind; and
  • yet, in spite of both, he saw himself condemned to follow in the lady's
  • wake. He did so gingerly, as fearing to increase her terrors; but, tread
  • as lightly as he might, his footfalls eloquently echoed in the empty
  • street. Their sound appeared to strike in her some strong emotion; for
  • scarce had he begun to follow ere she paused. A second time she
  • addressed herself to flight; and a second time she paused. Then she
  • turned about, and, with doubtful steps and the most attractive
  • appearance of timidity, drew near to the young man. He on his side
  • continued to advance with similar signals of distress and bashfulness.
  • At length, when they were but some steps apart, he saw her eyes brim
  • over, and she reached out both her hands in eloquent appeal.
  • "Are you an English gentleman?" she cried.
  • The unhappy Challoner regarded her with consternation. He was the spirit
  • of fine courtesy, and would have blushed to fail in his devoirs to any
  • lady; but, in the other scale, he was a man averse from amorous
  • adventures. He looked east and west; but the houses that looked down
  • upon this interview remained inexorably shut; and he saw himself, though
  • in the full glare of the day's eye, cut off from any human intervention.
  • His looks returned at last upon the suppliant. He remarked with
  • irritation that she was charming both in face and figure, elegantly
  • dressed and gloved: a lady undeniable; the picture of distress and
  • innocence; weeping and lost in the city of diurnal sleep.
  • "Madam," he said, "I protest you have no cause to fear intrusion; and if
  • I have appeared to follow you, the fault is in this street, which has
  • deceived us both."
  • An unmistakable relief appeared upon the lady's face. "I might have
  • guessed it!" she exclaimed. "Thank you a thousand times! But at this
  • hour, in this appalling silence, and among all these staring windows, I
  • am lost in terrors--oh, lost in them!" she cried, her face blanching at
  • the words. "I beg you to lend me your arm," she added with the
  • loveliest, suppliant inflection. "I dare not go alone; my nerve is
  • gone--I had a shock, O what a shock! I beg of you to be my escort."
  • "My dear madam," responded Challoner heavily, "my arm is at your
  • service."
  • She took it and clung to it for a moment, struggling with her sobs; and
  • the next, with feverish hurry, began to lead him in the direction of the
  • city. One thing was plain, among so much that was obscure: it was plain
  • her fears were genuine. Still, as she went, she spied around as if for
  • dangers; and now she would shiver like a person in a chill, and now
  • clutch his arm in hers. To Challoner her terror was at once repugnant
  • and infectious; it gained and mastered, while it still offended him; and
  • he wailed in spirit and longed for release.
  • "Madam," he said at last, "I am, of course, charmed to be of use to any
  • lady; but I confess I was bound in a direction opposite to that you
  • follow, and a word of explanation----"
  • "Hush!" she sobbed, "not here--not here!"
  • The blood of Challoner ran cold. He might have thought the lady mad; but
  • his memory was charged with more perilous stuff; and in view of the
  • detonation, the smoke, and the flight of the ill-assorted trio, his mind
  • was lost among mysteries. So they continued to thread the maze of
  • streets in silence, with the speed of a guilty flight, and both
  • thrilling with incommunicable terrors. In time, however, and above all
  • by their quick pace of walking, the pair began to rise to firmer
  • spirits; the lady ceased to peer about the corners; and Challoner,
  • emboldened by the resonant tread and distant figure of a constable,
  • returned to the charge with more of spirit and directness.
  • "I thought," he said, in the tone of conversation, "that I had
  • indistinctly perceived you leaving a villa in the company of two
  • gentlemen."
  • "Oh!" she said, "you need not fear to wound me by the truth. You saw me
  • flee from a common lodging-house, and my companions were not gentlemen.
  • In such a case, the best of compliments is to be frank."
  • "I thought," resumed Challoner, encouraged as much as he was surprised
  • by the spirit of her reply, "to have perceived, besides, a certain
  • odour. A noise, too--I do not know to what I should compare it----"
  • "Silence!" she cried. "You do not know the danger you invoke. Wait, only
  • wait; and as soon as we have left those streets and got beyond the reach
  • of listeners, all shall be explained. Meanwhile, avoid the topic. What a
  • sight is this sleeping city!" she exclaimed; and then, with a most
  • thrilling voice, "'Dear God,'" she quoted, "'the very houses seem
  • asleep, and all that mighty heart is lying still.'"
  • "I perceive, madam," said he, "you are a reader."
  • "I am more than that," she answered, with a sigh. "I am a girl condemned
  • to thoughts beyond her age; and so untoward is my fate, that this walk
  • upon the arm of a stranger is like an interlude of peace."
  • They had come by this time to the neighbourhood of the Victoria Station;
  • and here, at a street corner, the young lady paused, withdrew her arm
  • from Challoner's, and looked up and down as though in pain or
  • indecision. Then, with a lovely change of countenance, and laying her
  • gloved hand upon his arm:
  • "What you already think of me," she said, "I tremble to conceive; yet I
  • must here condemn myself still further. Here I must leave you, and here
  • I beseech you to wait for my return. Do not attempt to follow me or spy
  • upon my actions. Suspend yet awhile your judgment of a girl as innocent
  • as your own sister; and do not, above all, desert me. Stranger as you
  • are, I have none else to look to. You see me in sorrow and great fear;
  • you are a gentleman, courteous and kind; and when I beg for a few
  • minutes' patience, I make sure beforehand you will not deny me."
  • Challoner grudgingly promised; and the young lady, with a grateful
  • eye-shot, vanished round the corner. But the force of her appeal had
  • been a little blunted; for the young man was not only destitute of
  • sisters, but of any female relative nearer than a great-aunt in Wales.
  • Now he was alone, besides, the spell that he had hitherto obeyed began
  • to weaken; he considered his behaviour with a sneer; and plucking up the
  • spirit of revolt, he started in pursuit. The reader, if he has ever
  • plied the fascinating trade of the noctambulist, will not be unaware
  • that, in the neighbourhood of the great railway centres, certain early
  • taverns inaugurate the business of the day. It was into one of these
  • that Challoner, coming round the corner of the block, beheld his
  • charming companion disappear. To say he was surprised were inexact, for
  • he had long since left that sentiment behind him. Acute disgust and
  • disappointment seized upon his soul; and with silent oaths he damned
  • this commonplace enchantress. She had scarce been gone a second ere the
  • swing-doors reopened, and she appeared again in company with a young man
  • of mean and slouching attire. For some five or six exchanges they
  • conversed together with an animated air; then the fellow shouldered
  • again into the tap; and the young lady, with something swifter than a
  • walk, retraced her steps towards Challoner. He saw her coming, a miracle
  • of grace; her ankle, as she hurried, flashing from her dress; her
  • movements eloquent of speed and youth; and though he still entertained
  • some thoughts of flight, they grew miserably fainter as the distance
  • lessened. Against mere beauty he was proof: it was her unmistakable
  • gentility that now robbed him of the courage of his cowardice. With a
  • proved adventuress he had acted strictly on his right; with one whom, in
  • spite of all, he could not quite deny to be a lady, he found himself
  • disarmed. At the very corner from whence he had spied upon her
  • interview, she came upon him, still transfixed, and--"Ah!" she cried,
  • with a bright flush of colour. "Ah! Ungenerous!"
  • The sharpness of the attack somewhat restored the Squire of Dames to the
  • possession of himself.
  • "Madam," he returned, with a fair show of stoutness, "I do not think
  • that hitherto you can complain of any lack of generosity; I have
  • suffered myself to be led over a considerable portion of the metropolis;
  • and if I now request you to discharge me of my office of protector, you
  • have friends at hand who will be glad of the succession."
  • She stood a moment dumb.
  • "It is well," she said. "Go! go, and may God help me! You have seen
  • me--me, an innocent girl! fleeing from a dire catastrophe and haunted by
  • sinister men; and neither pity, curiosity, nor honour move you to await
  • my explanation or to help in my distress. Go!" she repeated. "I am lost
  • indeed." And with a passionate gesture she turned and fled along the
  • street.
  • Challoner observed her retreat and disappear, an almost intolerable
  • sense of guilt contending with the profound sense that he was being
  • gulled. She was no sooner gone than the first of these feelings took the
  • upper hand; he felt, if he had done her less than justice, that his
  • conduct was a perfect model of the ungracious; the cultured tone of her
  • voice, her choice of language, and the elegant decorum of her movements,
  • cried out aloud against a harsh construction; and between penitence and
  • curiosity he began slowly to follow in her wake. At the corner he had
  • her once more full in view. Her speed was failing like a stricken
  • bird's. Even as he looked, she threw her arm out gropingly, and fell and
  • leaned against the wall. At the spectacle, Challoner's fortitude gave
  • way. In a few strides he overtook her, and, for the first time removing
  • his hat, assured her in the most moving terms of his entire respect and
  • firm desire to help her. He spoke at first unheeded; but gradually it
  • appeared that she began to comprehend his words; she moved a little, and
  • drew herself upright; and finally, as with a sudden movement of
  • forgiveness, turned on the young man a countenance in which reproach and
  • gratitude were mingled. "Ah, madam," he cried, "use me as you will!" And
  • once more, but now with a great air of deference, he offered her the
  • conduct of his arm. She took it with a sigh that struck him to the
  • heart; and they began once more to trace the deserted streets. But now
  • her steps, as though exhausted by emotion, began to linger on the way;
  • she leaned the more heavily upon his arm; and he, like the parent bird,
  • stooped fondly above his drooping convoy. Her physical distress was not
  • accompanied by any failing of her spirits; and hearing her strike so
  • soon into a playful and charming vein of talk, Challoner could not
  • sufficiently admire the elasticity of his companion's nature. "Let me
  • forget," she had said, "for one half-hour, let me forget"; and sure
  • enough, with the very word, her sorrows appeared to be forgotten. Before
  • every house she paused, invented a name for the proprietor, and sketched
  • his character: here lived the old general whom she was to marry on the
  • fifth of the next month, there was the mansion of the rich widow who had
  • set her heart on Challoner; and though she still hung wearily on the
  • young man's arm, her laughter sounded low and pleasant in his ears.
  • "Ah," she sighed, by way of commentary, "in such a life as mine I must
  • seize tight hold of any happiness that I can find."
  • When they arrived, in this leisurely manner, at the head of Grosvenor
  • Place, the gates of the park were opening, and the bedraggled company of
  • night-walkers were being at last admitted into that paradise of lawns.
  • Challoner and his companion followed the movement, and walked for awhile
  • in silence in that tatterdemalion crowd; but as one after another, weary
  • with the night's patrolling of the city pavement, sank upon the benches
  • or wandered into separate paths, the vast extent of the park had soon
  • utterly swallowed up the last of these intruders; and the pair proceeded
  • on their way alone in the grateful quiet of the morning.
  • Presently they came in sight of a bench, standing very open on a mound
  • of turf. The young lady looked about her with relief.
  • "Here," she said, "here at last we are secure from listeners. Here,
  • then, you shall learn and judge my history. I could not bear that we
  • should part, and that you should still suppose your kindness squandered
  • upon one who was unworthy."
  • Thereupon she sat down upon the bench, and motioning Challoner to take a
  • place immediately beside her, began in the following words, and with the
  • greatest appearance of enjoyment, to narrate the story of her life.
  • STORY OF THE DESTROYING ANGEL
  • My father was a native of England, son of a cadet of a great ancient but
  • untitled family; and by some event, fault, or misfortune he was driven
  • to flee from the land of his birth and to lay aside the name of his
  • ancestors. He sought the States; and instead of lingering in effeminate
  • cities, pushed at once into the Far West with an exploring party of
  • frontiersmen. He was no ordinary traveller; for he was not only brave
  • and impetuous by character, but learned in many sciences, and above all
  • in botany, which he particularly loved. Thus it fell that, before many
  • months, Fremont himself, the nominal leader of the troop, courted and
  • bowed to his opinion.
  • They had pushed, as I have said, into the still unknown regions of the
  • West. For some time they followed the track of Mormon caravans, guiding
  • themselves in that vast and melancholy desert by the skeletons of men
  • and animals. Then they inclined their route a little to the north, and,
  • losing even these dire memorials, came into a country of forbidding
  • stillness. I have often heard my father dwell upon the features of that
  • ride: rock, cliff, and barren moor alternated; the streams were very far
  • between; and neither beast nor bird disturbed the solitude. On the
  • fortieth day they had already run so short of food that it was judged
  • advisable to call a halt and scatter upon all sides to hunt. A great
  • fire was built, that its smoke might serve to rally them; and each man
  • of the party mounted and struck off at a venture into the surrounding
  • desert.
  • My father rode for many hours with a steep range of cliffs upon the one
  • hand, very black and horrible; and upon the other an unwatered vale
  • dotted with boulders like the site of some subverted city. At length he
  • found the slot of a great animal, and from the claw-marks and the hair
  • among the brush, judged that he was on the track of a cinnamon bear of
  • most unusual size. He quickened the pace of his steed, and, still
  • following the quarry, came at last to the division of two watersheds. On
  • the far side the country was exceeding intricate and difficult, heaped
  • with boulders, and dotted here and there with a few pines, which seemed
  • to indicate the neighbourhood of water. Here, then, he picketed his
  • horse, and, relying on his trusty rifle, advanced alone into that
  • wilderness.
  • Presently, in the great silence that reigned, he was aware of the sound
  • of running water to his right; and leaning in that direction, was
  • rewarded by a scene of natural wonder and human pathos strangely
  • intermixed. The stream ran at the bottom of a narrow and winding
  • passage, whose wall-like sides of rock were sometimes for miles together
  • unscalable by man. The water, when the stream was swelled with rains,
  • must have filled it from side to side; the sun's rays only plumbed it in
  • the hour of noon; the wind, in that narrow and damp funnel, blew
  • tempestuously. And yet, in the bottom of this den, immediately below my
  • father's eyes as he leaned over the margin of the cliff, a party of some
  • half a hundred men, women, and children lay scattered uneasily among the
  • rocks. They lay, some upon their backs, some prone, and not one
  • stirring; their upturned faces seemed all of an extraordinary paleness
  • and emaciation; and from time to time, above the washing of the stream,
  • a faint sound of moaning mounted to my father's ears.
  • While he thus looked, an old man got staggering to his feet, unwound his
  • blanket, and laid it, with great gentleness, on a young girl who sat
  • hard by propped against a rock. The girl did not seem to be conscious of
  • the act; and the old man, after having looked upon her with the most
  • engaging pity, returned to his former bed and lay down again uncovered
  • on the turf. But the scene had not passed without observation even in
  • that starving camp. From the very outskirts of the party, a man with a
  • white beard and seemingly of venerable years, rose up on his knees and
  • came crawling stealthily among the sleepers towards the girl; and judge
  • of my father's indignation, when he beheld this cowardly miscreant strip
  • from her both the coverings and return with them to his original
  • position. Here he lay down for a while below his spoils, and, as my
  • father imagined, feigned to be asleep; but presently he had raised
  • himself again upon one elbow, looked with sharp scrutiny at his
  • companions, and then swiftly carried his hand into his bosom and thence
  • to his mouth. By the movement of his jaws he must be eating; in that
  • camp of famine he had reserved a store of nourishment; and, while his
  • companions lay in the stupor of approaching death, secretly restored his
  • powers.
  • My father was so incensed at what he saw that he raised his rifle; and
  • but for an accident, he has often declared, he would have shot the
  • fellow dead upon the spot. How different would then have been my
  • history! But it was not to be: even as he raised the barrel, his eye
  • lighted on the bear, as it crawled along a ledge some way below him; and
  • ceding to the hunter's instinct, it was at the brute, not at the man,
  • that he discharged his piece. The bear leaped and fell into a pool of
  • the river; the cañon re-echoed the report; and in a moment the camp was
  • afoot. With cries that were scarce human, stumbling, falling, and
  • throwing each other down, these starving people rushed upon the quarry;
  • and before my father, climbing down by the ledge, had time to reach the
  • level of the stream, many were already satisfying their hunger on the
  • raw flesh, and a fire was being built by the more dainty.
  • His arrival was for some time unremarked. He stood in the midst of these
  • tottering and clay-faced marionettes; he was surrounded by their cries;
  • but their whole soul was fixed on the dead carcase; even those who were
  • too weak to move, lay, half-turned over, with their eyes riveted upon
  • the bear; and my father, seeing himself stand as though invisible in the
  • thick of this dreary hubbub, was seized with a desire to weep. A touch
  • upon the arm restrained him. Turning about, he found himself face to
  • face with the old man he had so nearly killed; and yet, at the second
  • glance, recognised him for no old man at all, but one in the full
  • strength of his years, and of a strong, speaking, and intellectual
  • countenance stigmatised by weariness and famine. He beckoned my father
  • near the cliff, and there, in the most private whisper, begged for
  • brandy. My father looked at him with scorn: "You remind me," he said,
  • "of a neglected duty. Here is my flask; it contains enough, I trust, to
  • revive the women of your party; and I will begin with her whom I saw you
  • robbing of her blankets." And with that, not heeding his appeals, my
  • father turned his back upon the egoist.
  • The girl still lay reclined against the rock; she lay too far sunk in
  • the first stage of death to have observed the bustle round her couch;
  • but when my father had raised her head, put the flask to her lips, and
  • forced or aided her to swallow some drops of the restorative, she opened
  • her languid eyes and smiled upon him faintly. Never was there a smile of
  • a more touching sweetness; never were eyes more deeply violet, more
  • honestly eloquent of the soul! I speak with knowledge, for these were
  • the same eyes that smiled upon me in the cradle. From her who was to be
  • his wife, my father, still jealously watched and followed by the man
  • with the grey beard, carried his attentions to all the women of the
  • party, and gave the last drainings of his flask to those among the men
  • who seemed in the most need.
  • "Is there none left? not a drop for me?" said the man with the beard.
  • "Not one drop," replied my father; "and if you find yourself in want,
  • let me counsel you to put your hand into the pocket of your coat."
  • "Ah!" cried the other, "you misjudge me. You think me one who clings to
  • life for selfish and commonplace considerations. But let me tell you,
  • that were all this caravan to perish, the world would but be lightened
  • of a weight. These are but human insects, pullulating, thick as
  • may-flies, in the slums of European cities, whom I myself have plucked
  • from degradation and misery, from the dung-heap and gin-palace door. And
  • you compare their lives with mine!"
  • "You are then a Mormon missionary?" asked my father.
  • "Oh!" cried the man, with a strange smile, "a Mormon missionary if you
  • will! I value not the title. Were I no more than that, I could have died
  • without a murmur. But with my life as a physician is bound up the
  • knowledge of great secrets and the future of man. This it was, when we
  • missed the caravan, tried for a short cut and wandered to this desolate
  • ravine, that ate into my soul and, in five days, has changed my beard
  • from ebony to silver."
  • "And you are a physician," mused my father, looking on his face, "bound
  • by oath to succour man in his distresses."
  • "Sir," returned the Mormon, "my name is Grierson: you will hear that
  • name again; and you will then understand that my duty was not to this
  • caravan of paupers, but to mankind at large."
  • My father turned to the remainder of the party, who were now
  • sufficiently revived to hear; told them that he would set off at once to
  • bring help from his own party; "and," he added, "if you be again reduced
  • to such extremities, look round you, and you will see the earth strewn
  • with assistance. Here, for instance, growing on the underside of
  • fissures in this cliff, you will perceive a yellow moss. Trust me, it is
  • both edible and excellent."
  • "Ha!" said Dr. Grierson, "you know botany!"
  • "Not I alone," returned my father, lowering his voice; "for see where
  • these have been scraped away. Am I right? Was that your secret store?"
  • My father's comrades, he found, when he returned to the signal-fire, had
  • made a good day's hunting. They were thus the more easily persuaded to
  • extend assistance to the Mormon caravan; and the next day beheld both
  • parties on the march for the frontiers of Utah. The distance to be
  • traversed was not great; but the nature of the country and the
  • difficulty of procuring food extended the time to nearly three weeks;
  • and my father had thus ample leisure to know and appreciate the girl
  • whom he had succoured. I will call my mother Lucy. Her family name I am
  • not at liberty to mention; it is one you would know well. By what series
  • of undeserved calamities this innocent flower of maidenhood, lovely,
  • refined by education, ennobled by the finest taste, was thus cast among
  • the horrors of a Mormon caravan, I must not stay to tell you. Let it
  • suffice, that even in these untoward circumstances, she found a heart
  • worthy of her own. The ardour of attachment which united my father and
  • mother was perhaps partly due to the strange manner of their meeting; it
  • knew, at least, no bounds, either divine or human; my father, for her
  • sake, determined to renounce his ambition and abjure his faith; and a
  • week had not passed upon the march before he had resigned from his
  • party, accepted the Mormon doctrine, and received the promise of my
  • mother's hand on the arrival of the party at Salt Lake.
  • The marriage took place, and I was its only offspring. My father
  • prospered exceedingly in his affairs, remained faithful to my mother;
  • and, though you may wonder to hear it, I believe there were few happier
  • homes in any country than that in which I saw the light and grew to
  • girlhood. We were, indeed, and in spite of all our wealth, avoided as
  • heretics and half-believers by the more precise and pious of the
  • faithful: Young himself, that formidable tyrant, was known to look
  • askance upon my father's riches; but of this I had no guess. I dwelt,
  • indeed, under the Mormon system, with perfect innocence and faith. Some
  • of our friends had many wives; but such was the custom; and why should
  • it surprise me more than marriage itself? From time to time one of our
  • rich acquaintances would disappear, his family be broken up, his wives
  • and houses shared among the elders of the church, and his memory only
  • recalled with bated breath and dreadful head-shakings. When I had been
  • very still, and my presence perhaps was forgotten, some such topic would
  • arise among my elders by the evening fire; I would see them draw the
  • closer together and look behind them with scared eyes; and I might
  • gather from their whisperings how some one, rich, honoured, healthy, and
  • in the prime of his days, some one, perhaps, who had taken me on his
  • knees a week before, had in one hour been spirited from home and family,
  • and vanished like an image from a mirror, leaving not a print behind. It
  • was terrible, indeed; but so was death, the universal law. And even if
  • the talk should wax still bolder, full of ominous silences and nods, and
  • I should hear named in a whisper the Destroying Angels, how was a child
  • to understand these mysteries? I heard of a Destroying Angel as some
  • more happy child might hear in England of a bishop or a rural dean, with
  • vague respect and without the wish for further information. Life
  • anywhere, in society as in nature, rests upon dread foundations; I
  • beheld safe roads, a garden blooming in the desert, pious people
  • crowding to worship; I was aware of my parents' tenderness and all the
  • harmless luxuries of my existence; and why should I pry beneath this
  • honest seeming surface for the mysteries on which it stood?
  • We dwelt originally in the city; but at an early date we moved to a
  • beautiful house in a green dingle, musical with splashing water, and
  • surrounded on almost every side by twenty miles of poisonous and rocky
  • desert. The city was thirty miles away; there was but one road, which
  • went no farther than my father's door; the rest were bridle-tracks
  • impassable in winter; and we thus dwelt in a solitude inconceivable to
  • the European. Our only neighbour was Dr. Grierson. To my young eyes,
  • after the hair-oiled, chin-bearded elders of the city, and the
  • ill-favoured and mentally stunted women of their harems, there was
  • something agreeable in the correct manner, the fine bearing, the thin
  • white hair and beard, and the piercing looks of the old doctor. Yet,
  • though he was almost our only visitor, I never wholly overcame a sense
  • of fear in his presence; and this disquietude was rather fed by the
  • awful solitude in which he lived and the obscurity that hung about his
  • occupations. His house was but a mile or two from ours, but very
  • differently placed. It stood overlooking the road on the summit of a
  • steep slope, and planted close against a range of overhanging bluffs.
  • Nature, you would say, had here desired to imitate the works of man; for
  • the slope was even, like the glacis of a fort, and the cliffs of a
  • constant height, like the ramparts of a city. Not even spring could
  • change one feature of that desolate scene; and the windows looked down
  • across a plain, snowy with alkali, to ranges of cold stone sierras on
  • the north. Twice or thrice I remember passing within view of this
  • forbidding residence; and seeing it always shuttered, smokeless, and
  • deserted, I remarked to my parents that some day it would certainly be
  • robbed.
  • "Ah, no," said my father, "never robbed"; and I observed a strange
  • conviction in his tone.
  • At last, and not long before the blow fell on my unhappy family, I
  • chanced to see the doctor's house in a new light. My father was ill; my
  • mother confined to his bedside; and I was suffered to go, under the
  • charge of our driver, to the lonely house some twenty miles away, where
  • our packages were left for us. The horse cast a shoe; night overtook us
  • half-way home; and it was well on for three in the morning when the
  • driver and I, alone in a light waggon, came to that part of the road
  • which ran below the doctor's house. The moon swam clear; the cliffs and
  • mountains in this strong light lay utterly deserted; but the house, from
  • its station on the top of the long slope and close under the bluff, not
  • only shone abroad from every window like a place of festival, but from
  • the great chimney at the west end poured forth a coil of smoke so thick
  • and so voluminous, that it hung for miles along the windless night-air,
  • and its shadow lay far abroad in the moonlight upon the glittering
  • alkali. As we continued to draw near, besides, a regular and panting
  • throb began to divide the silence. First it seemed to me like the
  • beating of a heart; and next it put into my mind the thought of some
  • giant, smothered under mountains, and still, with incalculable effort,
  • fetching breath. I had heard of the railway, though I had not seen it,
  • and I turned to ask the driver if this resembled it. But some look in
  • his eye, some pallor, whether of fear or moonlight on his face, caused
  • the words to die upon my lips. We continued, therefore, to advance in
  • silence, till we were close below the lighted house; when suddenly,
  • without premonitory rustle, there burst forth a report of such a bigness
  • that it shook the earth and set the echoes of the mountains thundering
  • from cliff to cliff. A pillar of amber flame leaped from the chimney-top
  • and fell in multitudes of sparks; and at the same time the lights in the
  • windows turned for one instant ruby red and then expired. The driver had
  • checked his horse instinctively, and the echoes were still rumbling
  • farther off among the mountains, when there broke from the now darkened
  • interior a series of yells--whether of man or woman it was impossible to
  • guess--the door flew open, and there ran forth into the moonlight, at
  • the top of the long slope, a figure clad in white, which began to dance
  • and leap and throw itself down, and roll as if in agony, before the
  • house. I could no more restrain my cries; the driver laid his lash about
  • the horse's flank, and we fled up the rough track at the peril of our
  • lives; and did not draw rein till, turning the corner of the mountain,
  • we beheld my father's ranch and deep, green groves and gardens, sleeping
  • in the tranquil light.
  • This was the one adventure of my life, until my father had climbed to
  • the very topmost point of material prosperity, and I myself had reached
  • the age of seventeen. I was still innocent and merry like a child;
  • tended my garden or ran upon the hills in glad simplicity; gave not a
  • thought to coquetry or to material cares; and if my eye rested on my own
  • image in a mirror or some sylvan spring, it was to seek and recognise
  • the features of my parents. But the fears which had long pressed on
  • others were now to be laid on my youth. I had thrown myself, one sultry,
  • cloudy afternoon, on a divan; the windows stood open on the verandah,
  • where my mother sat with her embroidery; and when my father joined her
  • from the garden, their conversation, clearly audible to me, was of so
  • startling a nature that it held me enthralled where I lay.
  • "The blow has come," my father said, after a long pause.
  • I could hear my mother start and turn, but in words she made no reply.
  • "Yes," continued my father, "I have received to-day a list of all that I
  • possess; of all, I say; of what I have lent privately to men whose lips
  • are sealed with terror; of what I have buried with my own hand on the
  • bare mountain, when there was not a bird in heaven. Does the air, then,
  • carry secrets? Are the hills of glass? Do the stones we tread upon
  • preserve the footprint to betray us? Oh, Lucy, Lucy, that we should have
  • come to such a country!"
  • "But this," returned my mother, "is no very new or very threatening
  • event. You are accused of some concealment. You will pay more taxes in
  • the future, and be mulcted in a fine. It is disquieting, indeed, to find
  • our acts so spied upon, and the most private known. But is this new?
  • Have we not long feared and suspected every blade of grass?"
  • "Ay, and our shadows!" cried my father. "But all this is nothing. Here
  • is the letter that accompanied the list."
  • I heard my mother turn the pages; and she was some time silent.
  • "I see," she said at last; and then, with the tone of one reading;
  • "'From a believer so largely blessed by Providence with this world's
  • goods,'" she continued, "'the Church awaits in confidence some signal
  • mark of piety.' There lies the sting. Am I not right? These are the
  • words you fear?"
  • "These are the words," replied my father. "Lucy, you remember Priestley?
  • Two days before he disappeared, he carried me to the summit of an
  • isolated butte; we could see around us for ten miles; sure, if in any
  • quarter of this land a man were safe from spies, it were in such a
  • station; but it was in the very ague-fit of terror that he told me, and
  • that I heard, his story. He had received a letter such as this; and he
  • submitted to my approval an answer in which he offered to resign a third
  • of his possessions. I conjured him, as he valued life, to raise his
  • offering; and, before we parted, he had doubled the amount. Well, two
  • days later he was gone--gone from the chief street of the city in the
  • hour of noon--and gone for ever. O God!" cried my father, "by what art
  • do they thus spirit out of life the solid body? What death do they
  • command that leaves no traces? that this material structure, these
  • strong arms, this skeleton that can resist the grave for centuries,
  • should be thus reft in a moment from the world of sense? A horror dwells
  • in that thought more awful than mere death."
  • "Is there no hope in Grierson?" asked my mother.
  • "Dismiss the thought," replied my father. "He now knows all that I can
  • teach, and will do naught to save me. His power, besides, is small, his
  • own danger not improbably more imminent than mine; for he, too, lives
  • apart; he leaves his wives neglected and unwatched; he is openly cited
  • for an unbeliever; and unless he buys security at a more awful
  • price--but no; I will not believe it: I have no love for him, but I will
  • not believe it."
  • "Believe what?" asked my mother; and then, with a change of note, "But
  • oh, what matters it?" she cried. "Abimelech, there is but one way open:
  • we must fly!"
  • "It is in vain," returned my father. "I should but involve you in my
  • fate. To leave this land is hopeless: we are closed in it as men are
  • closed in life; and there is no issue but the grave."
  • "We can but die then," replied my mother. "Let us at least die together.
  • Let not Asenath[2] and myself survive you. Think to what a fate we
  • should be doomed!"
  • My father was unable to resist her tender violence; and though I could
  • see he nourished not one spark of hope, he consented to desert his whole
  • estate, beyond some hundreds of dollars that he had by him at the
  • moment, and to flee that night, which promised to be dark and cloudy. As
  • soon as the servants were asleep, he was to load two mules with
  • provisions; two others were to carry my mother and myself; and, striking
  • through the mountains by an unfrequented trail, we were to make a fair
  • stroke for liberty and life. As soon as they had thus decided, I showed
  • myself at the window, and, owning that I had heard all, assured them
  • that they could rely on my prudence and devotion. I had no fear, indeed,
  • but to show myself unworthy of my birth; I held my life in my hand
  • without alarm; and when my father, weeping upon my neck, had blessed
  • Heaven for the courage of his child, it was with a sentiment of pride
  • and some of the joy that warriors take in war, that I began to look
  • forward to the perils of our flight.
  • Before midnight, under an obscure and starless heaven, we had left far
  • behind us the plantations of the valley, and were mounting a certain
  • cañon in the hills, narrow, encumbered with great rocks, and echoing
  • with the roar of a tumultuous torrent. Cascade after cascade thundered
  • and hung up its flag of whiteness in the night, or fanned our faces with
  • the wet wind of its descent. The trail was break-neck, and led to
  • famine-guarded deserts; it had been long since deserted for more
  • practicable routes; and it was now a part of the world untrod from year
  • to year by human footing. Judge of our dismay when, turning suddenly an
  • angle of the cliffs, we found a bright bonfire blazing by itself under
  • an impending rock; and on the face of the rock, drawn very rudely with
  • charred wood, the great Open Eye which is the emblem of the Mormon
  • faith. We looked upon each other in the firelight; my mother broke into
  • a passion of tears; but not a word was said. The mules were turned
  • about; and leaving that great eye to guard the lonely cañon, we
  • retraced our steps in silence. Day had not yet broken ere we were once
  • more at home, condemned beyond reprieve.
  • What answer my father sent I was not told; but two days later, a little
  • before sundown, I saw a plain, honest-looking man ride slowly up the
  • road in a great pother of dust. He was clad in homespun, with a broad
  • straw hat; wore a patriarchal beard; and had an air of a simple rustic
  • farmer, that was, in my eyes, very reassuring. He was, indeed, a very
  • honest man and pious Mormon; with no liking for his errand, though
  • neither he nor any one in Utah dared to disobey; and it was with every
  • mark of diffidence that he had had himself announced as Mr. Aspinwall,
  • and entered the room where our unhappy family was gathered. My mother
  • and me he awkwardly enough dismissed; and as soon as he was alone with
  • my father laid before him a blank signature of President Young's, and
  • offered him a choice of services: either to set out as a missionary to
  • the tribes about the White Sea, or to join the next day, with a party of
  • Destroying Angels, in the massacre of sixty German immigrants. The last,
  • of course, my father could not entertain, and the first he regarded as a
  • pretext: even if he could consent to leave his wife defenceless, and to
  • collect fresh victims for the tyranny under which he was himself
  • oppressed, he felt sure he would never be suffered to return. He refused
  • both; and Aspinwall, he said, betrayed sincere emotion, part religious,
  • as the spectacle of such disobedience, but part human, in pity for my
  • father and his family. He besought him to reconsider his decision; and
  • at length, finding he could not prevail, gave him till the moon rose to
  • settle his affairs, and say farewell to wife and daughter. "For," said
  • he, "then, at the latest, you must ride with me."
  • I dare not dwell upon the hours that followed: they fled all too fast;
  • and presently the moon out-topped the eastern range, and my father and
  • Mr. Aspinwall set forth, side by side, on their nocturnal journey. My
  • mother, though still bearing an heroic countenance, had hastened to
  • shut herself in her apartment, thenceforward solitary; and I, alone in
  • the dark house, and consumed by grief and apprehension, made haste to
  • saddle my Indian pony, to ride up to the corner of the mountain, and to
  • enjoy one farewell sight of my departing father. The two men had set
  • forth at a deliberate pace; nor was I long behind them, when I reached
  • the point of view. I was the more amazed to see no moving creature in
  • the landscape. The moon, as the saying is, shone bright as day; and
  • nowhere, under the whole arch of night, was there a growing tree, a
  • bush, a farm, a patch of tillage, or any evidence of man, but one. From
  • the corner where I stood, a rugged bastion of the line of bluffs
  • concealed the doctor's house; and across the top of that projection the
  • soft night wind carried and unwound about the hills a coil of sable
  • smoke. What fuel could produce a vapour so sluggish to dissipate in that
  • dry air, or what furnace pour it forth so copiously, I was unable to
  • conceive; but I knew well enough that it came from the doctor's chimney;
  • I saw well enough that my father had already disappeared; and in despite
  • of reason, I connected in my mind the loss of that dear protector with
  • the ribbon of foul smoke that trailed along the mountains.
  • Days passed, and still my mother and I waited in vain for news; a week
  • went by, a second followed, but we heard no word of the father and
  • husband. As smoke dissipates, as the image glides from the mirror, so in
  • the ten or twenty minutes that I had spent in getting my horse and
  • following upon his trail, had that strong and brave man vanished out of
  • life. Hope, if any hope we had, fled with every hour; the worst was now
  • certain for my father, the worst was to be dreaded for his defenceless
  • family. Without weakness, with a desperate calm at which I marvel when I
  • look back upon it, the widow and the orphan awaited the event. On the
  • last day of the third week we rose in the morning to find ourselves
  • alone in the house, alone, so far as we searched, on the estate; all our
  • attendants, with one accord, had fled, and as we knew them to be
  • gratefully devoted, we drew the darkest intimations from their flight.
  • The day passed, indeed, without event; but in the fall of the evening we
  • were called at last into the verandah by the approaching clink of
  • horse's hoofs.
  • The doctor, mounted on an Indian pony, rode into the garden, dismounted,
  • and saluted us. He seemed much more bent, and his hair more silvery than
  • ever; but his demeanour was composed, serious, and not unkind.
  • "Madam," said he, "I am come upon a weighty errand; and I would have you
  • recognise it as an effect of kindness in the President, that he should
  • send as his ambassador your only neighbour and your husband's oldest
  • friend in Utah."
  • "Sir," said my mother, "I have but one concern, one thought. You know
  • well what it is. Speak: my husband?"
  • "Madam," returned the doctor, taking a chair on the verandah, "if you
  • were a silly child my position would now be painfully embarrassing. You
  • are, on the other hand, a woman of great intelligence and fortitude: you
  • have, by my forethought, been allowed three weeks to draw your own
  • conclusions and to accept the inevitable. Further words from me are, I
  • conceive, superfluous."
  • My mother was as pale as death, and trembled like a reed; I gave her my
  • hand, and she kept it in the folds of her dress and wrung it till I
  • could have cried aloud. "Then, sir," said she at last, "you speak to
  • deaf ears. If this be indeed so, what have I to do with errands? what do
  • I ask of Heaven but to die?"
  • "Come," said the doctor, "command yourself. I bid you dismiss all
  • thoughts of your late husband, and bring a clear mind to bear upon your
  • own future and the fate of that young girl."
  • "You bid me dismiss----" began my mother. "Then you know!" she cried.
  • "I know," replied the doctor.
  • "You know?" broke out the poor woman. "Then it was you who did the deed!
  • I tear off the mask, and with dread and loathing see you as you
  • are--you, whom the poor fugitive beholds in nightmares, and awakes
  • raving--you, the Destroying Angel!"
  • "Well, madam, and what then?" returned the doctor. "Have not my fate and
  • yours been similar? Are we not both immured in this strong prison of
  • Utah? Have you not tried to flee, and did not the Open Eye confront you
  • in the cañon? Who can escape the watch of that unsleeping eye of Utah?
  • Not I, at least. Horrible tasks have, indeed, been laid upon me; and the
  • most ungrateful was the last; but had I refused my offices, would that
  • have spared your husband? You know well it would not. I, too, had
  • perished along with him; nor would I have been able to alleviate his
  • last moments, nor could I to-day have stood between his family and the
  • hand of Brigham Young."
  • "Ah!" cried I, "and could you purchase life by such concessions?"
  • "Young lady," answered the doctor, "I both could and did; and you will
  • live to thank me for that baseness. You have a spirit, Asenath, that it
  • pleases me to recognise. But we waste time. Mr. Fonblanque's estate
  • reverts, as you doubtless imagine, to the church; but some part of it
  • has been reserved for him who is to marry the family; and that person, I
  • should perhaps tell you without more delay, is no other than myself."
  • At this odious proposal my mother and I cried out aloud, and clung
  • together like lost souls.
  • "It is as I supposed," resumed the doctor, with the same measured
  • utterance. "You recoil from this arrangement. Do you expect me to
  • convince you? You know very well that I have never held the Mormon view
  • of women. Absorbed in the most arduous studies, I have left the
  • slatterns whom they call my wives to scratch and quarrel among
  • themselves; of me, they have had nothing but my purse; such was not the
  • union I desired, even if I had the leisure to pursue it. No, you need
  • not, madam, and my old friend--" and here the doctor rose and bowed with
  • something of gallantry--"you need not apprehend my importunities. On the
  • contrary, I am rejoiced to read in you a Roman spirit; and if I am
  • obliged to bid you follow me at once, and that in the name, not of my
  • wish, but of my orders, I hope it will be found that we are of a common
  • mind."
  • So, bidding us dress for the road, he took a lamp (for the night had now
  • fallen) and set off to the stable to prepare our horses.
  • "What does it mean?--what will become of us?" I cried.
  • "Not that, at least," replied my mother, shuddering. "So far we can
  • trust him. I seem to read among his words a certain tragic promise.
  • Asenath, if I leave you, if I die, you will not forget your miserable
  • parents?"
  • Thereupon we fell to cross-purposes: I beseeching her to explain her
  • words; she putting me by, and continuing to recommend the doctor for a
  • friend. "The doctor!" I cried at last; "the man who killed my father?"
  • "Nay," said she, "let us be just. I do believe, before Heaven, he played
  • the friendliest part. And he alone, Asenath, can protect you in this
  • land of death."
  • At this the doctor returned, leading our two horses; and when we were
  • all in the saddle, he bade me ride on before, as he had matter to
  • discuss with Mrs. Fonblanque. They came at a foot's-pace, eagerly
  • conversing in a whisper; and presently after the moon rose and showed
  • them looking eagerly into each other's faces as they went, my mother
  • laying her hand upon the doctor's arm, and the doctor himself, against
  • his usual custom, making vigorous gestures of protest or asseveration.
  • At the foot of the track which ascended the talus of the mountain to his
  • door, the doctor overtook me at a trot.
  • "Here," he said, "we shall dismount; and as your mother prefers to be
  • alone, you and I shall walk together to my house."
  • "Shall I see her again?" I asked.
  • "I give you my word," he said, and helped me to alight. "We leave the
  • horses here," he added. "There are no thieves in this stone wilderness."
  • The track mounted gradually, keeping the house in view. The windows were
  • once more bright; the chimney once more vomited smoke; but the most
  • absolute silence reigned, and, but for the figure of my mother very
  • slowly following in our wake, I felt convinced there was no human soul
  • within a range of miles. At the thought, I looked upon the doctor,
  • gravely walking by my side, with his bowed shoulders and white hair, and
  • then once more at his house, lit up and pouring smoke like some
  • industrious factory. And then my curiosity broke forth. "In Heaven's
  • name," I cried, "what do you make in this inhuman desert?"
  • He looked at me with a peculiar smile, and answered with an evasion:
  • "This is not the first time," said he, "that you have seen my furnaces
  • alight. One morning, in the small hours, I saw you driving past; a
  • delicate experiment miscarried; and I cannot acquit myself of having
  • startled either your driver or the horse that drew you."
  • "What!" cried I, beholding again in fancy the antics of the figure,
  • "could that be you?"
  • "It was I," he replied; "but do not fancy that I was mad. I was in
  • agony. I had been scalded cruelly."
  • We were now near the house, which, unlike the ordinary houses of the
  • country, was built of hewn stone and very solid. Stone, too, was its
  • foundation, stone its background. Not a blade of grass sprouted among
  • the broken mineral about the walls, not a flower adorned the windows.
  • Over the door, by way of sole adornment, the Mormon Eye was rudely
  • sculptured; I had been brought up to view that emblem from my
  • childhood; but since the night of our escape, it had acquired a new
  • significance, and set me shrinking. The smoke rolled voluminously from
  • the chimney-top, its edges ruddy with the fire; and from the far corner
  • of the building, near the ground, angry puffs of steam shone snow-white
  • in the moon and vanished.
  • The doctor opened the door and paused upon the threshold. "You ask me
  • what I make here," he observed: "Two things: Life and Death." And he
  • motioned me to enter.
  • "I shall await my mother," said I.
  • "Child," he replied, "look at me: am I not old and broken? Of us two,
  • which is the stronger, the young maiden or the withered man?"
  • I bowed and, passing by him, entered a vestibule or kitchen, lit by a
  • good fire and a shaded reading-lamp. It was furnished only with a
  • dresser, a rude table, and some wooden benches; and on one of these the
  • doctor motioned me to take a seat; and passing by another door into the
  • interior of the house, he left me to myself. Presently I heard the jar
  • of iron from the far end of the building; and this was followed by the
  • same throbbing noise that had startled me in the valley, but now so near
  • at hand as to be menacing by loudness, and even to shake the house with
  • every recurrence of the stroke. I had scarce time to master my alarm
  • when the doctor returned, and almost in the same moment my mother
  • appeared upon the threshold. But how am I to describe to you the peace
  • and ravishment of that face? Years seemed to have passed over her head
  • during that brief ride, and left her younger and fairer; her eyes shone,
  • her smile went to my heart; she seemed no more a woman, but the angel of
  • ecstatic tenderness. I ran to her in a kind of terror; but she shrank a
  • little back and laid her finger on her lips, with something arch and yet
  • unearthly. To the doctor, on the contrary, she reached out her hand as
  • to a friend and helper; and so strange was the scene that I forgot to be
  • offended.
  • "Lucy," said the doctor, "all is prepared. Will you go alone, or shall
  • your daughter follow us?"
  • "Let Asenath come," she answered, "dear Asenath! At this hour when I am
  • purified of fear and sorrow, and already survive myself and my
  • affections, it is for your sake, and not for mine, that I desire her
  • presence. Were she shut out, dear friend, it is to be feared she might
  • misjudge your kindness."
  • "Mother," I cried wildly, "mother, what is this?"
  • But my mother, with her radiant smile, said only "Hush!" as though I
  • were a child again, and tossing in some fever-fit; and the doctor bade
  • me be silent and trouble her no more. "You have made a choice," he
  • continued, addressing my mother, "that has often strangely tempted me.
  • The two extremes: all, or else nothing; never, or this very hour upon
  • the clock--these have been my incongruous desires. But to accept the
  • middle term, to be content with a half-gift, to flicker awhile and to
  • burn out--never for an hour, never since I was born, has satisfied the
  • appetite of my ambition." He looked upon my mother fixedly, much of
  • admiration and some touch of envy in his eyes; then, with a profound
  • sigh, he led the way into the inner room.
  • It was very long. From end to end it was lit up by many lamps, which by
  • the changeful colour of their light, and by the incessant snapping
  • sounds with which they burned, I have since divined to be electric. At
  • the extreme end an open door gave us a glimpse into what must have been
  • a lean-to shed beside the chimney; and this, in strong contrast to the
  • room, was painted with a red reverberation as from furnace-doors. The
  • walls were lined with books and glazed cases, the tables crowded with
  • the implements of chemical research; great glass accumulators glittered
  • in the light; and through a hole in the gable near the shed door a heavy
  • driving-belt entered the apartment and ran overhead upon steel pulleys,
  • with clumsy activity and many ghostly and fluttering sounds. In one
  • corner I perceived a chair resting upon crystal feet, and curiously
  • wreathed with wire. To this my mother advanced with a decisive
  • swiftness.
  • "Is this it?" she asked.
  • The doctor bowed in silence.
  • "Asenath," said my mother, "in this sad end of my life I have found one
  • helper. Look upon him: it is Doctor Grierson. Be not, O my daughter, be
  • not ungrateful to that friend!"
  • She sat upon the chair, and took in her hands the globes that terminated
  • the arms.
  • "Am I right?" she asked, and looked upon the doctor with such a radiancy
  • of face that I trembled for her reason. Once more the doctor bowed, but
  • this time leaning hard against the wall. He must have touched a spring.
  • The least shock agitated my mother where she sat; the least passing jar
  • appeared to cross her features; and she sank back in the chair like one
  • resigned to weariness. I was at her knees that moment; but her hands
  • fell loosely in my grasp; her face, still beatified with the same
  • touching smile, sank forward on her bosom: her spirit had for ever fled.
  • I do not know how long may have elapsed before, raising for a moment my
  • tearful face, I met the doctor's eyes. They rested upon mine with such a
  • depth of scrutiny, pity, and interest, that even from the freshness of
  • my sorrow I was startled into attention.
  • "Enough," he said, "to lamentation. Your mother went to death as to a
  • bridal, dying where her husband died. It is time, Asenath, to think of
  • the survivors. Follow me to the next room."
  • I followed him, like a person in a dream; he made me sit by the fire, he
  • gave me wine to drink; and then, pacing the stone floor, he thus began
  • to address me:
  • "You are now, my child, alone in the world, and under the immediate
  • watch of Brigham Young. It would be your lot, in ordinary circumstances,
  • to become the fiftieth bride of some ignoble elder, or by particular
  • fortune, as fortune is counted in this land, to find favour in the eyes
  • of the President himself. Such a fate for a girl like you were worse
  • than death; better to die as your mother died than to sink daily deeper
  • in the mire of this pit of woman's degradation. But is escape
  • conceivable? Your father tried; and you beheld yourself with what
  • security his jailers acted, and how a dumb drawing on a rock was counted
  • a sufficient sentry over the avenues of freedom. Where your father
  • failed, will you be wiser or more fortunate? or are you, too, helpless
  • in the toils?"
  • I had followed his words with changing emotion, but now I believed I
  • understood.
  • "I see," I cried; "you judge me rightly. I must follow where my parents
  • led; and oh! I am not only willing, I am eager!"
  • "No," replied the doctor, "not death for you. The flawed vessel we may
  • break, but not the perfect. No, your mother cherished a different hope,
  • and so do I. I see," he cried, "the girl develop to the completed woman,
  • the plan reach fulfilment, the promise--ay, outdone! I could not bear to
  • arrest so lively, so comely a process. It was your mother's thought," he
  • added, with a change of tone, "that I should marry you myself." I fear I
  • must have shown a perfect horror of aversion from this fate, for he made
  • haste to quiet me. "Reassure yourself, Asenath," he resumed. "Old as I
  • am, I have not forgotten the tumultuous fancies of youth. I have passed
  • my days, indeed, in laboratories; but in all my vigils I have not
  • forgotten the tune of a young pulse. Age asks with timidity to be spared
  • intolerable pain; youth, taking fortune by the beard, demands joy like a
  • right. These things I have not forgotten; none, rather, has more keenly
  • felt, none more jealously considered them; I have but postponed them to
  • their day. See, then: you stand without support; the only friend left to
  • you, this old investigator, old in cunning, young in sympathy. Answer me
  • but one question: Are you free from the entanglement of what the world
  • calls love? Do you still command your heart and purposes? or are you
  • fallen in some bond-slavery of the eye and ear?"
  • I answered him in broken words; my heart, I think I must have told him,
  • lay with my dead parents.
  • "It is enough," he said. "It has been my fate to be called on often, too
  • often, for those services of which we spoke to-night; none in Utah could
  • carry them so well to a conclusion; hence there has fallen into my hands
  • a certain share of influence which I now lay at your service, partly for
  • the sake of my dead friends, your parents; partly for the interest I
  • bear you in your own right. I shall send you to England, to the great
  • city of London, there to await the bridegroom I have selected. He shall
  • be a son of mine, a young man suitable in age, and not grossly deficient
  • in that quality of beauty that your years demand. Since your heart is
  • free, you may well pledge me the sole promise that I ask in return for
  • much expense and still more danger: to await the arrival of that
  • bridegroom with the delicacy of a wife."
  • I sat awhile stunned. The doctor's marriages, I remembered to have
  • heard, had been unfruitful; and this added perplexity to my distress.
  • But I was alone, as he had said, alone in that dark land; the thought of
  • escape, of any equal marriage, was already enough to revive in me some
  • dawn of hope; and, in what words I know not, I accepted the proposal.
  • He seemed more moved by my consent than I could reasonably have looked
  • for. "You shall see," he cried; "you shall judge for yourself." And
  • hurrying to the next room he returned with a small portrait somewhat
  • coarsely done in oils. It showed a man in the dress of nearly forty
  • years before, young indeed, but still recognisable to be the doctor. "Do
  • you like it?" he asked. "That is myself when I was young. My--my boy
  • will be like that, like, but nobler; with such health as angels might
  • condescend to envy; and a man of mind, Asenath, of commanding mind. That
  • should be a man, I think; that should be one among ten thousand. A man
  • like that--one to combine the passions of youth with the restraint, the
  • force, the dignity of age--one to fill all the parts and faculties, one
  • to be man's epitome--say, will that not satisfy the needs of an
  • ambitious girl? Say, is not that enough?" And as he held the picture
  • close before my eyes, his hand shook.
  • I told him briefly I would ask no better, for I was transpierced with
  • this display of fatherly emotion; but even as I said the words, the most
  • insolent revolt surged through my arteries. I held him in horror, him,
  • his portrait, and his son; and had there been any choice but death or a
  • Mormon marriage, I declare before Heaven I had embraced it.
  • "It is well," he replied, "and I had rightly counted on your spirit.
  • Eat, then, for you have far to go." So saying, he set meat before me;
  • and while I was endeavouring to obey, he left the room and returned with
  • an armful of coarse raiment. "There," said he, "is your disguise. I
  • leave you to your toilet."
  • The clothes had probably belonged to a somewhat lubberly boy of fifteen;
  • and they hung about me like a sack, and cruelly hampered my movements.
  • But what filled me with uncontrollable shudderings was the problem of
  • their origin and the fate of the lad to whom they had belonged. I had
  • scarcely effected the exchange when the doctor returned, opened a back
  • window, helped me out into the narrow space between the house and the
  • overhanging bluffs, and showed me a ladder of iron foot-holds mortised
  • in the rock. "Mount," he said, "swiftly. When you are at the summit,
  • walk, so far as you are able, in the shadow of the smoke. The smoke will
  • bring you, sooner or later, to a cañon; follow that down, and you will
  • find a man with two horses. Him you will implicitly obey. And remember,
  • silence! That machinery which I now put in motion for your service may
  • by one word be turned against you. Go; Heaven prosper you!"
  • The ascent was easy. Arrived at the top of the cliff, I saw before me
  • on the other side a vast and gradual declivity of stone, lying bare to
  • the moon and the surrounding mountains. Nowhere was any vantage or
  • concealment; and knowing how these deserts were beset with spies, I made
  • haste to veil my movements under the blowing trail of smoke. Sometimes
  • it swam high, rising on the night wind, and I had no more substantial
  • curtain than its moon-thrown shadow; sometimes again it crawled upon the
  • earth, and I would walk in it, no higher than to my shoulders, like some
  • mountain fog. But, one way or another, the smoke of that ill-omened
  • furnace protected the first steps of my escape, and led me unobserved to
  • the cañon.
  • There, sure enough, I found a taciturn and sombre man beside a pair of
  • saddle-horses; and thenceforward, all night long, we wandered in silence
  • by the most occult and dangerous paths among the mountains. A little
  • before the dayspring we took refuge in a wet and gusty cavern at the
  • bottom of a gorge; lay there all day concealed; and the next night,
  • before the glow had faded out of the west, resumed our wanderings. About
  • noon we stopped again, in a lawn upon a little river, where was a screen
  • of bushes; and here my guide, handing me a bundle from his pack, bade me
  • change my dress once more. The bundle contained clothing of my own,
  • taken from our house, with such necessaries as a comb and soap. I made
  • my toilet by the mirror of a quiet pool; and as I was so doing and
  • smiling with some complacency to see myself restored to my own image,
  • the mountains rang with a scream of far more than human piercingness;
  • and where I still stood astonished, there sprang up and swiftly
  • increased a storm of the most awful and earth-rending sounds. Shall I
  • own to you that I fell upon my face and shrieked? And yet this was but
  • the overland train winding among the near mountains: the very means of
  • my salvation: the strong wings that were to carry me from Utah!
  • When I was dressed the guide gave me a bag, which contained, he said,
  • both money and papers; and, telling me that I was already over the
  • borders in the territory of Wyoming, bade me follow the stream until I
  • reached the railway station, half a mile below. "Here," he added, "is
  • your ticket as far as Council Bluffs. The East express will pass in a
  • few hours." With that, he took both horses and, without further words or
  • any salutation, rode off by the way that we had come.
  • Three hours afterwards, I was seated on the end platform of the train as
  • it swept eastward through the gorges and thundered in tunnels of the
  • mountains. The change of scene, the sense of escape, the still throbbing
  • terror of pursuit--above all the astounding magic of my new conveyance,
  • kept me from any logical or melancholy thought. I had gone to the
  • doctor's house two nights before prepared to die, prepared for worse
  • than death; what had passed, terrible although it was, looked almost
  • bright compared to my anticipations; and it was not till I had slept a
  • full night in the flying palace car that I awoke to the sense of my
  • irreparable loss and to some reasonable alarm about the future. In this
  • mood I examined the contents of the bag. It was well supplied with gold;
  • it contained tickets and complete directions for my journey as far as
  • Liverpool, and a long letter from the doctor, supplying me with a
  • fictitious name and story, recommending the most guarded silence, and
  • bidding me to await faithfully the coming of his son. All then had been
  • arranged beforehand: he had counted upon my consent, and, what was
  • tenfold worse, upon my mother's voluntary death. My horror of my only
  • friend, my aversion for this son who was to marry me, my revolt against
  • the whole current and conditions of my life, were now complete. I was
  • sitting stupefied by my distress and helplessness, when, to my joy, a
  • very pleasant lady offered me her conversation. I clutched at the
  • relief; and I was soon glibly telling her the story in the doctor's
  • letter: how I was a Miss Gould, of Nevada City, going to England to an
  • uncle, what money I had, what family, my age, and so forth, until I had
  • exhausted my instructions, and, as the lady still continued to ply me
  • with questions, began to embroider on my own account. This soon carried
  • one of my inexperience beyond her depth; and I had already remarked a
  • shadow on the lady's face, when a gentleman drew near and very civilly
  • addressed me:
  • "Miss Gould, I believe?" said he; and then, excusing himself to the lady
  • by the authority of my guardian, drew me to the fore platform of the
  • Pullman car. "Miss Gould," he said in my ear, "is it possible that you
  • suppose yourself in safety? Let me completely undeceive you. One more
  • such indiscretion and you return to Utah. And, in the meanwhile, if this
  • woman should again address you, you are to reply with these words:
  • 'Madam, I do not like you, and I will be obliged if you will suffer me
  • to choose my own associates.'"
  • Alas, I had to do as I was bid; this lady, to whom I already felt myself
  • drawn with the strongest cords of sympathy, I dismissed with insult; and
  • thenceforward, through all that day I sat in silence, gazing on the bare
  • plains and swallowing my tears. Let that suffice: it was the pattern of
  • my journey. Whether on the train, at the hotels, or on board the ocean
  • steamer, I never exchanged a friendly word with any fellow-traveller but
  • I was certain to be interrupted. In every place, on every side, the most
  • unlikely persons, man or woman, rich or poor, became protectors to
  • forward me upon my journey or spies to observe and regulate my conduct.
  • Thus I crossed the States, thus passed the ocean, the Mormon Eye still
  • following my movements; and when at length a cab had set me down before
  • that London lodging-house from which you saw me flee this morning, I had
  • already ceased to struggle and ceased to hope.
  • The landlady, like every one else through all that journey, was
  • expecting my arrival. A fire was lighted in my room, which looked upon
  • the garden; there were books on the table, clothes in the drawers; and
  • there (I had almost said with contentment, and certainly with
  • resignation) I saw month follow month over my head. At times my landlady
  • took me for a walk or an excursion, but she would never suffer me to
  • leave the house alone; and I, seeing that she also lived under the
  • shadow of that widespread Mormon terror, felt too much pity to resist.
  • To the child born on Mormon soil, as to the man who accepts the
  • engagements of a secret order, no escape is possible; so I had clearly
  • read, and I was thankful even for this respite. Meanwhile, I tried
  • honestly to prepare my mind for my approaching nuptials. The day drew
  • near when my bridegroom was to visit me, and gratitude and fear alike
  • obliged me to consent. A son of Dr. Grierson's be he what he pleased,
  • must still be young, and it was even probable he should be handsome; on
  • more than that I felt I dared not reckon; and in moulding my mind
  • towards consent I dwelt the more carefully on these physical attractions
  • which I felt I might expect, and averted my eyes from moral or
  • intellectual considerations. We have a great power upon our spirits; and
  • as time passed I worked myself into a frame of acquiescence, nay, and I
  • began to grow impatient for the hour. At night sleep forsook me; I sat
  • all day by the fire, absorbed in dreams, conjuring up the features of my
  • husband, and anticipating in fancy the touch of his hand and the sound
  • of his voice. In the dead level and solitude of my existence, this was
  • the one eastern window and the one door of hope. At last I had so
  • cultivated and prepared my will, that I began to be besieged with fears
  • upon the other side. How if it was I that did not please? How if this
  • unseen lover should turn from me with disaffection? And now I spent
  • hours before the glass, studying and judging my attractions, and was
  • never weary of changing my dress or ordering my hair.
  • When the day came I was long about my toilet; but at last, with a sort
  • of hopeful desperation, I had to own that I could do no more, and must
  • now stand or fall by nature. My occupation ended, I fell a prey to the
  • most sickening impatience, mingled with alarms; giving ear to the
  • swelling rumour of the streets, and at each change of sound or silence,
  • starting, shrinking, and colouring to the brow. Love is not to be
  • prepared, I know, without some knowledge of the object; and yet, when
  • the cab at last rattled to the door, and I heard my visitor mount the
  • stairs, such was the tumult of hopes in my poor bosom that love itself
  • might have been proud to own their parentage. The door opened, and it
  • was Dr. Grierson that appeared. I believe I must have screamed aloud,
  • and I know, at least, that I fell fainting to the floor.
  • When I came to myself he was standing over me, counting my pulse. "I
  • have startled you," he said. "A difficulty unforeseen--the impossibility
  • of obtaining a certain drug in its full purity--has forced me to resort
  • to London unprepared. I regret that I should have shown myself once more
  • without those poor attractions which are much, perhaps, to you, but to
  • me are no more considerable than rain that falls into the sea. Youth is
  • but a state, as passing as that syncope from which you are but just
  • awakened, and, if there be truth in science, as easy to recall; for I
  • find, Asenath, that I must now take you for my confidant. Since my first
  • years I have devoted every hour and act of life to one ambitious task;
  • and the time of my success is at hand. In these new countries, where I
  • was so long content to stay, I collected indispensable ingredients; I
  • have fortified myself on every side from the possibility of error; what
  • was a dream now takes the substance of reality; and when I offered you a
  • son of mine I did so in a figure. That son--that husband, Asenath, is
  • myself--not as you now behold me, but restored to the first energy of
  • youth. You think me mad? It is the customary attitude of ignorance. I
  • will not argue; I will leave facts to speak. When you behold me
  • purified, invigorated, renewed, restamped in the original image--when
  • you recognise in me (what I shall be) the first perfect expression of
  • the powers of mankind--I shall be able to laugh with a better grace at
  • your passing and natural incredulity. To what can you aspire--fame,
  • riches, power, the charm of youth, the dear-bought wisdom of age--that I
  • shall not be able to afford you in perfection? Do not deceive yourself.
  • I already excel you in every human gift but one: when that gift also has
  • been restored to me you will recognise your master."
  • Hereupon, consulting his watch, he told me he must now leave me to
  • myself; and bidding me consult reason, and not girlish fancies, he
  • withdrew. I had not the courage to move; the night fell, and found me
  • still where he had laid me during my faint, my face buried in my hands,
  • my soul drowned in the darkest apprehensions. Late in the evening he
  • returned, carrying a candle, and, with a certain irritable tremor, bade
  • me rise and sup. "Is it possible," he added, "that I have been deceived
  • in your courage? A cowardly girl is no fit mate for me."
  • I flung myself before him on my knees, and with floods of tears besought
  • him to release me from this engagement, assuring him that my cowardice
  • was abject, and that in every point of intellect and character I was his
  • hopeless and derisible inferior.
  • "Why, certainly," he replied. "I know you better than yourself; and I am
  • well enough acquainted with human nature to understand this scene. It is
  • addressed to me," he added with a smile, "in my character of the still
  • untransformed. But do not alarm yourself about the future. Let me but
  • attain my end, and not you only, Asenath, but every woman on the face of
  • the earth becomes my willing slave."
  • Thereupon he obliged me to rise and eat; sat down with me to table;
  • helped and entertained me with the attentions of a fashionable host; and
  • it was not till a late hour that, bidding me courteously good-night, he
  • once more left me alone to my misery.
  • In all this talk of an elixir and the restoration of his youth, I
  • scarce knew from which hypothesis I should the more eagerly recoil. If
  • his hopes reposed on any base of fact, if, indeed, by some abhorrent
  • miracle, he should discard his age, death were my only refuge from that
  • most unnatural, that most ungodly union. If, on the other hand, these
  • dreams were merely lunatic, the madness of a life waxed suddenly acute,
  • my pity would become a load almost as heavy to bear as my revolt against
  • the marriage. So passed the night, in alternations of rebellion and
  • despair, of hate and pity; and with the next morning I was only to
  • comprehend more fully my enslaved position. For though he appeared with
  • a very tranquil countenance, he had no sooner observed the marks of
  • grief upon my brow than an answering darkness gathered on his own.
  • "Asenath," he said, "you owe me much already; with one finger I still
  • hold you suspended over death; my life is full of labour and anxiety;
  • and I choose," said he, with a remarkable accent of command, "that you
  • shall greet me with a pleasant face." He never needed to repeat the
  • recommendation: from that day forward I was always ready to receive him
  • with apparent cheerfulness; and he rewarded me with a good deal of his
  • company, and almost more than I could bear of his confidence. He had set
  • up a laboratory in the back part of the house, where he toiled day and
  • night at his elixir, and he would come thence to visit me in my parlour:
  • now with passing humours of discouragement; now, and far more often,
  • radiant with hope. It was impossible to see so much of him, and not to
  • recognise that the sands of his life were running low; and yet all the
  • time he would be laying out vast fields of future, and planning, with
  • all the confidence of youth, the most unbounded schemes of pleasure and
  • ambition. How I replied I know not; but I found a voice and words to
  • answer, even while I wept and raged to hear him.
  • A week ago the doctor entered my room with the marks of great
  • exhilaration contending with pitiful bodily weakness. "Asenath," said
  • he, "I have now obtained the last ingredient. In one week from now the
  • perilous moment of the last projection will draw nigh. You have once
  • before assisted, although unconsciously, at the failure of a similar
  • experiment. It was the elixir which so terribly exploded one night when
  • you were passing my house; and it is idle to deny that the conduct of so
  • delicate a process, among the million jars and trepidations of so great
  • a city, presents a certain element of danger. From this point of view, I
  • cannot but regret the perfect stillness of my house among the deserts;
  • but, on the other hand, I have succeeded in proving that the singularly
  • unstable equilibrium of the elixir, at the moment of projection, is due
  • rather to the impurity than to the nature of the ingredients; and as all
  • are now of an equal and exquisite nicety, I have little fear for the
  • result. In a week then from to-day, my dear Asenath, this period of
  • trial will be ended." And he smiled upon me in a manner unusually
  • paternal.
  • I smiled back with my lips, but at my heart there raged the blackest and
  • most unbridled terror. What if he failed? And oh, tenfold worse! what if
  • he succeeded? What detested and unnatural changeling would appear before
  • me to claim my hand? And could there, I asked myself with a dreadful
  • sinking, be any truth in his boasts of an assured victory over my
  • reluctance? I knew him, indeed, to be masterful, to lead my life at a
  • sign. Suppose, then, this experiment to succeed; suppose him to return
  • to me, hideously restored, like a vampire in a legend; and suppose that,
  • by some devilish fascination.... My head turned; all former fears
  • deserted me; and I felt I could embrace the worst in preference to this.
  • My mind was instantly made up. The doctor's presence in London was
  • justified by the affairs of the Mormon polity. Often, in our
  • conversation, he would gloat over the details of that great
  • organisation, which he feared even while yet he wielded it; and would
  • remind me that, even in the humming labyrinth of London, we were still
  • visible to that unsleeping eye in Utah. His visitors, indeed, who were
  • of every sort, from the missionary to the destroying angel, and seemed
  • to belong to every rank of life, had, up to that moment, filled me with
  • unmixed repulsion and alarm. I knew that if my secret were to reach the
  • ear of any leader my fate were sealed beyond redemption; and yet in my
  • present pass of horror and despair, it was to these very men that I
  • turned for help. I waylaid upon the stair one of the Mormon
  • missionaries, a man of a low class, but not inaccessible to pity; told
  • him I scarce remember what elaborate fable to explain my application;
  • and by his intermediacy entered into correspondence with my father's
  • family. They recognised my claim for help, and on this very day I was to
  • begin my escape.
  • Last night I sat up fully dressed, awaiting the result of the doctor's
  • labours, and prepared against the worst. The nights at this season and
  • in this northern latitude are short; and I had soon the company of the
  • returning daylight. The silence in and around the house was only broken
  • by the movements of the doctor in the laboratory; to these I listened,
  • watch in hand, awaiting the hour of my escape, and yet consumed by
  • anxiety about the strange experiment that was going forward overhead.
  • Indeed, now that I was conscious of some protection for myself, my
  • sympathies had turned more directly to the doctor's side; I caught
  • myself even praying for his success; and when some hours ago a low,
  • peculiar cry reached my ears from the laboratory, I could no longer
  • control my impatience, but mounted the stairs and opened the door.
  • The doctor was standing in the middle of the room; in his hand a large,
  • round-bellied, crystal flask, some three parts full of a bright
  • amber-coloured liquid; on his face a rapture of gratitude and joy
  • unspeakable. As he saw me he raised the flask at arm's-length.
  • "Victory!" he cried. "Victory, Asenath!" And then--whether the flask
  • escaped his trembling fingers, or whether the explosion was spontaneous,
  • I cannot tell--enough that we were thrown, I against the door-post, the
  • doctor into the corner of the room; enough that we were shaken to the
  • soul by the same explosion that must have startled you upon the street;
  • and that, in the brief space of an indistinguishable instant, there
  • remained nothing of the labours of the doctor's lifetime but a few
  • shards of broken crystal and those voluminous and ill-smelling vapours
  • that pursued me in my flight.
  • FOOTNOTE:
  • [2] In this name the accent falls upon the _e_; the _s_ is sibilant.
  • THE SQUIRE OF DAMES (_concluded_)
  • What with the lady's animated manner and dramatic conduct of her voice,
  • Challoner had thrilled to every incident with genuine emotion. His
  • fancy, which was not perhaps of a very lively character, applauded both
  • the matter and the style; but the more judicial functions of his mind
  • refused assent. It was an excellent story; and it might be true, but he
  • believed it was not. Miss Fonblanque was a lady, and it was doubtless
  • possible for a lady to wander from the truth; but how was a gentleman to
  • tell her so? His spirits for some time had been sinking, but they now
  • fell to zero; and long after her voice had died away he still sat with a
  • troubled and averted countenance, and could find no form of words to
  • thank her for her narrative. His mind, indeed, was empty of everything
  • beyond a dull longing for escape. From this pause, which grew the more
  • embarrassing with every second, he was roused by the sudden laughter of
  • the lady. His vanity was alarmed; he turned and faced her; their eyes
  • met; and he caught from hers a spark of such frank merriment as put him
  • instantly at ease.
  • "You certainly," he said, "appear to bear your calamities with excellent
  • spirit."
  • "Do I not?" she cried, and fell once more into delicious laughter. But
  • from this access she more speedily recovered. "This is all very well,"
  • said she, nodding at him gravely, "but I am still in a most distressing
  • situation, from which, if you deny me your help, I shall find it
  • difficult indeed to free myself."
  • At this mention of help Challoner fell back to his original gloom.
  • "My sympathies are much engaged with you," he said, "and I should be
  • delighted, I am sure. But our position is most unusual; and
  • circumstances over which I have, I can assure you, no control, deprive
  • me of the power--the pleasure----Unless, indeed," he added, somewhat
  • brightening at the thought, "I were to recommend you to the care of the
  • police?"
  • She laid her hand upon his arm and looked hard into his eyes; and he saw
  • with wonder that, for the first time since the moment of their meeting,
  • every trace of colour had faded from her cheek.
  • "Do so," she said, "and--weigh my words well--you kill me as certainly
  • as with a knife."
  • "God bless me!" exclaimed Challoner.
  • "Oh," she cried, "I can see you disbelieve my story, and make light of
  • the perils that surround me; but who are you to judge? My family share
  • my apprehensions; they help me in secret; and you saw yourself by what
  • an emissary, and in what a place, they have chosen to supply me with the
  • funds for my escape. I admit that you are brave and clever, and have
  • impressed me most favourably; but how are you to prefer your opinion
  • before that of my uncle, an ex-minister of State, a man with the ear of
  • the Queen, and of a long political experience? If I am mad, is he? And
  • you must allow me, besides, a special claim upon your help. Strange as
  • you may think my story, you know that much of it is true; and if you who
  • heard the explosion, and saw the Mormon at Victoria, refuse to credit
  • and assist me, to whom am I to turn?"
  • "He gave you money then?" asked Challoner, who had been dwelling singly
  • on that fact.
  • "I begin to interest you," she cried. "But, frankly, you are condemned
  • to help me. If the service I had to ask of you were serious, were
  • suspicious, were even unusual, I should say no more. But what is it? To
  • take a pleasure trip (for which, if you will suffer me, I propose to
  • pay) and to carry from one lady to another a sum of money! What can be
  • more simple?"
  • "Is the sum," asked Challoner, "considerable?"
  • She produced a packet from her bosom; and observing that she had not yet
  • found time to make the count, tore open the cover and spread upon her
  • knees a considerable number of Bank of England notes. It took some time
  • to make the reckoning, for the notes were of every degree of value; but
  • at last, and counting a few loose sovereigns, she made out the sum to be
  • a little under £710 sterling. The sight of so much money worked an
  • immediate revolution in the mind of Challoner.
  • "And you propose, madam," he cried, "to intrust that money to a perfect
  • stranger?"
  • "Ah!" said she, with a charming smile, "but I no longer regard you as a
  • stranger."
  • "Madam," said Challoner, "I perceive I must make you a confession.
  • Although of a very good family--through my mother, indeed, a lineal
  • descendant of the patriot Bruce--I dare not conceal from you that my
  • affairs are deeply, very deeply, involved. I am in debt; my pockets are
  • practically empty; and, in short, I am fallen to that state when a
  • considerable sum of money would prove to many men an irresistible
  • temptation."
  • "Do you not see," returned the young lady, "that by these words you have
  • removed my last hesitation? Take them." And she thrust the notes into
  • the young man's hand.
  • He sat so long, holding them, like a baby at the font, that Miss
  • Fonblanque once more bubbled into laughter.
  • "Pray," she said, "hesitate no further; put them in your pocket; and to
  • relieve our position of any shadow of embarrassment, tell me by what
  • name I am to address my knight-errant, for I find myself reduced to the
  • awkwardness of the pronoun."
  • Had borrowing been in question, the wisdom of our ancestors had come
  • lightly to the young man's aid; but upon what pretext could he refuse so
  • generous a trust? Upon none, he saw, that was not unpardonably wounding;
  • and the bright eyes and the high spirits of his companion had already
  • made a breach in the rampart of Challoner's caution. The whole thing, he
  • reasoned, might be a mere mystification, which it were the height of
  • solemn folly to resent. On the other hand, the explosion, the interview
  • at the public-house, and the very money in his hands, seemed to prove
  • beyond denial the existence of some serious danger; and if that were so,
  • could he desert her? There was a choice of risks: the risk of behaving
  • with extraordinary incivility and unhandsomeness to a lady, and the risk
  • of going on a fool's errand. The story seemed false; but then the money
  • was undeniable. The whole circumstances were questionable and obscure;
  • but the lady was charming, and had the speech and manners of society.
  • While he still hung in the wind, a recollection returned upon his mind
  • with some of the dignity of prophecy. Had he not promised Somerset to
  • break with the traditions of the commonplace, and to accept the first
  • adventure offered? Well, here was the adventure.
  • He thrust the money into his pocket.
  • "My name is Challoner," said he.
  • "Mr. Challoner," she replied, "you have come very generously to my aid
  • when all was against me. Though I am myself a very humble person, my
  • family commands great interest; and I do not think you will repent this
  • handsome action."
  • Challoner flushed with pleasure.
  • "I imagine that, perhaps, a consulship," she added, her eyes dwelling on
  • him with a judicial admiration, "a consulship in some great town or
  • capital--or else----But we waste time; let us set about the work of my
  • delivery."
  • She took his arm with a frank confidence that went to his heart; and
  • once more laying by all serious thoughts, she entertained him, as they
  • crossed the park, with her agreeable gaiety of mind. Near the Marble
  • Arch they found a hansom, which rapidly conveyed them to the terminus at
  • Euston Square; and here, in the hotel, they sat down to an excellent
  • breakfast. The young lady's first step was to call for writing
  • materials, and write, upon one corner of the table, a hasty note; still,
  • as she did so, glancing with smiles at her companion. "Here," said she,
  • "here is the letter which will introduce you to my cousin." She began to
  • fold the paper. "My cousin, although I have never seen her, has the
  • character of a very charming woman and a recognised beauty; of that I
  • know nothing, but at least she has been very kind to me; so has my lord
  • her father; so have you--kinder than all--kinder than I can bear to
  • think of." She said this with unusual emotion; and, at the same time,
  • sealed the envelope. "Ah!" she cried, "I have shut my letter! It is not
  • quite courteous; and yet, as between friends, it is perhaps better so. I
  • introduce you, after all, into a family secret; and though you and I are
  • already old comrades, you are still unknown to my uncle. You go, then,
  • to this address, Richard Street, Glasgow; go, please, as soon as you
  • arrive; and give this letter with your own hands into those of Miss
  • Fonblanque, for that is the name by which she is to pass. When we next
  • meet, you will tell me what you think of her," she added, with a touch
  • of the provocative.
  • "Ah," said Challoner, almost tenderly, "she can be nothing to me."
  • "You do not know," replied the young lady, with a sigh. "By the by, I
  • had forgotten--it is very childish, and I am almost ashamed to mention
  • it--but when you see Miss Fonblanque, you will have to make yourself a
  • little ridiculous; and I am sure the part in no way suits you. We had
  • agreed upon a watchword. You will have to address an earl's daughter in
  • these words: '_Nigger_, _nigger, never die_'; but reassure yourself,"
  • she added, laughing, "for the fair patrician will at once finish the
  • quotation. Come now, say your lesson."
  • "'Nigger, nigger, never die,'" repeated Challoner, with undisguised
  • reluctance.
  • Miss Fonblanque went into fits of laughter. "Excellent," said she, "it
  • will be the most humorous scene!" And she laughed again.
  • "And what will be the counterword?" asked Challoner stiffly.
  • "I will not tell you till the last moment," said she; "for I perceive
  • you are growing too imperious."
  • Breakfast over, she accompanied the young man to the platform, bought
  • him the _Graphic_, the _Athenæum_, and a paper-cutter, and stood on the
  • step conversing till the whistle sounded. Then she put her head into the
  • carriage. "_Black face and shining eye!_" she whispered, and instantly
  • leaped down upon the platform, with a trill of gay and musical laughter.
  • As the train steamed out of the great arch of glass, the sound of that
  • laughter still rang in the young man's ears.
  • Challoner's position was too unusual to be long welcome to his mind. He
  • found himself projected the whole length of England, on a mission beset
  • with obscure and ridiculous circumstances, and yet, by the trust he had
  • accepted, irrevocably bound to persevere. How easy it appeared, in the
  • retrospect, to have refused the whole proposal, returned the money, and
  • gone forth again upon his own affairs, a free and happy man! And it was
  • now impossible: the enchantress who had held him with her eye had now
  • disappeared, taking his honour in pledge; and as she had failed to leave
  • him an address, he was denied even the inglorious safety of retreat. To
  • use the paper-knife, or even to read the periodicals with which she had
  • presented him, was to renew the bitterness of his remorse; and as he was
  • alone in the compartment, he passed the day staring at the landscape in
  • impotent repentance, and long before he was landed on the platform of
  • St. Enoch's, had fallen to the lowest and coldest zones of
  • self-contempt.
  • As he was hungry, and elegant in his habits, he would have preferred to
  • dine and to remove the stains of travel; but the words of the young
  • lady, and his own impatient eagerness, would suffer no delay. In the
  • late, luminous, and lamp-starred dusk of the summer evening he
  • accordingly set forward with brisk steps.
  • The street to which he was directed had first seen the day in the
  • character of a row of small suburban villas on a hillside; but the
  • extension of the city had, long since and on every hand, surrounded it
  • with miles of streets. From the top of the hill a range of very tall
  • buildings, densely inhabited by the poorest classes of the population
  • and variegated by drying-poles from every second window, overplumbed the
  • villas and their little gardens like a sea-board cliff. But still, under
  • the grime of years of city smoke, these antiquated cottages, with their
  • venetian blinds and rural porticoes, retained a somewhat melancholy
  • savour of the past.
  • The street, when Challoner entered it, was perfectly deserted. From hard
  • by, indeed, the sound of a thousand footfalls filled the ear; but in
  • Richard Street itself there was neither light nor sound of human
  • habitation. The appearance of the neighbourhood weighed heavily on the
  • mind of the young man; once more, as in the streets of London, he was
  • impressed by the sense of city deserts; and as he approached the number
  • indicated, and somewhat falteringly rang the bell, his heart sank within
  • him.
  • The bell was ancient, like the house; it had a thin and garrulous note;
  • and it was some time before it ceased to sound from the rear quarters of
  • the building. Following upon this an inner door was stealthily opened,
  • and careful and catlike steps drew near along the hall. Challoner,
  • supposing he was to be instantly admitted, produced his letter and, as
  • well as he was able, prepared a smiling face. To his indescribable
  • surprise, however, the footsteps ceased, and then, after a pause and
  • with the like stealthiness, withdrew once more, and died away in the
  • interior of the house. A second time the young man rang violently at the
  • bell; a second time, to his keen hearkening, a certain bustle of
  • discreet footing moved upon the hollow boards of the old villa; and
  • again the faint-hearted garrison only drew near to retreat. The cup of
  • the visitor's endurance was now full to overflowing; and, committing the
  • whole family of Fonblanque to every mood and shade of condemnation, he
  • turned upon his heel and redescended the steps. Perhaps the mover in the
  • house was watching from a window, and plucked up courage at the sight of
  • this desistance; or perhaps, where he lurked trembling in the back parts
  • of the villa, reason in its own right had conquered his alarms.
  • Challoner, at least, had scarce set foot upon the pavement when he was
  • arrested by the sound of the withdrawal of an inner bolt; one followed
  • another, rattling in their sockets; the key turned harshly in the lock;
  • the door opened; and there appeared upon the threshold a man of a very
  • stalwart figure in his shirt sleeves. He was a person neither of great
  • manly beauty nor of a refined exterior; he was not the man, in ordinary
  • moods, to attract the eyes of the observer; but as he now stood in the
  • doorway he was marked so legibly with the extreme passion of terror that
  • Challoner stood wonder-struck. For a fraction of a minute they gazed
  • upon each other in silence; and then the man of the house, with ashen
  • lips and gasping voice, inquired the business of his visitor. Challoner
  • replied, in tones from which he strove to banish his surprise, that he
  • was the bearer of a letter to a certain Miss Fonblanque. At this name,
  • as at a talisman, the man fell back and impatiently invited him to
  • enter; and no sooner had the adventurer crossed the threshold than the
  • door was closed behind him and his retreat cut off.
  • It was already long past eight at night; and though the late twilight of
  • the north still lingered in the streets, in the passage it was already
  • groping dark. The man led Challoner directly to a parlour looking on
  • the garden to the back. Here he had apparently been supping; for by the
  • light of a tallow dip, the table was seen to be covered with a napkin,
  • and set out with a quart of bottled ale and the heel of a Gouda cheese.
  • The room, on the other hand, was furnished with faded solidity, and the
  • walls were lined with scholarly and costly volumes in glazed cases. The
  • house must have been taken furnished; for it had no congruity with this
  • man of the shirt sleeves and the mean supper. As for the earl's
  • daughter, the earl and the visionary consulships in foreign cities, they
  • had long ago begun to fade in Challoner's imagination. Like Dr. Grierson
  • and the Mormon angels, they were plainly woven of the stuff of dreams.
  • Not an illusion remained to the knight-errant; not a hope was left him
  • but to be speedily relieved from this disreputable business.
  • The man had continued to regard his visitor with undisguised anxiety,
  • and began once more to press him for his errand.
  • "I am here," said Challoner, "simply to do a service between two ladies;
  • and I must ask you, without further delay, to summon Miss Fonblanque,
  • into whose hands alone I am authorised to deliver the letter that I
  • bear."
  • A growing wonder began to mingle on the man's face with the lines of
  • solicitude. "I am Miss Fonblanque," he said; and then, perceiving the
  • effect of this communication, "Good God!" he cried, "what are you
  • staring at? I tell you I am Miss Fonblanque."
  • Seeing the speaker wore a chin-beard of considerable length, and the
  • remainder of his face was blue with shaving, Challoner could only
  • suppose himself the subject of a jest. He was no longer under the spell
  • of the young lady's presence; and with men, and above all with his
  • inferiors, he was capable of some display of spirit.
  • "Sir," said he, pretty roundly, "I have put myself to great
  • inconvenience for persons of whom I know too little, and I begin to be
  • weary of the business. Either you shall immediately summon Miss
  • Fonblanque, or I leave this house and put myself under the direction of
  • the police."
  • "This is horrible!" exclaimed the man. "I declare before Heaven I am the
  • person meant, but how shall I convince you? It must have been Clara, I
  • perceive, that sent you on this errand--a madwoman, who jests with the
  • most deadly interests; and here we are, incapable, perhaps, of an
  • agreement, and Heaven knows what may depend on our delay!"
  • He spoke with a really startling earnestness; and at the same time there
  • flashed upon the mind of Challoner the ridiculous jingle which was to
  • serve as password. "This may, perhaps, assist you," he said; and then,
  • with some embarrassment: "'Nigger, nigger, never die.'"
  • A light of relief broke upon the troubled countenance of the man with
  • the chin-beard. "'Black face and shining eye'--give me the letter," he
  • panted, in one gasp.
  • "Well," said Challoner, though still with some reluctance, "I suppose I
  • must regard you as the proper recipient; and though I may justly
  • complain of the spirit in which I have been treated, I am only too glad
  • to be done with all responsibility. Here it is," and he produced the
  • envelope.
  • The man leaped upon it like a beast, and with hands that trembled in a
  • manner painful to behold, tore it open and unfolded the letter. As he
  • read, terror seemed to mount upon him to the pitch of nightmare. He
  • struck one hand upon his brow, while with the other, as if
  • unconsciously, he crumpled the paper to a ball. "My gracious powers!" he
  • cried; and then, dashing to the window, which stood open on the garden,
  • he clapped forth his head and shoulders and whistled long and shrill.
  • Challoner fell back into a corner, and resolutely grasping his staff,
  • prepared for the most desperate events; but the thoughts of the man with
  • the chin-beard were far removed from violence. Turning again into the
  • room, and once more beholding his visitor, whom he appeared to have
  • forgotten, he fairly danced with trepidation. "Impossible!" he cried.
  • "Oh, quite impossible! O Lord, I have lost my head." And then, once
  • more striking his hand upon his brow, "The money!" he exclaimed. "Give
  • me the money."
  • "My good friend," replied Challoner, "this is a very painful exhibition;
  • and until I see you reasonably master of yourself, I decline to proceed
  • with any business."
  • "You are quite right," said the man. "I am of a very nervous habit; a
  • long course of the dumb ague has undermined my constitution. But I know
  • you have money; it may be still the saving of me; and oh, dear young
  • gentleman, in pity's name be expeditious!"
  • Challoner, sincerely uneasy as he was, could scarce refrain from
  • laughter; but he was himself in a hurry to be gone, and without more
  • delay produced the money. "You will find the sum, I trust, correct," he
  • observed; "and let me ask you to give me a receipt."
  • But the man heeded him not. He seized the money, and disregarding the
  • sovereigns that rolled loose upon the floor, thrust the bundle of notes
  • into his pocket.
  • "A receipt," repeated Challoner, with some asperity. "I insist on a
  • receipt."
  • "Receipt?" repeated the man, a little wildly. "A receipt? Immediately!
  • Await me here."
  • Challoner, in reply, begged the gentleman to lose no unnecessary time,
  • as he was himself desirous of catching a particular train.
  • "Ah, by God, and so am I!" exclaimed the man with the chin-beard; and
  • with that he was gone out of the room, and had rattled upstairs, four at
  • a time, to the upper story of the villa.
  • "This is certainly a most amazing business," thought Challoner;
  • "certainly a most disquieting affair; and I cannot conceal from myself
  • that I have become mixed up with either lunatics or malefactors. I may
  • truly thank my stars that I am so nearly and so creditably done with
  • it." Thus thinking, and perhaps remembering the episode of the whistle,
  • he turned to the open window. The garden was still faintly clear; he
  • could distinguish the stairs and terraces with which the small domain
  • had been adorned by former owners, and the blackened bushes and dead
  • trees that had once afforded shelter to the country birds; beyond these
  • he saw the strong retaining wall, some thirty feet in height, which
  • enclosed the garden to the back; and again above that, the pile of dingy
  • buildings rearing its frontage high into the night. A peculiar object
  • lying stretched upon the lawn for some time baffled his eyesight; but at
  • length he had made it out to be a long ladder, or series of ladders
  • bound into one; and he was still wondering of what service so great an
  • instrument could be in such a scant enclosure, when he was recalled to
  • himself by the noise of some one running violently down the stairs. This
  • was followed by the sudden, clamorous banging of the house door; and
  • that again, by rapid and retreating footsteps in the street.
  • Challoner sprang into the passage. He ran from room to room, upstairs
  • and downstairs; and in that old dingy and worm-eaten house, he found
  • himself alone. Only in one apartment looking to the front were there any
  • traces of the late inhabitant: a bed that had been recently slept in and
  • not made, a chest of drawers disordered by a hasty search and on the
  • floor a roll of crumpled paper. This he picked up. The light in this
  • upper story looking to the front was considerably brighter than in the
  • parlour; and he was able to make out that the paper bore the mark of the
  • hotel at Euston, and even, by peering closely, to decipher the following
  • lines in a very elegant and careful female hand:
  • "DEAR M'GUIRE,--It is certain your retreat is known. We have just had
  • another failure, clockwork thirty hours too soon, with the usual
  • humiliating result. Zero is quite disheartened. We are all scattered,
  • and I could find no one but the _solemn ass_ who brings you this and
  • the money. I would love to see your meeting.--Ever yours,
  • "SHINING EYE."
  • Challoner was stricken to the heart. He perceived by what facility, by
  • what unmanly fear of ridicule, he had been brought down to be the gull
  • of this intriguer; and his wrath flowed forth in almost equal measure
  • against himself, against the woman, and against Somerset, whose idle
  • counsels had impelled him to embark on that adventure. At the same time
  • a great and troubled curiosity, and a certain chill of fear, possessed
  • his spirits. The conduct of the man with the chin-beard, the terms of
  • the letter, and the explosion of the early morning, fitted together like
  • parts in some obscure and mischievous imbroglio. Evil was certainly
  • afoot; evil, secrecy, terror, and falsehood were the conditions and the
  • passions of the people among whom he had begun to move, like a blind
  • puppet; and he who began as a puppet, his experience told him, was often
  • doomed to perish as a victim.
  • From the stupor of deep thought into which he had glided with the letter
  • in his hand, he was awakened by the clatter of the bell. He glanced from
  • the window; and conceive his horror and surprise when he beheld,
  • clustered on the steps, in the front garden and on the pavement of the
  • street, a formidable posse of police! He started to the full possession
  • of his powers and courage. Escape, and escape at any cost, was the one
  • idea that possessed him. Swiftly and silently he redescended the
  • creaking stairs; he was already in the passage when a second and more
  • imperious summons from the door awoke the echoes of the empty house; nor
  • had the bell ceased to jangle before he had bestridden the window-sill
  • of the parlour and was lowering himself into the garden. His coat was
  • hooked upon the iron flower-basket; for a moment he hung dependent heels
  • and head below; and then, with the noise of rending cloth and followed
  • by several pots, he dropped upon the sod. Once more the bell was rung,
  • and now with furious and repeated peals. The desperate Challoner turned
  • his eyes on every side. They fell upon the ladder, and he ran to it, and
  • with strenuous but unavailing effort sought to raise it from the ground.
  • Suddenly the weight, which was thus resisting his whole strength, began
  • to lighten in his hands; the ladder, like a thing of life, reared its
  • bulk from off the sod; and Challoner, leaping back with a cry of almost
  • superstitious terror, beheld the whole structure mount, foot by foot,
  • against the face of the retaining-wall. At the same time, two heads were
  • dimly visible above the parapet, and he was hailed by a guarded whistle.
  • Something in its modulation recalled, like an echo, the whistle of the
  • man with the chin-beard.
  • Had he chanced upon a means of escape prepared beforehand by those very
  • miscreants, whose messenger and gull he had become? Was this, indeed, a
  • means of safety, or but the starting-point of further complication and
  • disaster? He paused not to reflect. Scarce was the ladder reared to its
  • full length than he had sprung already on the rounds; hand over hand,
  • swift as an ape, he scaled the tottering stairway. Strong arms received,
  • embraced, and helped him; he was lifted and set once more upon the
  • earth; and with the spasm of his alarm yet unsubsided, found himself, in
  • the company of two rough-looking men, in the paved back-yard of one of
  • the tall houses that crowned the summit of the hill. Meanwhile, from
  • below, the note of the bell had been succeeded by the sound of vigorous
  • and redoubling blows.
  • "Are you all out?" asked one of his companions; and as soon as he had
  • babbled an answer in the affirmative, the rope was cut from the top
  • round, and the ladder thrust roughly back into the garden, where it fell
  • and broke with clattering reverberations. Its fall was hailed with many
  • broken cries; for the whole of Richard Street was now in high emotion,
  • the people crowding to the windows or clambering on the garden walls.
  • The same man who had already addressed Challoner seized him by the arm;
  • whisked him through the basement of the house and across the street upon
  • the other side; and before the unfortunate adventurer had time to
  • realise his situation, a door was opened, and he was thrust into a low
  • and dark compartment.
  • "Bedad," observed his guide, "there was no time to lose. Is M'Guire
  • gone, or was it you that whistled?"
  • "M'Guire is gone," said Challoner.
  • The guide now struck a light. "Ah," said he, "this will never do. You
  • dare not go upon the streets in such a figure. Wait quietly here and I
  • will bring you something decent."
  • With that the man was gone, and Challoner, his attention thus rudely
  • awakened, began ruefully to consider the havoc that had been worked in
  • his attire. His hat was gone; his trousers were cruelly ripped; and the
  • best part of one tail of his very elegant frock-coat had been left
  • hanging from the iron crockets of the window. He had scarce had time to
  • measure these disasters when his host re-entered the apartment and
  • proceeded, without a word, to envelop the refined and urbane Challoner
  • in a long ulster of the cheapest material and of a pattern so gross and
  • vulgar that his spirit sickened at the sight. This calumnious disguise
  • was crowned and completed by a soft felt hat of the Tyrolese design and
  • several sizes too small. At another moment Challoner would simply have
  • refused to issue forth upon the world thus travestied; but the desire to
  • escape from Glasgow was now too strongly and too exclusively impressed
  • upon his mind. With one haggard glance at the spotted tails of his new
  • coat, he inquired what was to pay for this accoutrement. The man assured
  • him that the whole expense was easily met from funds in his possession,
  • and begged him, instead of wasting time, to make his best speed out of
  • the neighbourhood.
  • The young man was not loath to take the hint. True to his usual
  • courtesy, he thanked the speaker and complimented him upon his taste in
  • greatcoats; and leaving the man somewhat abashed by these remarks and
  • the manner of their delivery, he hurried forth into the lamp-lit city.
  • The last train was gone ere, after many deviations, he had reached the
  • terminus. Attired as he was he dared not present himself at any
  • reputable inn; and he felt keenly that the unassuming dignity of his
  • demeanour would serve to attract attention, perhaps mirth, and possibly
  • suspicion, in any humbler hostelry. He was thus condemned to pass the
  • solemn and uneventful hours of a whole night in pacing the streets of
  • Glasgow; supperless; a figure of fun for all beholders; waiting the
  • dawn, with hope indeed, but with unconquerable shrinkings; and above all
  • things, filled with a profound sense of the folly and weakness of his
  • conduct. It may be conceived with what curses he assailed the memory of
  • the fair narrator of Hyde Park; her parting laughter rang in his ears
  • all night with damning mockery and iteration; and when he could spare a
  • thought from this chief artificer of his confusion, it was to expend his
  • wrath on Somerset and the career of the amateur detective. With the
  • coming of the day, he found in a shy milk-shop the means to appease his
  • hunger. There were still many hours to wait before the departure of the
  • south express; these he passed wandering with indescribable fatigue in
  • the obscurer by-streets of the city; and at length slipped quietly into
  • the station and took his place in the darkest corner of a third-class
  • carriage. Here, all day long, he jolted on the bare boards, distressed
  • by heat and continually reawakened from uneasy slumbers. By the half
  • return ticket in his purse, he was entitled to make the journey on the
  • easy cushions and with the ample space of the first-class; but alas! in
  • his absurd attire, he durst not, for decency, commingle with his equals;
  • and this small annoyance, coming last in such a series of disasters, cut
  • him to the heart.
  • That night, when, in his Putney lodging, he reviewed the expense,
  • anxiety, and weariness of his adventure; when he beheld the ruins of his
  • last good trousers and his last presentable coat; and above all, when
  • his eye by any chance alighted on the Tyrolese hat or the degrading
  • ulster, his heart would overflow with bitterness, and it was only by a
  • serious call on his philosophy that he maintained the dignity of his
  • demeanour.
  • SOMERSET'S ADVENTURE
  • THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION
  • Mr. Paul Somerset was a young gentleman of a lively and fiery
  • imagination, with very small capacity for action. He was one who lived
  • exclusively in dreams and in the future: the creature of his own
  • theories, and an actor in his own romances. From the cigar divan he
  • proceeded to parade the streets, still heated with the fire of his
  • eloquence, and scouting upon every side for the offer of some fortunate
  • adventure. In the continual stream of passers-by, on the sealed fronts
  • of houses, on the posters that covered the hoardings, and in every
  • lineament and throb of the great city, he saw a mysterious and hopeful
  • hieroglyph. But although the elements of adventure were streaming by him
  • as thick as drops of water in the Thames, it was in vain that, now with
  • a beseeching, now with something of a braggadocio air, he courted and
  • provoked the notice of the passengers; in vain that, putting fortune to
  • the touch, he even thrust himself into the way and came into direct
  • collision with those of the more promising demeanour. Persons brimful of
  • secrets, persons pining for affection, persons perishing for lack of
  • help or counsel, he was sure he could perceive on every side; but by
  • some contrariety of fortune, each passed upon his way without remarking
  • the young gentleman, and went farther (surely to fare worse!) in quest
  • of the confidant, the friend, or the adviser. To thousands he must have
  • turned an appealing countenance, and yet not one regarded him.
  • A light dinner, eaten to the accompaniment of his impetuous aspirations,
  • broke in upon the series of his attempts on fortune; and when he
  • returned to the task, the lamps were already lighted, and the nocturnal
  • crowd was dense upon the pavement. Before a certain restaurant, whose
  • name will readily occur to any student of our Babylon, people were
  • already packed so closely that passage had grown difficult; and
  • Somerset, standing in the kennel, watched, with a hope that was
  • beginning to grow somewhat weary, the faces and the manners of the
  • crowd. Suddenly he was startled by a gentle touch upon the shoulder, and
  • facing about, he was aware of a very plain and elegant brougham, drawn
  • by a pair of powerful horses, and driven by a man in sober livery. There
  • were no arms upon the panel; the window was open, but the interior was
  • obscure; the driver yawned behind his palm; and the young man was
  • already beginning to suppose himself the dupe of his own fancy, when a
  • hand, no larger than a child's and smoothly gloved in white, appeared in
  • a corner of the window and privily beckoned him to approach. He did so,
  • and looked in. The carriage was occupied by a single small and very
  • dainty figure, swathed head and shoulders in impenetrable folds of white
  • lace; and a voice, speaking low and silvery, addressed him in these
  • words:
  • "Open the door and get in."
  • "It must be," thought the young man, with an almost unbearable thrill,
  • "it must be that duchess at last!" Yet, although the moment was one to
  • which he had long looked forward, it was with a certain share of alarm
  • that he opened the door, and, mounting into the brougham, took his seat
  • beside the lady of the lace. Whether or no she had touched a spring, or
  • given some other signal, the young man had hardly closed the door before
  • the carriage, with considerable swiftness, and with a very luxurious and
  • easy movement on its springs, turned and began to drive towards the
  • west.
  • Somerset, as I have written, was not unprepared; it had long been his
  • particular pleasure to rehearse his conduct in the most unlikely
  • situations; and this, among others, of the patrician ravisher, was one
  • he had familiarly studied. Strange as it may seem, however, he could
  • find no apposite remark; and as the lady, on her side, vouchsafed no
  • further sign, they continued to drive in silence through the streets.
  • Except for alternate flashes from the passing lamps, the carriage was
  • plunged in obscurity; and beyond the fact that the fittings were
  • luxurious, and that the lady was singularly small and slender in person
  • and, all but one gloved hand, still swathed in her costly veil, the
  • young man could decipher no detail of an inspiring nature. The suspense
  • began to grow unbearable. Twice he cleared his throat, and twice the
  • whole resources of the language failed him. In similar scenes, when he
  • had forecast them on the theatre of fancy, his presence of mind had
  • always been complete, his eloquence remarkable; and at this disparity
  • between the rehearsal and the performance, he began to be seized with a
  • panic of apprehension. Here, on the very threshold of adventure, suppose
  • him ignominiously to fail; suppose that after ten, twenty, or sixty
  • seconds of still uninterrupted silence, the lady should touch the
  • check-string and re-deposit him, weighed and found wanting, on the
  • common street! Thousands of persons of no mind at all, he reasoned,
  • would be found more equal to the part; could, that very instant, by some
  • decisive step, prove the lady's choice to have been well inspired, and
  • put a stop to this intolerable silence.
  • His eye, at this point, lighted on the hand. It was better to fall by
  • desperate councils than to continue as he was; and with one tremulous
  • swoop he pounced on the gloved fingers and drew them to himself. One
  • overt step, it had appeared to him, would dissolve the spell of his
  • embarrassment; in act, he found it otherwise: he found himself no less
  • incapable of speech or further progress; and, with the lady's hand in
  • his, sat helpless. But worse was in store. A peculiar quivering began to
  • agitate the form of his companion; the hand that lay unresistingly in
  • Somerset's trembled as with ague; and presently there broke forth, in
  • the shadow of the carriage, the bubbling and musical sound of laughter,
  • resisted but triumphant. The young man dropped his prize; had it been
  • possible, he would have bounded from the carriage. The lady, meanwhile,
  • lying back upon the cushions, passed on from trill to trill of the most
  • heartfelt, high-pitched, clear, and fairy-sounding merriment.
  • "You must not be offended," she said at last, catching an opportunity
  • between two paroxysms. "If you have been mistaken in the warmth of your
  • attentions, the fault is solely mine; it does not flow from your
  • presumption, but from my eccentric manner of recruiting friends; and,
  • believe me, I am the last person in the world to think the worse of a
  • young man for showing spirit. As for to-night, it is my intention to
  • entertain you to a little supper; and if I shall continue to be as much
  • pleased with your manners as I was taken with your face, I may perhaps
  • end by making you an advantageous offer."
  • Somerset sought in vain to find some form of answer, but his
  • discomfiture had been too recent and complete.
  • "Come," returned the lady, "we must have no display of temper; that is
  • for me the one disqualifying fault; and as I perceive we are drawing
  • near our destination, I shall ask you to descend and offer me your arm."
  • Indeed, at that very moment the carriage drew up before a stately and
  • severe mansion in a spacious square; and Somerset, who was possessed of
  • an excellent temper, with the best grace in the world assisted the lady
  • to alight. The door was opened by an old woman of a grim appearance, who
  • ushered the pair into a dining-room somewhat dimly lighted, but already
  • laid for supper, and occupied by a prodigious company of large and
  • valuable cats. Here, as soon as they were alone, the lady divested
  • herself of the lace in which she was enfolded; and Somerset was relieved
  • to find, that although still bearing the traces of great beauty, and
  • still distinguished by the fire and colour of her eye, her hair was of
  • silvery whiteness and her face lined with years.
  • "And now, _mon preux_," said the old lady, nodding at him with a quaint
  • gaiety, "you perceive that I am no longer in my first youth. You will
  • soon find that I am all the better company for that."
  • As she spoke, the maid re-entered the apartment with a light but
  • tasteful supper. They sat down, accordingly, to table, the cats with
  • savage pantomime surrounding the old lady's chair; and what with the
  • excellence of the meal and the gaiety of his entertainer, Somerset was
  • soon completely at his ease. When they had well eaten and drunk, the old
  • lady leaned back in her chair, and taking a cat upon her lap, subjected
  • her guest to a prolonged but evidently mirthful scrutiny.
  • "I fear, madam," said Somerset, "that my manners have not risen to the
  • height of your preconceived opinion."
  • "My dear young man," she replied, "you were never more mistaken in your
  • life. I find you charming, and you may very well have lighted on a fairy
  • godmother. I am not one of those who are given to change their opinions,
  • and short of substantial demerit, those who have once gained my favour
  • continue to enjoy it; but I have a singular swiftness of decision, read
  • my fellow men and women with a glance, and have acted throughout life on
  • first impressions. Yours, as I tell you, has been favourable; and if, as
  • I suppose, you are a young fellow of somewhat idle habits, I think it
  • not improbable that we may strike a bargain."
  • "Ah, madam," returned Somerset, "you have divined my situation. I am a
  • man of birth, parts, and breeding; excellent company, or at least so I
  • find myself; but by a peculiar iniquity of fate, destitute alike of
  • trade or money. I was, indeed, this evening upon the quest of an
  • adventure, resolved to close with any offer of interest, emolument, or
  • pleasure; and your summons, which I profess I am still at some loss to
  • understand, jumped naturally with the inclination of my mind. Call it,
  • if you will, impudence; I am here, at least, prepared for any
  • proposition you can find it in your heart to make, and resolutely
  • determined to accept."
  • "You express yourself very well," replied the old lady, "and are
  • certainly a droll and curious young man. I should not care to affirm
  • that you were sane, for I have never found any one entirely so besides
  • myself; but at least the nature of your madness entertains me, and I
  • will reward you with some description of my character and life."
  • Thereupon the old lady, still fondling the cat upon her lap, proceeded
  • to narrate the following particulars.
  • NARRATIVE OF THE SPIRITED OLD LADY
  • I was the eldest daughter of the Reverend Bernard Fanshawe, who held a
  • valuable living in the diocese of Bath and Wells. Our family, a very
  • large one, was noted for a sprightly and incisive wit, and came of a
  • good old stock where beauty was an heirloom. In Christian grace of
  • character we were unhappily deficient. From my earliest years I saw and
  • deplored the defects of those relatives whose age and position should
  • have enabled them to conquer my esteem; and while I was yet a child, my
  • father married a second wife, in whom (strange to say) the Fanshawe
  • failings were exaggerated to a monstrous and almost laughable degree.
  • Whatever may be said against me, it cannot be denied I was a pattern
  • daughter; but it was in vain that, with the most touching patience, I
  • submitted to my stepmother's demands; and from the hour she entered my
  • father's house, I may say that I met with nothing but injustice and
  • ingratitude.
  • I stood not alone, however, in the sweetness of my disposition; for one
  • other of the family besides myself was free from any violence of
  • character. Before I had reached the age of sixteen, this cousin, John by
  • name, had conceived for me a sincere but silent passion; and although
  • the poor lad was too timid to hint at the nature of his feelings, I had
  • soon divined and begun to share them. For some days I pondered on the
  • odd situation created for me by the bashfulness of my admirer; and at
  • length, perceiving that he begun, in his distress, rather to avoid than
  • seek my company, I determined to take the matter into my own hands.
  • Finding him alone in a retired part of the rectory garden, I told him
  • that I had divined his amiable secret; that I knew with what disfavour
  • our union was sure to be regarded; and that, under the circumstances, I
  • was prepared to flee with him at once. Poor John was literally paralysed
  • with joy; such was the force of his emotions, that he could find no
  • words in which to thank me; and that I, seeing him thus helpless, was
  • obliged to arrange, myself, the details of our flight, and of the stolen
  • marriage which was immediately to crown it. John had been at that time
  • projecting a visit to the metropolis. In this I bade him persevere, and
  • promised on the following day to join him at the Tavistock Hotel.
  • True, on my side, to every detail of our arrangement, I arose, on the
  • day in question, before the servants, packed a few necessaries in a bag,
  • took with me the little money I possessed, and bade farewell for ever to
  • the rectory. I walked with good spirits to a town some thirty miles from
  • home; and was set down the next morning in this great city of London. As
  • I walked from the coach-office to the hotel, I could not help exulting
  • in the pleasant change that had befallen me; beholding, meanwhile, with
  • innocent delight, the traffic of the streets, and depicting, in all the
  • colours of fancy, the reception that awaited me from John. But alas!
  • when I inquired for Mr. Fanshawe, the porter assured me there was no
  • such gentleman among the guests. By what channel our secret had leaked
  • out, or what pressure had been brought to bear on the too facile John, I
  • could never fathom. Enough that my family had triumphed; that I found
  • myself alone in London, tender in years, smarting under the most
  • sensible mortification, and by every sentiment of pride and self-respect
  • debarred for ever from my father's house.
  • I rose under the blow, and found lodgings in the neighbourhood of Euston
  • Road, where, for the first time in my life, I tasted the joys of
  • independence. Three days afterwards, an advertisement in _The Times_
  • directed me to the office of a solicitor whom I knew to be in my
  • father's confidence. There I was given the promise of a very moderate
  • allowance, and a distinct intimation that I must never look to be
  • received at home. I could not but resent so cruel a desertion, and I
  • told the lawyer it was a meeting I desired as little as themselves. He
  • smiled at my courageous spirit, paid me the first quarter of my income,
  • and gave me the remainder of my personal effects, which had been sent to
  • me, under his care, in a couple of rather ponderous boxes. With these I
  • returned in triumph to my lodgings, more content with my position than I
  • should have thought possible a week before, and fully determined to make
  • the best of the future.
  • All went well for several months; and, indeed, it was my own fault alone
  • that ended this pleasant and secluded episode of life. I have, I must
  • confess, the fatal trick of spoiling my inferiors. My landlady, to whom
  • I had as usual been overkind, impertinently called me in fault for some
  • particular too small to mention; and I, annoyed that I had allowed her
  • the freedom upon which she thus presumed, ordered her to leave my
  • presence. She stood a moment dumb, and then, recalling her
  • self-possession, "Your bill," said she, "shall be ready this evening,
  • and to-morrow, madam, you shall leave my house. See," she added, "that
  • you are able to pay what you owe me; for If I do not receive the
  • uttermost farthing, no box of yours shall pass my threshold."
  • I was confounded at her audacity, but, as a whole quarter's income was
  • due to me, not otherwise affected by the threat. That afternoon, as I
  • left the solicitor's door, carrying in one hand, and done up in a paper
  • parcel, the whole amount of my fortune, there befell me one of those
  • decisive incidents that sometimes shape a life. The lawyer's office was
  • situated in a street that opened at the upper end upon the Strand and
  • was closed at the lower, at the time of which I speak, by a row of iron
  • railings looking on the Thames. Down this street, then, I beheld my
  • stepmother advancing to meet me, and doubtless bound to the very house
  • I had just left. She was attended by a maid whose face was new to me;
  • but her own was too clearly printed on my memory; and the sight of it,
  • even from a distance, filled me with generous indignation. Flight was
  • impossible. There was nothing left but to retreat against the railing,
  • and with my back turned to the street, pretend to be admiring the barges
  • on the river or the chimneys of transpontine London.
  • I was still so standing, and had not yet fully mastered the turbulence
  • of my emotions, when a voice at my elbow addressed me with a trivial
  • question. It was the maid whom my stepmother, with characteristic
  • hardness, had left to await her on the street, while she transacted her
  • business with the family solicitor. The girl did not know who I was; the
  • opportunity was too golden to be lost; and I was soon hearing the latest
  • news of my father's rectory and parish. It did not surprise me to find
  • that she detested her employers; and yet the terms in which she spoke of
  • them were hard to bear, hard to let pass unchallenged. I heard them,
  • however, without dissent, for my self-command is wonderful; and we might
  • have parted as we met, had she not proceeded, in an evil hour, to
  • criticise the rector's missing daughter, and with the most shocking
  • perversions to narrate the story of her flight. My nature is so
  • essentially generous that I can never pause to reason. I flung up my
  • hand sharply, by way, as well as I remember, of indignant protest; and,
  • in the act, the packet slipped from my fingers, glanced between the
  • railings, and fell and sunk in the river. I stood a moment petrified,
  • and then, struck by the drollery of the incident, gave way to peals of
  • laughter. I was still laughing when my stepmother reappeared, and the
  • maid, who doubtless considered me insane, ran off to join her; nor had I
  • yet recovered my gravity when I presented myself before the lawyer to
  • solicit a fresh advance. His answer made me serious enough, for it was a
  • flat refusal; and it was not until I had besought him even with tears,
  • that he consented to lend me ten pounds from his own pocket. "I am a
  • poor man," said he, "and you must look for nothing further at my hands."
  • The landlady met me at the door. "Here, madam," said she, with a curtsey
  • insolently low, "here is my bill. Would it inconvenience you to settle
  • it at once?"
  • "You shall be paid, madam," said I, "in the morning, in the proper
  • course." And I took the paper with a very high air, but inwardly
  • quaking.
  • I had no sooner looked at it than I perceived myself to be lost. I had
  • been short of money and had allowed my debt to mount; and it had now
  • reached the sum, which I shall never forget, of twelve pounds thirteen
  • and fourpence halfpenny. All evening I sat by the fire considering my
  • situation. I could not pay the bill; my landlady would not suffer me to
  • remove my boxes; and without either baggage or money, how was I to find
  • another lodging? For three months, unless I could invent some remedy, I
  • was condemned to be without a roof and without a penny. It can surprise
  • no one that I decided on immediate flight; but even here I was
  • confronted by a difficulty, for I had no sooner packed my boxes than I
  • found I was not strong enough to move, far less to carry them.
  • In this strait I did not hesitate a moment, but throwing on a shawl and
  • bonnet, and covering my face with a thick veil, I betook myself to that
  • great bazaar of dangerous and smiling chances, the pavement of the city.
  • It was already late at night, and the weather being wet and windy, there
  • were few abroad besides policemen. These, on my present mission, I had
  • wit enough to know for enemies; and wherever I perceived their moving
  • lanterns, I made haste to turn aside and choose another thoroughfare. A
  • few miserable women still walked the pavement; here and there were young
  • fellows returning drunk, or ruffians of the lowest class lurking in the
  • mouths of alleys; but of any one to whom I might appeal in my distress,
  • I began almost to despair.
  • At last, at the corner of a street, I ran into the arms of one who was
  • evidently a gentleman, and who, in all his appointments, from his furred
  • greatcoat to the fine cigar which he was smoking, comfortably breathed
  • of wealth. Much as my face has changed from its original beauty, I still
  • retain (or so I tell myself) some traces of the youthful lightness of my
  • figure. Even veiled as I then was, I could perceive the gentleman was
  • struck by my appearance; and this emboldened me for my adventure.
  • "Sir," said I, with a quickly beating heart, "sir, are you one in whom a
  • lady can confide?"
  • "Why, my dear," said he, removing his cigar, "that depends on
  • circumstances. If you will raise your veil--"
  • "Sir," I interrupted, "let there be no mistake. I ask you, as a
  • gentleman, to serve me, but I offer no reward."
  • "That is frank," said he; "but hardly tempting. And what, may I inquire,
  • is the nature of the service?"
  • But I knew well enough it was not my interest to tell him on so short an
  • interview. "If you will accompany me," said I, "to a house not far from
  • here, you can see for yourself."
  • He looked at me awhile with hesitating eyes; and then, tossing away his
  • cigar, which was not yet a quarter smoked, "Here goes!" said he, and
  • with perfect politeness offered me his arm. I was wise enough to take
  • it; to prolong our walk as far as possible, by more than one excursion
  • from the shortest line; and to beguile the way with that sort of
  • conversation which should prove to him indubitably from what station in
  • society I sprang. By the time we reached the door of my lodging, I felt
  • sure I had confirmed his interest, and might venture, before I turned
  • the pass-key, to beseech him to moderate his voice and to tread softly.
  • He promised to obey me; and I admitted him into the passage, and thence
  • into my sitting-room, which was fortunately next the door.
  • "And now," said he, when with trembling fingers I had lighted a candle,
  • "what is the meaning of all this?"
  • "I wish you," said I, speaking with great difficulty, "to help me out
  • with these boxes--and I wish nobody to know."
  • He took up the candle. "And I wish to see your face," said he.
  • I turned back my veil without a word, and looked at him with every
  • appearance of resolve that I could summon up. For some time he gazed
  • into my face, still holding up the candle. "Well," said he at last, "and
  • where do you wish them taken?"
  • I knew that I had gained my point; and it was with a tremor in my voice
  • that I replied. "I had thought we might carry them between us to the
  • corner of Euston Road," said I, "where, even at this late hour, we may
  • still find a cab."
  • "Very good," was his reply; and he immediately hoisted the heavier of my
  • trunks upon his shoulder, and taking one handle of the second, signed to
  • me to help him at the other end. In this order we made good our retreat
  • from the house, and without the least adventure, drew pretty near to the
  • corner of Euston Road. Before a house, where there was a light still
  • burning, my companion paused. "Let us here," said he, "set down our
  • boxes, while we go forward to the end of the street in quest of a cab.
  • By doing so, we can still keep an eye upon their safety; and we avoid
  • the very extraordinary figure we should otherwise present--a young man,
  • a young lady, and a mass of baggage, standing castaway at midnight on
  • the streets of London." So it was done, and the event proved him to be
  • wise; for long before there was any word of a cab, a policeman appeared
  • upon the scene, turned upon us the full glare of his lantern, and hung
  • suspiciously behind us in a doorway.
  • "There seem to be no cabs about, policeman," said my champion, with
  • affected cheerfulness. But the constable's answer was ungracious; and as
  • for the offer of a cigar, with which this rebuff was most unwisely
  • followed up, he refused it point-blank, and without the least civility.
  • The young gentleman looked at me with a warning grimace, and there we
  • continued to stand, on the edge of the pavement, in the beating rain,
  • and with the policeman still silently watching our movements from the
  • doorway.
  • At last, and after a delay that seemed interminable, a four-wheeler
  • appeared lumbering along in the mud, and was instantly hailed by my
  • companion. "Just pull up here, will you?" he cried. "We have some
  • baggage up the street."
  • And now came the hitch of our adventure; for when the policeman, still
  • closely following us, beheld my two boxes lying in the rain, he arose
  • from mere suspicion to a kind of certitude of something evil. The light
  • in the house had been extinguished; the whole frontage of the street was
  • dark; there was nothing to explain the presence of these unguarded
  • trunks; and no two innocent people were ever, I believe, detected in
  • such questionable circumstances.
  • "Where have these things come from?" asked the policeman, flashing his
  • light full into my champion's face.
  • "Why, from that house of course," replied the young gentleman, hastily
  • shouldering a trunk.
  • The policeman whistled and turned to look at the dark windows; he then
  • took a step towards the door, as though to knock, a course which had
  • infallibly proved our ruin; but seeing us already hurrying down the
  • street under our double burthen, thought better or worse of it, and
  • followed in our wake.
  • "For God's sake," whispered my companion, "tell me where to drive to."
  • "Anywhere," I replied, with anguish. "I have no idea. Anywhere you
  • like."
  • Thus it fell that, when the boxes had been stowed and I had already
  • entered the cab, my deliverer called out in clear tones the address of
  • the house in which we are now seated. The policeman, I could see, was
  • staggered. This neighbourhood, so retired, so aristocratic, was far from
  • what he had expected. For all that, he took the number of the cab, and
  • spoke for a few seconds and with a decided manner, in the cabman's ear.
  • "What can he have said?" I gasped, as soon as the cab had rolled away.
  • "I can very well imagine," replied my champion; "and I can assure you
  • that you are now condemned to go where I have said; for, should we
  • attempt to change our destination by the way, the jarvey will drive us
  • straight to a police-office. Let me compliment you on your nerves," he
  • added. "I have had, I believe, the most horrible fright of my
  • existence."
  • But my nerves, which he so much misjudged, were in so strange a disarray
  • that speech was now become impossible; and we made the drive
  • thenceforward in unbroken silence. When we arrived before the door of
  • our destination, the young gentleman alighted, opened it with a pass-key
  • like one who was at home, bade the driver carry the trunks into the
  • hall, and dismissed him with a handsome fee. He then led me into this
  • dining-room, looking nearly as you behold it, but with certain marks of
  • bachelor occupancy, and hastened to pour out a glass of wine, which he
  • insisted on my drinking. As soon as I could find my voice, "In God's
  • name," I cried, "where am I?"
  • He told me I was in his house, where I was very welcome, and had no more
  • urgent business than to rest myself and recover my spirits. As he spoke
  • he offered me another glass of wine, of which, indeed, I stood in great
  • want, for I was faint, and inclined to be hysterical. Then he sat down
  • beside the fire, lit another cigar, and for some time observed me
  • curiously in silence.
  • "And now," said he, "that you have somewhat restored yourself, will you
  • be kind enough to tell me in what sort of crime I have become a partner?
  • Are you murderer, smuggler, thief, or only the harmless and domestic
  • moonlight flitter?"
  • I had been already shocked by his lighting a cigar without permission,
  • for I had not forgotten the one he threw away on our first meeting; and
  • now, at these explicit insults, I resolved at once to reconquer his
  • esteem. The judgment of the world I have consistently despised, but I
  • had already begun to set a certain value on the good opinion of my
  • entertainer. Beginning with a note of pathos, but soon brightening into
  • my habitual vivacity and humour, I rapidly narrated the circumstances of
  • my birth, my flight, and subsequent misfortunes. He heard me to an end
  • in silence, gravely smoking. "Miss Fanshawe," said he, when I had done,
  • "you are a very comical and most enchanting creature; and I can see
  • nothing for it but that I should return to-morrow morning and satisfy
  • your landlady's demands."
  • "You strangely misinterpret my confidence," was my reply; "and if you
  • had at all appreciated my character, you would understand that I can
  • take no money at your hands."
  • "Your landlady will doubtless not be so particular," he returned; "nor
  • do I at all despair of persuading even your unconquerable self. I desire
  • you to examine me with critical indulgence. My name is Henry Luxmore,
  • Lord Southwark's second son. I possess nine thousand a year, the house
  • in which we are now sitting and seven others in the best neighbourhoods
  • in town. I do not believe I am repulsive to the eye, and as for my
  • character, you have seen me under trial. I think you simply the most
  • original of created things; I need not tell you what you know very well,
  • that you are ravishingly pretty; and I have nothing more to add, except
  • that foolish as it may appear, I am already head over heels in love with
  • you."
  • "Sir," said I, "I am prepared to be misjudged; but while I continue to
  • accept your hospitality, that fact alone should be enough to protect me
  • from insult."
  • "Pardon me," said he: "I offer you marriage." And leaning back in his
  • chair he replaced his cigar between his lips.
  • I own I was confounded by an offer, not only so unprepared, but couched
  • in terms so singular. But he knew very well how to obtain his purposes,
  • for he was not only handsome in person, but his very coolness had a
  • charm; and to make a long story short, a fortnight later I became the
  • wife of the Honourable Henry Luxmore.
  • For nearly twenty years I now led a life of almost perfect quiet. My
  • Henry had his weaknesses; I was twice driven to flee from his roof, but
  • not for long; for though he was easily over-excited, his nature was
  • placable below the surface, and, with all his faults, I loved him
  • tenderly. At last he was taken from me; and such is the power of
  • self-deception, and so strange are the whims of the dying, he actually
  • assured me, with his latest breath, that he forgave the violence of my
  • temper!
  • There was but one pledge of the marriage, my daughter Clara. She had,
  • indeed, inherited a shadow of her father's failing; but in all things
  • else, unless my partial eyes deceived me, she derived her qualities from
  • me, and might be called my moral image. On my side, whatever else I may
  • have done amiss, as a mother I was above reproach. Here, then, was
  • surely every promise for the future; here, at last, was a relation in
  • which I might hope to taste repose. But it was not to be. You will
  • hardly credit me when I inform you that she ran away from home; yet such
  • was the case. Some whim about oppressed nationalities--Ireland, Poland,
  • and the like--has turned her brain; and if you should anywhere encounter
  • a young lady (I must say of remarkable attractions) answering to the
  • name of Luxmore, Lake, or Fonblanque (for I am told she uses these
  • indifferently, as well as many others), tell her, from me, that I
  • forgive her cruelty, and though I will never more behold her face, I am
  • at any time prepared to make her a liberal allowance.
  • On the death of Mr. Luxmore I sought oblivion in the details of
  • business. I believe I have mentioned that seven mansions, besides this,
  • formed part of Mr. Luxmore's property: I have found them seven white
  • elephants. The greed of tenants, the dishonesty of solicitors, and the
  • incapacity that sits upon the bench, have combined together to make
  • these houses the burthen of my life. I had no sooner, indeed, begun to
  • look into these matters for myself, than I discovered so many injustices
  • and met with so much studied incivility, that I was plunged into a long
  • series of lawsuits, some of which are pending to this day. You must have
  • heard my name already; I am the Mrs. Luxmore of the Law Reports: a
  • strange destiny, indeed, for one born with an almost cowardly desire for
  • peace! But I am of the stamp of those who, when they have once begun a
  • task, will rather die than leave their duty unfulfilled. I have met with
  • every obstacle: insolence and ingratitude from my own lawyers; in my
  • adversaries, that fault of obstinacy which is to me perhaps the most
  • distasteful in the calendar; from the bench, civility indeed--always, I
  • must allow, civility--but never a spark of independence, never that
  • knowledge of the law and love of justice which we have a right to look
  • for in a judge, the most august of human officers. And still, against
  • all these odds, I have undissuadably persevered.
  • It was after the loss of one of my innumerable cases (a subject on which
  • I will not dwell) that it occurred to me to make a melancholy pilgrimage
  • to my various houses. Four were at that time tenantless and closed, like
  • pillars of salt, commemorating the corruption of the age and the decline
  • of private virtue. Three were occupied by persons who had wearied me by
  • every conceivable unjust demand and legal subterfuge--persons whom, at
  • that very hour, I was moving heaven and earth to turn into the streets.
  • This was perhaps the sadder spectacle of the two; and my heart grew hot
  • within me to behold them occupying, in my very teeth, and with an
  • insolent ostentation, these handsome structures which were as much mine
  • as the flesh upon my body.
  • One more house remained for me to visit, that in which we now are. I had
  • let it (for at that period I lodged in a hotel, the life that I have
  • always preferred) to a Colonel Geraldine, a gentleman attached to Prince
  • Florizel of Bohemia, whom you must certainly have heard of; and I had
  • supposed, from the character and position of my tenant, that here, at
  • least, I was safe against annoyance. What was my surprise to find this
  • house also shuttered and apparently deserted! I will not deny that I was
  • offended; I conceived that a house, like a yacht, was better to be kept
  • in commission; and I promised myself to bring the matter before my
  • solicitor the following morning. Meanwhile the sight recalled my fancy
  • naturally to the past; and, yielding to the tender influence of
  • sentiment, I sat down opposite the door upon the garden parapet. It was
  • August and a sultry afternoon, but that spot is sheltered, as you may
  • observe by daylight, under the branches of a spreading chestnut; the
  • square, too, was deserted; there was a sound of distant music in the
  • air; and all combined to plunge me into that most agreeable of states,
  • which is neither happiness nor sorrow, but shares the poignancy of both.
  • From this I was recalled by the arrival of a large van, very handsomely
  • appointed, drawn by valuable horses, mounted by several men of an
  • appearance more than decent, and bearing on its panels, instead of a
  • trader's name, a coat of arms too modest to be deciphered from where I
  • sat. It drew up before my house, the door of which was immediately
  • opened by one of the men. His companions--I counted seven of them in
  • all--proceeded, with disciplined activity, to take from the van and
  • carry into the house a variety of hampers, bottle-baskets, and boxes,
  • such as are designed for plate and napery. The windows of the
  • dining-room were thrown widely open, as though to air it; and I saw some
  • of those within laying the table for a meal. Plainly, I concluded, my
  • tenant was about to return; and while still determined to submit to no
  • aggression on my rights, I was gratified by the number and discipline of
  • his attendants, and the quiet profusion that appeared to reign in his
  • establishment. I was still so thinking when, to my extreme surprise, the
  • windows and shutters of the dining-room were once more closed; the men
  • began to reappear from the interior and resume their stations on the
  • van; the last closed the door behind his exit; the van drove away; and
  • the house was once more left to itself, looking blindly on the square
  • with shuttered windows, as though the whole affair had been a vision.
  • It was no vision, however; for, as I rose to my feet and thus brought my
  • eyes a little nearer to the level of the fanlight over the door, I saw
  • that, though the day had still some hours to run, the hall lamps had
  • been lighted and left burning. Plainly, then, guests were expected, and
  • were not expected before night. For whom, I asked myself with
  • indignation, were such secret preparations likely to be made? Although
  • no prude, I am a woman of decided views upon morality; if my house, to
  • which my husband had brought me, was to serve in the character of a
  • _petite maison_, I saw myself forced, however unwillingly, into a new
  • course of litigation; and, determined to return and know the worst, I
  • hastened to my hotel for dinner.
  • I was at my post by ten. The night was clear and quiet; the moon rode
  • very high and put the lamps to shame; and the shadow below the chestnut
  • was black as ink. Here, then, I ensconced myself on the low parapet,
  • with my back against the railings, face to face with the moonlit front
  • of my old home, and ruminating gently on the past. Time fled; eleven
  • struck on all the city clocks; and presently after I was aware of the
  • approach of a gentleman of stately and agreeable demeanour. He was
  • smoking as he walked; his light paletot, which was open, did not conceal
  • his evening clothes; and he bore himself with a serious grace that
  • immediately awakened my attention. Before the door of this house he took
  • a pass-key from his pocket, quietly admitted himself, and disappeared
  • into the lamp-lit hall.
  • He was scarcely gone when I observed another and a much younger man
  • approaching hastily from the opposite side of the square. Considering
  • the season of the year and the genial mildness of the night, he was
  • somewhat closely muffled up; and as he came, for all his hurry, he kept
  • looking nervously behind him. Arrived before my door, he halted and set
  • one foot upon the step, as though about to enter; then, with a sudden
  • change, he turned and began to hurry away; halted a second time, as if
  • in painful indecision; and lastly, with a violent gesture, wheeled
  • about, returned straight to the door, and rapped upon the knocker. He
  • was almost immediately admitted by the first arrival.
  • My curiosity was now broad awake. I made myself as small as I could in
  • the very densest of the shadow, and waited for the sequel. Nor had I
  • long to wait. From the same side of the square a second young man made
  • his appearance, walking slowly and softly, and like the first, muffled
  • to the nose. Before the house he paused; looked all about him with a
  • swift and comprehensive glance; and seeing the square lie empty in the
  • moon and lamp-light, leaned far across the area railings and appeared to
  • listen to what was passing in the house. From the dining-room there came
  • the report of a champagne cork, and following upon that, the sound of
  • rich and manly laughter. The listener took heart of grace, produced a
  • key, unlocked the area gate, shut it noiselessly behind him, and
  • descended the stair. Just when his head had reached the level of the
  • pavement, he turned half round and once more raked the square with a
  • suspicious eyeshot. The mufflings had fallen lower round his neck; the
  • moon shone full upon him; and I was startled to observe the pallor and
  • passionate agitation of his face.
  • I could remain no longer passive. Persuaded that something deadly was
  • afoot, I crossed the roadway and drew near the area railings. There was
  • no one below; the man must therefore have entered the house, with what
  • purpose I dreaded to imagine. I have at no part of my career lacked
  • courage; and now, finding the area gate was merely laid-to, I pushed it
  • gently open and descended the stairs. The kitchen door of the house,
  • like the area gate, was closed but not fastened. It flashed upon me
  • that the criminal was thus preparing his escape; and the thought, as it
  • confirmed the worst of my suspicions, lent me new resolve. I entered the
  • house; and being now quite reckless of my life, I shut and locked the
  • door.
  • From the dining-room above I could hear the pleasant tones of a voice in
  • easy conversation. On the ground floor all was not only profoundly
  • silent, but the darkness seemed to weigh upon my eyes. Here, then, I
  • stood for some time, having thrust myself uncalled into the utmost
  • peril, and being destitute of any power to help or interfere. Nor will I
  • deny that fear had begun already to assail me, when I became aware, all
  • at once and as though by some immediate but silent incandescence, of a
  • certain glimmering of light upon the passage floor. Towards this I
  • groped my way with infinite precaution; and having come at length as far
  • as the angle of the corridor, beheld the door of the butler's pantry
  • standing just ajar and a narrow thread of brightness falling from the
  • chink. Creeping still closer, I put my eye to the aperture. The man sat
  • within upon a chair, listening, I could see, with the most rapt
  • attention. On a table before him he had laid a watch, a pair of steel
  • revolvers, and a bull's-eye lantern. For one second many contradictory
  • theories and projects whirled together in my head; the next, I had
  • slammed the door and turned the key upon the malefactor. Surprised at my
  • own decision, I stood and panted, leaning on the wall. From within the
  • pantry not a sound was to be heard; the man, whatever he was, had
  • accepted his fate without a struggle, and now, as I hugged myself to
  • fancy, sat frozen with terror and looking for the worst to follow. I
  • promised myself that he should not be disappointed; and the better to
  • complete my task, I turned to ascend the stairs.
  • The situation, as I groped my way to the first floor, appealed to me
  • suddenly by my strong sense of humour. Here was I, the owner of the
  • house, burglariously present in its walls; and there, in the
  • dining-room, were two gentlemen, unknown to me, seated complacently at
  • supper, and only saved by my promptitude from some surprising or deadly
  • interruption. It were strange if I could not manage to extract the
  • matter of amusement from so unusual a situation.
  • Behind this dining-room there is a small apartment intended for a
  • library. It was to this that I cautiously groped my way; and you will
  • see how fortune had exactly served me. The weather, I have said, was
  • sultry: in order to ventilate the dining-room and yet preserve the
  • uninhabited appearance of the mansion to the front, the window of the
  • library had been widely opened and the door of communication between the
  • two apartments left ajar. To this interval I now applied my eye.
  • Wax tapers, set in silver candlesticks, shed their chastened brightness
  • on the damask of the tablecloth and the remains of a cold collation of
  • the rarest delicacy. The two gentlemen had finished supper, and were now
  • trifling with cigars and maraschino; while in a silver spirit-lamp,
  • coffee of the most captivating fragrance was preparing in the fashion of
  • the East. The elder of the two, he who had first arrived, was placed
  • directly facing me; the other was set on his left hand. Both, like the
  • man in the butler's pantry, seemed to be intently listening; and on the
  • face of the second I thought I could perceive the marks of fear. Oddly
  • enough, however, when they came to speak, the parts were found to be
  • reversed.
  • "I assure you," said the elder gentleman, "I not only heard the slamming
  • of a door, but the sound of very guarded footsteps."
  • "Your highness was certainly deceived," replied the other. "I am endowed
  • with the acutest hearing, and I can swear that not a mouse has rustled."
  • Yet the pallor and contraction of his features were in total discord
  • with the tenor of his words.
  • His highness (whom, of course, I readily divined to be Prince Florizel)
  • looked at his companion for the least fraction of a second; and though
  • nothing shook the easy quiet of his attitude, I could see that he was
  • far from being duped. "It is well," said he: "let us dismiss the topic.
  • And now, sir, that I have very freely explained the sentiments by which
  • I am directed, let me ask you, according to your promise, to imitate my
  • frankness."
  • "I have heard you," replied the other, "with great interest."
  • "With singular patience," said the prince politely.
  • "Ay, your highness, and with unlooked-for sympathy," returned the young
  • man. "I know not how to tell the change that has befallen me. You have,
  • I must suppose, a charm, to which even your enemies are subject." He
  • looked at the clock on the mantelpiece and visibly blanched. "So late!"
  • he cried. "Your highness--God knows I am now speaking from the
  • heart--before it be too late, leave this house!"
  • The prince glanced once more at his companion, and then very
  • deliberately shook the ash from his cigar. "That is a strange remark,"
  • said he; "and _à propos de bottes_, I never continue a cigar when once
  • the ash is fallen; the spell breaks, the soul of the flavour flies away,
  • and there remains but the dead body of tobacco; and I make it a rule to
  • throw away that husk and choose another." He suited the action to the
  • words.
  • "Do not trifle with my appeal," resumed the young man, in tones that
  • trembled with emotion. "It is made at the price of my honour and to the
  • peril of my life. Go--go now! lose not a moment; and if you have any
  • kindness for a young man, miserably deceived indeed, but not devoid of
  • better sentiments, look not behind you as you leave."
  • "Sir," said the prince, "I am here upon your honour; I assure you upon
  • mine that I shall continue to rely upon that safeguard. The coffee is
  • ready; I must again trouble you, I fear." And with a courteous movement
  • of the hand, he seemed to invite his companion to pour out the coffee.
  • The unhappy young man rose from his seat. "I appeal to you," he cried,
  • "by every holy sentiment, in mercy to me, if not in pity to yourself,
  • begone before it is too late."
  • "Sir," replied the prince, "I am not readily accessible to fear; and if
  • there is one defect to which I must plead guilty, it is that of a
  • curious disposition. You go the wrong way about to make me leave this
  • house, in which I play the part of your entertainer; and, suffer me to
  • add, young man, if any peril threaten us, it was of your contriving, not
  • of mine."
  • "Alas, you do not know to what you condemn me," cried the other. "But I
  • at least will have no hand in it." With these words he carried his hand
  • to his pocket, hastily swallowed the contents of a phial, and, with the
  • very act, reeled back and fell across his chair upon the floor. The
  • prince left his place and came and stood above him, where he lay
  • convulsed upon the carpet. "Poor moth!" I heard his highness murmur.
  • "Alas, poor moth! must we again inquire which is the more
  • fatal--weakness or wickedness? And can a sympathy with ideas, surely not
  • ignoble in themselves, conduct a man to this dishonourable death?"
  • By this time I had pushed the door open and walked into the room. "Your
  • highness," said I, "this is no time for moralising; with a little
  • promptness we may save this creature's life; and as for the other, he
  • need cause you no concern, for I have him safely under lock and key."
  • The prince had turned about upon my entrance, and regarded me certainly
  • with no alarm, but with a profundity of wonder which almost robbed me of
  • my self-possession. "My dear madam," he cried at last, "and who the
  • devil are you?"
  • I was already on the floor beside the dying man. I had, of course, no
  • idea with what drug he had attempted his life, and I was forced to try
  • him with a variety of antidotes. Here were both oil and vinegar, for the
  • prince had done the young man the honour of compounding for him one of
  • his celebrated salads; and of each of these I administered from a
  • quarter to half a pint, with no apparent efficacy. I next plied him
  • with the hot coffee, of which there may have been near upon a quart.
  • "Have you no milk?" I inquired.
  • "I fear, madam, that milk has been omitted," returned the prince.
  • "Salt, then," said I; "salt is a revulsive. Pass the salt."
  • "And possibly the mustard?" asked his highness, as he offered me the
  • contents of the various salt-cellars poured together on a plate.
  • "Ah," cried I, "the thought is excellent! Mix me about half a pint of
  • mustard, drinkably dilute."
  • Whether it was the salt or the mustard, or the mere combination of so
  • many subversive agents, as soon as the last had been poured over his
  • throat, the young sufferer obtained relief.
  • "There!" I exclaimed, with natural triumph, "I have saved a life!"
  • "And yet, madam," returned the prince, "your mercy may be cruelly
  • disguised. Where the honour is lost, it is, at least, superfluous to
  • prolong the life."
  • "If you had led a life as changeable as mine, your highness," I replied,
  • "you would hold a very different opinion. For my part, and after
  • whatever extremity of misfortune or disgrace, I should still count
  • to-morrow worth a trial."
  • "You speak as a lady, madam," said the prince; "and for such you speak
  • the truth. But to men there is permitted such a field of licence, and
  • the good behaviour asked of them is at once so easy and so little, that
  • to fail in that is to fall beyond the reach of pardon. But will you
  • suffer me to repeat a question, put to you at first, I am afraid, with
  • some defect of courtesy; and to ask you once more, who you are and how I
  • have the honour of your company?"
  • "I am the proprietor of the house in which we stand," said I.
  • "And still I am at fault," returned the prince.
  • But at that moment the timepiece on the mantelshelf began to strike the
  • hour of twelve; and the young man, raising himself upon one elbow, with
  • an expression of despair and horror that I have never seen excelled,
  • cried lamentably: "Midnight? oh, just God!" We stood frozen to our
  • places, while the tingling hammer of the timepiece measured the
  • remaining strokes; nor had we yet stirred, so tragic had been the tones
  • of the young man, when the various bells of London began in turn to
  • declare the hour. The timepiece was inaudible beyond the walls of the
  • chamber where we stood; but the second pulsation of Big Ben had scarcely
  • throbbed into the night, before a sharp detonation rang about the house.
  • The prince sprang for the door by which I had entered; but quick as he
  • was, I yet contrived to intercept him.
  • "Are you armed?" I cried.
  • "No, madam," replied he. "You remind me appositely; I will take the
  • poker."
  • "The man below," said I, "has two revolvers. Would you confront him at
  • such odds?"
  • He paused, as though staggered in his purpose. "And yet, madam," said
  • he, "we cannot continue to remain in ignorance of what has passed."
  • "No!" cried I. "And who proposes it? I am as curious as yourself, but
  • let us rather send for the police; or, if your highness dreads a
  • scandal, for some of your own servants."
  • "Nay, madam," he replied, smiling, "for so brave a lady, you surprise
  • me. Would you have me, then, send others where I fear to go myself."
  • "You are perfectly right," said I, "and I was entirely wrong. Go, in
  • God's name, and I will hold the candle!"
  • Together, therefore, we descended to the lower story, he carrying the
  • poker, I the light; and together we approached and opened the door of
  • the butler's pantry. In some sort, I believe, I was prepared for the
  • spectacle that met our eyes; I was prepared, that is, to find the
  • villain dead, but the rude details of such a violent suicide I was
  • unable to endure. The prince, unshaken by horror as he had remained
  • unshaken by alarm, assisted me with the most respectful gallantry to
  • regain the dining-room.
  • There we found our patient, still, indeed, deadly pale, but vastly
  • recovered and already seated on a chair. He held out both his hands with
  • a most pitiful gesture of interrogation.
  • "He is dead," said the prince.
  • "Alas!" cried the young man, "and it should be I! What do I do, thus
  • lingering on the stage I have disgraced, while he, my sure comrade,
  • blameworthy indeed for much, but yet the soul of fidelity, has judged
  • and slain himself for an involuntary fault? Ah, sir," said he, "and you
  • too, madam, without whose cruel help I should be now beyond the reach of
  • my accusing conscience, you behold in me the victim equally of my own
  • faults and virtues. I was born a hater of injustice; from my most tender
  • years my blood boiled against Heaven when I beheld the sick, and against
  • men when I witnessed the sorrows of the poor; the pauper's crust stuck
  • in my throat when I sat down to eat my dainties, and the cripple child
  • has set me weeping. What was there in that but what was noble? and yet
  • observe to what a fall these thoughts have led me! Year after year this
  • passion for the lost besieged me closer. What hope was there in kings?
  • what hope in these well-feathered classes that now roll in money? I had
  • observed the course of history; I knew the burgess, our ruler of to-day,
  • to be base, cowardly, and dull; I saw him, in every age, combine to pull
  • down that which was immediately above and to prey upon those that were
  • below; his dulness, I knew, would ultimately bring about his ruin; I
  • knew his days were numbered, and yet how was I to wait? how was I to let
  • the poor child shiver in the rain? The better days, indeed, were coming,
  • but the child would die before that. Alas, your highness, in surely no
  • ungenerous impatience I enrolled myself among the enemies of this unjust
  • and doomed society; in surely no unnatural desire to keep the fires of
  • my philanthropy alight, I bound myself by an irrevocable oath.
  • "That oath is all my history. To give freedom to posterity, I had
  • forsworn my own. I must attend upon every signal; and soon my father
  • complained of my irregular hours and turned me from his house. I was
  • engaged in betrothal to an honest girl; from her also I had to part, for
  • she was too shrewd to credit my inventions and too innocent to be
  • intrusted with the truth. Behold me, then, alone with conspirators!
  • Alas! as the years went on, my illusions left me. Surrounded as I was by
  • the fervent disciples and apologists of revolution, I beheld them daily
  • advance in confidence and desperation; I beheld myself, upon the other
  • hand, and with an almost equal regularity, decline in faith. I had
  • sacrificed all to further that cause in which I still believed; and
  • daily I began to grow in doubts if we were advancing it indeed. Horrible
  • was the society with which we warred, but our own means were not less
  • horrible.
  • "I will not dwell upon my sufferings; I will not pause to tell you how,
  • when I beheld young men still free and happy, married, fathers of
  • children, cheerfully toiling at their work, my heart reproached me with
  • the greatness and vanity of my unhappy sacrifice. I will not describe to
  • you how, worn by poverty, poor lodging, scanty food, and an unquiet
  • conscience, my health began to fail, and in the long nights, as I
  • wandered bedless in the rainy streets, the most cruel sufferings of the
  • body were added to the tortures of my mind. These things are not
  • personal to me; they are common to all unfortunates in my position. An
  • oath, so light a thing to swear, so grave a thing to break: an oath,
  • taken in the heat of youth, repented with what sobbings of the heart,
  • but yet in vain repented, as the years go on: an oath, that was once the
  • very utterance of the truth of God, but that falls to be the symbol of a
  • meaningless and empty slavery; such is the yoke that many young men
  • joyfully assume, and under whose dead weight they live to suffer worse
  • than death.
  • "It is not that I was patient. I have begged to be released; but I knew
  • too much, and I was still refused. I have fled; ay, and for the time
  • successfully. I reached Paris. I found a lodging in the Rue St. Jacques,
  • almost opposite the Val de Grâce. My room was mean and bare, but the sun
  • looked into it towards evening; it commanded a peep of a green garden; a
  • bird hung by a neighbour's window and made the morning beautiful; and I,
  • who was sick, might lie in bed and rest myself: I, who was in full
  • revolt against the principles that I had served, was now no longer at
  • the beck of the council, and was no longer charged with shameful and
  • revolting tasks. Oh! what an interval of peace was that! I still dream,
  • at times, that I can hear the note of my neighbour's bird.
  • "My money was running out, and it became necessary that I should find
  • employment. Scarcely had I been three days upon the search, ere I
  • thought that I was being followed. I made certain of the features of the
  • man, which were quite strange to me, and turned into a small café, where
  • I whiled away an hour, pretending to read the papers, but inwardly
  • convulsed with terror. When I came forth again into the street, it was
  • quite empty, and I breathed again; but alas, I had not turned three
  • corners, when I once more observed the human hound pursuing me. Not an
  • hour was to be lost; timely submission might yet preserve a life which
  • otherwise was forfeit and dishonoured; and I fled, with what speed you
  • may conceive, to the Paris agency of the society I served.
  • "My submission was accepted. I took up once more the hated burthen of
  • that life; once more I was at the call of men whom I despised and hated,
  • while yet I envied and admired them. They at least were whole-hearted in
  • the things they purposed; but I, who had once been such as they, had
  • fallen from the brightness of my faith, and now laboured, like a
  • hireling, for the wages of a loathed existence. Ay, sir, to that I was
  • condemned; I obeyed to continue to live, and lived but to obey.
  • "The last charge that was laid upon me was the one which has to-night so
  • tragically ended. Boldly telling who I was, I was to request from your
  • highness, on behalf of my society, a private audience, where it was
  • designed to murder you. If one thing remained to me of my old
  • convictions, it was the hate of kings; and when this task was offered
  • me, I took it gladly. Alas, sir, you triumphed. As we supped, you gained
  • upon my heart. Your character, your talents, your designs for our
  • unhappy country, all had been misrepresented. I began to forget you were
  • a prince; I began, all too feelingly, to remember that you were a man.
  • As I saw the hour approach, I suffered agonies untold; and when, at
  • last, we heard the slamming of the door which announced in my unwilling
  • ears the arrival of the partner of my crime, you will bear me out with
  • what instancy I besought you to depart. You would not, alas! and what
  • could I? Kill you, I could not; my heart revolted, my hand turned back
  • from such a deed. Yet it was impossible that I should suffer you to
  • stay; for when the hour struck and my companion came, true to his
  • appointment, and he, at least, true to our design, I could neither
  • suffer you to be killed nor yet him to be arrested. From such a tragic
  • passage, death, and death alone, could save me; and it is no fault of
  • mine if I continue to exist.
  • "But you, madam," continued the young man, addressing himself more
  • directly to myself, "were doubtless born to save the prince and to
  • confound our purposes. My life you have prolonged; and by turning the
  • key on my companion, you have made me the author of his death. He heard
  • the hour strike; he was impotent to help; and thinking himself forfeit
  • to honour, thinking that I should fall alone upon his highness and
  • perish for lack of his support, he has turned his pistol on himself."
  • "You are right," said Prince Florizel: "it was in no ungenerous spirit
  • that you brought these burthens on yourself; and when I see you so nobly
  • to blame, so tragically punished, I stand like one reproved. For is it
  • not strange, madam, that you and I, by practising accepted and
  • inconsiderable virtues, and commonplace but still unpardonable faults,
  • should stand here, in the sight of God, with what we call clean hands
  • and quiet consciences; while this poor youth, for an error that I could
  • almost envy him, should be sunk beyond the reach of hope?
  • "Sir," resumed the prince, turning to the young man, "I cannot help you;
  • my help would but unchain the thunderbolt that overhangs you; and I can
  • but leave you free."
  • "And, sir," said I, "as this house belongs to me, I will ask you to have
  • the kindness to remove the body. You and your conspirators, it appears
  • to me, can hardly in civility do less."
  • "It shall be done," said the young man, with a dismal accent.
  • "And you, dear madam," said the prince, "you, to whom I owe my life, how
  • can I serve you?"
  • "Your highness," I said, "to be very plain, this is my favourite house,
  • being not only a valuable property, but endeared to me by various
  • associations. I have endless troubles with tenants of the ordinary
  • class; and at first applauded my good fortune when I found one of the
  • station of your Master of the Horse. I now begin to think otherwise;
  • dangers set a siege about great personages; and I do not wish my
  • tenement to share these risks. Procure me the resiliation of the lease,
  • and I shall feel myself your debtor."
  • "I must tell you, madam," replied his highness, "that Colonel Geraldine
  • is but a cloak for myself; and I should be sorry indeed to think myself
  • so unacceptable a tenant."
  • "Your highness," said I, "I have conceived a sincere admiration for your
  • character; but on the subject of house property I cannot allow the
  • interference of my feelings. I will, however, to prove to you that there
  • is nothing personal in my request, here solemnly engage my word that I
  • will never put another tenant in this house."
  • "Madam," said Florizel, "you plead your cause too charmingly to be
  • refused."
  • Thereupon we all three withdrew. The young man, still reeling in his
  • walk, departed by himself to seek the assistance of his
  • fellow-conspirators; and the prince, with the most attentive gallantry,
  • lent me his escort to the door of my hotel. The next day the lease was
  • cancelled; nor from that hour to this, though sometimes regretting my
  • engagement, have I suffered a tenant in this house.
  • THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION (_continued_)
  • As soon as the old lady had finished her relation, Somerset made haste
  • to offer her his compliments.
  • "Madam," said he, "your story is not only entertaining but instructive;
  • and you have told it with infinite vivacity. I was much affected towards
  • the end, as I held at one time very liberal opinions, and should
  • certainly have joined a secret society if I had been able to find one.
  • But the whole tale came home to me; and I was the better able to feel
  • for you in your various perplexities, as I am myself of somewhat hasty
  • temper."
  • "I do not understand you," said Mrs. Luxmore, with some marks of
  • irritation. "You must have strangely misinterpreted what I have told
  • you. You fill me with surprise."
  • Somerset, alarmed by the old lady's change of tone and manner, hurried
  • to recant.
  • "Dear Mrs. Luxmore," said he, "you certainly misconstrue my remark. As a
  • man of somewhat fiery humour, my conscience repeatedly pricked me when I
  • heard what you had suffered at the hands of persons similarly
  • constituted."
  • "Oh, very well indeed," replied the old lady; "and a very proper spirit.
  • I regret that I have met with it so rarely."
  • "But in all this," resumed the young man, "I perceive nothing that
  • concerns myself."
  • "I am about to come to that," she returned. "And you have already before
  • you, in the pledge I gave Prince Florizel, one of the elements of the
  • affair. I am a woman of the nomadic sort, and when I have no case before
  • the courts I make it a habit to visit continental spas: not that I have
  • ever been ill; but then I am no longer young, and I am always happy in a
  • crowd. Well, to come more shortly to the point, I am now on the wing for
  • Evian; this incubus of a house, which I must leave behind and dare not
  • let, hangs heavily upon my hands; and I propose to rid myself of that
  • concern, and do you a very good turn into the bargain, by lending you
  • the mansion, with all its fittings, as it stands. The idea was sudden;
  • it appealed to me as humorous; and I am sure it will cause my relatives,
  • if they should ever hear of it, the keenest possible chagrin. Here,
  • then, is the key; and when you return at two to-morrow afternoon, you
  • will find neither me nor my cats to disturb you in your new possession."
  • So saying, the old lady arose, as if to dismiss her visitor; but
  • Somerset, looking somewhat blankly on the key, began to protest.
  • "Dear Mrs. Luxmore," said he, "this is a most unusual proposal. You know
  • nothing of me, beyond the fact that I displayed both impudence and
  • timidity. I may be the worst kind of scoundrel; I may sell your
  • furniture--"
  • "You may blow up the house with gunpowder, for what I care!" cried Mrs.
  • Luxmore. "It is in vain to reason. Such is the force of my character
  • that, when I have one idea clearly in my head, I do not care two straws
  • for any side consideration. It amuses me to do it, and let that suffice.
  • On your side, you may do what you please--let apartments, or keep a
  • private hotel; on mine, I promise you a full month's warning before I
  • return, and I never fail religiously to keep my promises."
  • The young man was about to renew his protest, when he observed a sudden
  • and significant change in the old lady's countenance.
  • "If I thought you capable of disrespect!" she cried.
  • "Madam," said Somerset, with the extreme fervour of asseveration,
  • "madam, I accept. I beg you to understand that I accept with joy and
  • gratitude."
  • "Ah, well," returned Mrs. Luxmore, "if I am mistaken, let it pass. And
  • now, since all is comfortably settled, I wish you a good-night."
  • Thereupon, as if to leave him no room for repentance, she hurried
  • Somerset out of the front door, and left him standing, key in hand, upon
  • the pavement.
  • The next day, about the hour appointed, the young man found his way to
  • the square, which I will here call Golden Square, though that was not
  • its name. What to expect, he knew not; for a man may live in dreams, and
  • yet be unprepared for their realisation. It was already with a certain
  • pang of surprise that he beheld the mansion, standing in the eye of day,
  • a solid among solids. The key, upon trial, readily opened the front
  • door; he entered that great house, a privileged burglar; and, escorted
  • by the echoes of desertion, rapidly reviewed the empty chambers. Cats,
  • servant, old lady, the very marks of habitation, like writing on a
  • slate, had been in these few hours obliterated. He wandered from floor
  • to floor, and found the house of great extent; the kitchen offices
  • commodious and well appointed; the rooms many and large; and the
  • drawing-room, in particular, an apartment of princely size and tasteful
  • decoration. Although the day without was warm, genial, and sunny, with a
  • ruffling wind from the quarter of Torquay, a chill, as it were, of
  • suspended animation, inhabited the house. Dust and shadows met the eye;
  • and but for the ominous procession of the echoes, and the rumour of the
  • wind among the garden trees, the ear of the young man was stretched in
  • vain.
  • Behind the dining-room, that pleasant library, referred to by the old
  • lady in her tale, looked upon the flat roofs and netted cupolas of the
  • kitchen quarters; and on a second visit, this room appeared to greet him
  • with a smiling countenance. He might as well, he thought, avoid the
  • expense of lodging: the library fitted with an iron bedstead which he
  • had remarked, in one of the upper chambers, would serve his purpose for
  • the night; while in the dining-room, which was large, airy, and
  • lightsome, looking on the square and garden, he might very agreeably
  • pass his days, cook his meals, and study to bring himself to some
  • proficiency in that art of painting which he had recently determined to
  • adopt. It did not take him long to make the change: he had soon returned
  • to the mansion with his modest kit; and the cabman who brought him was
  • readily induced, by the young man's pleasant manner and a small
  • gratuity, to assist him in the installation of the iron bed. By six in
  • the evening, when Somerset went forth to dine, he was able to look back
  • upon the mansion with a sense of pride and property. Four-square it
  • stood, of an imposing frontage, and flanked on either side by family
  • hatchments. His eye, from where he stood whistling in the key, with his
  • back to the garden railings, reposed on every feature of reality; and
  • yet his own possession seemed as flimsy as a dream.
  • In the course of a few days, the genteel inhabitants of the square began
  • to remark the customs of their neighbour. The sight of a young gentleman
  • discussing a clay pipe, about four o'clock of the afternoon, in the
  • drawing-room balcony of so discreet a mansion; and perhaps still more,
  • his periodical excursion to a decent tavern in the neighbourhood, and
  • his unabashed return, nursing the full tankard: had presently raised to
  • a high pitch the interest and indignation of the liveried servants of
  • the square. The disfavour of some of these gentlemen at first proceeded
  • to the length of insult; but Somerset knew how to be affable with any
  • class of men; and a few rude words merrily accepted, and a few glasses
  • amicably shared, gained for him the right of toleration.
  • The young man had embraced the art of Raphael, partly from a notion of
  • its ease, partly from an inborn distrust of offices. He scorned to bear
  • the yoke of any regular schooling; and proceeded to turn one half of the
  • dining-room into a studio for the reproduction of still life. There he
  • amassed a variety of objects, indiscriminately chosen from the kitchen,
  • the drawing-room, and the back garden; and there spent his days in
  • smiling assiduity. Meantime, the great bulk of empty building overhead
  • lay, like a load, upon his imagination. To hold so great a stake and to
  • do nothing, argued some defect of energy; and he at length determined to
  • act upon the hint given by Mrs. Luxmore herself, and to stick, with
  • wafers, in the window of the dining-room, a small hand-bill announcing
  • furnished lodgings. At half-past six of a fine July morning, he affixed
  • the bill, and went forth into the square to study the result. It seemed,
  • to his eye, promising and unpretentious; and he returned to the
  • drawing-room balcony to consider, over a studious pipe, the knotty
  • problem of how much he was to charge.
  • Thereupon he somewhat relaxed in his devotion to the art of painting.
  • Indeed, from that time forth, he would spend the best part of the day in
  • the front balcony, like the attentive angler poring on his float; and
  • the better to support the tedium, he would frequently console himself
  • with his clay pipe. On several occasions passers-by appeared to be
  • arrested by the ticket, and on several others ladies and gentlemen drove
  • to the very doorstep by the carriageful; but it appeared there was
  • something repulsive in the appearance of the house; for, with one
  • accord, they would cast but one look upward, and hastily resume their
  • onward progress, or direct the driver to proceed. Somerset had thus the
  • mortification of actually meeting the eye of a large number of
  • lodging-seekers; and though he hastened to withdraw his pipe, and to
  • compose his features to an air of invitation, he was never rewarded by
  • so much as an inquiry. "Can there," he thought, "be anything repellent
  • in myself?" But a candid examination in one of the pier-glasses of the
  • drawing-room led him to dismiss the fear.
  • Something, however, was amiss. His vast and accurate calculations on the
  • fly-leaves of books, or on the backs of playbills, appeared to have been
  • an idle sacrifice of time. By these, he had variously computed the weekly
  • takings of the house, from sums as modest as five-and-twenty-shillings, up
  • to the more majestic figure of a hundred pounds; and yet, in despite of
  • the very elements of arithmetic, here he was making literally nothing.
  • This incongruity impressed him deeply and occupied his thoughtful
  • leisure on the balcony; and at last it seemed to him that he had
  • detected the error of his method. "This," he reflected, "is an age of
  • generous display: the age of the sandwich-man, of Griffiths, of Pears'
  • legendary soap, and of Eno's fruit salt which, by sheer brass and
  • notoriety, and the most disgusting pictures I ever remember to have
  • seen, has overlaid that comforter of my childhood, Lamplough's pyretic
  • saline. Lamplough was genteel, Eno was omnipresent; Lamplough was trite,
  • Eno original and abominably vulgar; and here have I, a man of some
  • pretensions to knowledge of the world, contented myself with half a
  • sheet of note-paper, a few cold words which do not directly address the
  • imagination, and the adornment (if adornment it may be called) of four
  • red wafers! Am I, then, to sink with Lamplough, or to soar with Eno? Am
  • I to adopt that modesty which is doubtless becoming in a duke? or to
  • take hold of the red facts of life with the emphasis of the tradesman
  • and the poet?"
  • Pursuant upon these meditations, he procured several sheets of the very
  • largest size of drawing-paper; and laying forth his paints, proceeded to
  • compose an ensign that might attract the eye and at the same time, in
  • his own phrase, directly address the imagination of the passenger.
  • Something taking in the way of colour, a good, savoury choice of words,
  • and a realistic design setting forth the life a lodger might expect to
  • lead within the walls of that palace of delight: these, he perceived,
  • must be the elements of his advertisement. It was possible, upon the one
  • hand, to depict the sober pleasures of domestic life, the evening fire,
  • blond-headed urchins, and the hissing urn; but on the other, it was
  • possible (and he almost felt as if it were more suited to his muse) to
  • set forth the charms of an existence somewhat wider in its range, or,
  • boldly say, the paradise of the Mohammedan. So long did the artist waver
  • between these two views, that, before he arrived at a conclusion, he had
  • finally conceived and completed both designs. With the proverbially
  • tender heart of the parent, he found himself unable to sacrifice either
  • of these offspring of his art; and decided to expose them on alternate
  • days. "In this way," he thought, "I shall address myself indifferently
  • to all classes of the world."
  • The tossing of a penny decided the only remaining point; and the more
  • imaginative canvas received the suffrages of fortune and appeared first
  • in the window of the mansion. It was of a high fancy, the legend
  • eloquently writ, the scheme of colour taking and bold; and but for the
  • imperfection of the artist's drawing, it might have been taken for a
  • model of its kind. As it was, however, when viewed from his favourite
  • point against the garden railings, and with some touch of distance, it
  • caused a pleasurable rising of the artist's heart. "I have thrown away,"
  • he ejaculated, "an invaluable motive; and this shall be the subject of
  • my first Academy picture."
  • The fate of neither of these works was equal to its merit. A crowd would
  • certainly, from time to time, collect before the area-railings; but they
  • came to jeer and not to speculate; and those who pushed their inquiries
  • further, were too plainly animated by the spirit of derision. The racier
  • of the two cartoons displayed, indeed, no symptom of attractive merit;
  • and though it had a certain share of that success called scandalous,
  • failed utterly of its effect. On the day, however, of the second
  • appearance of the companion work, a real inquirer did actually present
  • himself before the eyes of Somerset.
  • This was a gentlemanly man, with some marks of recent merriment, and his
  • voice under inadequate control.
  • "I beg your pardon," said he, "but what is the meaning of your
  • extraordinary bill?"
  • "I beg yours," returned Somerset hotly. "Its meaning is sufficiently
  • explicit." And being now, from dire experience, fearful of ridicule, he
  • was preparing to close the door, when the gentleman thrust his cane into
  • the aperture.
  • "Not so fast, I beg of you," said he. "If you really let apartments,
  • here is a possible tenant at your door; and nothing would give me
  • greater pleasure than to see the accommodation and to learn your terms."
  • His heart joyously beating, Somerset admitted the visitor, showed him
  • over the various apartments, and, with some return of his persuasive
  • eloquence, expounded their attractions. The gentleman was particularly
  • pleased by the elegant proportions of the drawing-room.
  • "This," he said, "would suit me very well. What, may I ask, would be
  • your terms a week, for this floor and the one above it?"
  • "I was thinking," returned Somerset, "of a hundred pounds."
  • "Surely not," exclaimed the gentleman.
  • "Well, then," returned Somerset, "fifty."
  • The gentleman regarded him with an air of some amazement. "You seem to
  • be strangely elastic in your demands," said he. "What if I were to
  • proceed on your own principle of division, and offer twenty-five?"
  • "Done!" cried Somerset; and then, overcome by a sudden embarrassment,
  • "you see," he added apologetically, "it is all found money for me."
  • "Really?" said the stranger, looking at him all the while with growing
  • wonder. "Without extras, then?"
  • "I--I suppose so," stammered the keeper of the lodging-house.
  • "Service included?" pursued the gentleman.
  • "Service?" cried Somerset. "Do you mean that you expect me to empty your
  • slops?"
  • The gentleman regarded him with a very friendly interest. "My dear
  • fellow," said he, "if you take my advice, you will give up this
  • business." And thereupon he resumed his hat and took himself away.
  • This smarting disappointment produced a strong effect on the artist of
  • the cartoons; and he began with shame to eat up his rosier illusions.
  • First one and then the other of his great works was condemned, withdrawn
  • from exhibition, and relegated, as a mere wall-picture, to the
  • decoration of the dining-room. Their place was taken by a replica of the
  • original watered announcement, to which, in particularly large letters,
  • he had added the pithy rubric: "_No service._" Meanwhile he had fallen
  • into something as nearly bordering on low spirits as was consistent with
  • his disposition; depressed, at once by the failure of his scheme, the
  • laughable turn of his late interview, and the judicial blindness of the
  • public to the merit of the twin cartoons.
  • Perhaps a week had passed before he was again startled by the note of
  • the knocker. A gentleman of a somewhat foreign and somewhat military
  • air, yet closely shaven and wearing a soft hat, desired in the politest
  • terms to visit the apartments. He had (he explained) a friend, a
  • gentleman in tender health, desirous of a sedate and solitary life,
  • apart from interruptions and the noises of the common lodging-house.
  • "The unusual clause," he continued, "in your announcement, particularly
  • struck me. 'This,' I said, 'is the place for Mr. Jones.' You are
  • yourself, sir, a professional gentleman?" concluded the visitor, looking
  • keenly in Somerset's face.
  • "I am an artist," replied the young man lightly.
  • "And these," observed the other, taking a side glance through the open
  • door of the dining-room, which they were then passing, "these are some
  • of your works. Very remarkable." And he again and still more sharply
  • peered into the countenance of the young man.
  • Somerset, unable to suppress a blush, made the more haste to lead his
  • visitor upstairs and to display the apartments.
  • "Excellent," observed the stranger, as he looked from one of the back
  • windows. "Is that a mews behind, sir? Very good. Well, sir: see here. My
  • friend will take your drawing-room floor; he will sleep in the back
  • drawing-room; his nurse, an excellent Irish widow, will attend on all
  • his wants and occupy a garret; he will pay you the round sum of ten
  • dollars a week; and you, on your part, will engage to receive no other
  • lodger? I think that fair."
  • Somerset had scarcely words in which to clothe his gratitude and joy.
  • "Agreed," said the other; "and to spare you trouble, my friend will
  • bring some men with him to make the changes. You will find him a
  • retiring inmate, sir; receives but few, and rarely leaves the house
  • except at night."
  • "Since I have been in this house," returned Somerset, "I have myself,
  • unless it were to fetch beer, rarely gone abroad except in the evening.
  • But a man," he added, "must have some amusement."
  • An hour was then agreed on; the gentleman departed; and Somerset sat
  • down to compute in English money the value of the figure named. The
  • result of this investigation filled him with amazement and disgust; but
  • it was now too late; nothing remained but to endure; and he awaited the
  • arrival of his tenant, still trying, by various arithmetical expedients,
  • to obtain a more favourable quotation for the dollar. With the approach
  • of dusk, however, his impatience drove him once more to the front
  • balcony. The night fell, mild and airless; the lamps shone around the
  • central darkness of the garden; and through the tall grove of trees that
  • intervened, many warmly illuminated windows on the farther side of the
  • square told their tale of white napery, choice wine, and genial
  • hospitality. The stars were already thickening overhead, when the young
  • man's eyes alighted on a procession of three four-wheelers, coasting
  • round the garden railing and bound for the Superfluous Mansion. They
  • were laden with formidable boxes; moved in a military order, one
  • following another; and, by the extreme slowness of their advance,
  • inspired Somerset with the most serious ideas of his tenant's malady.
  • By the time he had the door open, the cabs had drawn up beside the
  • pavement; and from the two first, there had alighted the military
  • gentleman of the morning and two very stalwart porters. These proceeded
  • instantly to take possession of the house; with their own hands, and
  • firmly rejecting Somerset's assistance, they carried in the various
  • crates and boxes; with their own hands dismounted and transferred to the
  • back drawing-room the bed in which the tenant was to sleep; and it was
  • not until the bustle of arrival had subsided, and the arrangements were
  • complete, that there descended, from the third of the three vehicles, a
  • gentleman of great stature and broad shoulders, leaning on the shoulder
  • of a woman in a widow's dress, and himself covered by a long cloak and
  • muffled in a coloured comforter.
  • Somerset had but a glimpse of him in passing; he was soon shut into the
  • back drawing-room; the other men departed; silence redescended on the
  • house; and had not the nurse appeared a little before half-past ten,
  • and, with a strong brogue, asked if there were a decent public-house in
  • the neighbourhood, Somerset might have still supposed himself to be
  • alone in the Superfluous Mansion.
  • Day followed day; and still the young man had never come by speech or
  • sight of his mysterious lodger. The doors of the drawing-room flat were
  • never open; and although Somerset could hear him moving to and fro, the
  • tall man had never quitted the privacy of his apartments. Visitors,
  • indeed, arrived; sometimes in the dusk, sometimes at intempestuous hours
  • of night or morning; men, for the most part; some meanly attired, some
  • decently; some loud, some cringing; and yet all, in the eyes of
  • Somerset, displeasing. A certain air of fear and secrecy was common to
  • them all; they were all voluble, he thought, and ill at ease; even the
  • military gentleman proved, on a closer inspection, to be no gentleman at
  • all; and as for the doctor who attended the sick man, his manners were
  • not suggestive of a university career. The nurse, again, was scarcely a
  • desirable house-fellow. Since her arrival, the fall of whisky in the
  • young man's private bottle was much accelerated; and though never
  • communicative, she was at times unpleasantly familiar. When asked about
  • the patient's health, she would dolorously shake her head, and declare
  • that the poor gentleman was in a pitiful condition.
  • Yet somehow Somerset had early begun to entertain the notion that his
  • complaint was other than bodily. The ill-looking birds that gathered to
  • the house, the strange noises that sounded from the drawing-room in the
  • dead hours of night, the careless attendance and intemperate habits of
  • the nurse, the entire absence of correspondence, the entire seclusion of
  • Mr. Jones himself, whose face, up to that hour, he could not have sworn
  • to in a court of justice--all weighed unpleasantly upon the young man's
  • mind. A sense of something evil, irregular and underhand, haunted and
  • depressed him; and this uneasy sentiment was the more firmly rooted in
  • his mind, when, in the fulness of time, he had an opportunity of
  • observing the features of his tenant. It fell in this way. The young
  • landlord was awakened about four in the morning by a noise in the hall.
  • Leaping to his feet, and opening the door of the library, he saw the
  • tall man, candle in hand, in earnest conversation with the gentleman who
  • had taken the rooms. The faces of both were strongly illuminated; and in
  • that of his tenant Somerset could perceive none of the marks of disease,
  • but every sign of health, energy, and resolution. While he was still
  • looking, the visitor took his departure; and the invalid, having
  • carefully fastened the front door, sprang upstairs without a trace of
  • lassitude.
  • That night upon his pillow, Somerset began to kindle once more into the
  • hot fit of the detective fever; and the next morning resumed the
  • practice of his art with careless hand and an abstracted mind. The day
  • was destined to be fertile in surprises; nor had he long been seated at
  • the easel ere the first of these occurred. A cab laden with baggage
  • drew up before the door; and Mrs. Luxmore in person rapidly mounted the
  • steps and began to pound upon the knocker. Somerset hastened to attend
  • the summons.
  • "My dear fellow," she said, with the utmost gaiety, "here I come
  • dropping from the moon. I am delighted to find you faithful; and I have
  • no doubt you will be equally pleased to be restored to liberty."
  • Somerset could find no words, whether of protest or welcome; and the
  • spirited old lady pushed briskly by him, and paused on the threshold of
  • the dining-room. The sight that met her eyes was one well calculated to
  • inspire astonishment. The mantelpiece was arrayed with saucepans and
  • empty bottles; on the fire some chops were frying; the floor was
  • littered from end to end with books, clothes, walking-canes, and the
  • materials of the painter's craft; but what far outstripped the other
  • wonders of the place was the corner which had been arranged for the
  • study of still-life. This formed a sort of rockery; conspicuous upon
  • which, according to the principles of the art of composition, a cabbage
  • was relieved against a copper kettle, and both contrasted with the mail
  • of a boiled lobster.
  • "My gracious goodness!" cried the lady of the house; and then, turning
  • in wrath on the young man, "From what rank in life are you sprung?" she
  • demanded. "You have the exterior of a gentleman; but from the
  • astonishing evidences before me, I should say you can only be a
  • green-grocer's man. Pray, gather up your vegetables, and let me see no
  • more of you."
  • "Madam," babbled Somerset, "you promised me a month's warning."
  • "That was under a misapprehension," returned the old lady. "I now give
  • you warning to leave at once."
  • "Madam," said the young man, "I wish I could; and indeed, as far as I am
  • concerned, it might be done. But then, my lodger!"
  • "Your lodger?" echoed Mrs. Luxmore.
  • "My lodger: why should I deny it?" returned Somerset. "He is only by the
  • week."
  • The old lady sat down upon a chair. "You have a lodger?--you?" she
  • cried. "And pray, how did you get him?"
  • "By advertisement," replied the young man. "O madam, I have not lived
  • unobservantly. I adopted"--his eyes involuntarily shifted to the
  • cartoons--"I adopted every method."
  • Her eyes had followed his; for the first time in Somerset's experience,
  • she produced a double eyeglass; and as soon as the full merit of the
  • works had flashed upon her, she gave way to peal after peal of her
  • trilling and soprano laughter.
  • "Oh, I think you are perfectly delicious!" she cried. "I do hope you had
  • them in the window. M'Pherson," she continued, crying to her maid, who
  • had been all this time grimly waiting in the hall, "I lunch with Mr.
  • Somerset. Take the cellar key and bring some wine."
  • In this gay humour she continued throughout the luncheon; presented
  • Somerset with a couple of dozen of wine, which she made M'Pherson bring
  • up from the cellar--"as a present, my dear," she said, with another
  • burst of tearful merriment, "for your charming pictures, which you must
  • be sure to leave me when you go"; and finally, protesting that she dared
  • not spoil the absurdest houseful of madmen in the whole of London,
  • departed (as she vaguely phrased it) for the continent of Europe.
  • She was no sooner gone than Somerset encountered in the corridor the
  • Irish nurse; sober, to all appearance, and yet a prey to singularly
  • strong emotion. It was made to appear, from her account, that Mr. Jones
  • had already suffered acutely in his health from Mrs. Luxmore's visit,
  • and that nothing short of a full explanation could allay the invalid's
  • uneasiness. Somerset, somewhat staring, told what he thought fit of the
  • affair.
  • "Is that all?" cried the woman. "As God sees you, is that all?"
  • "My good woman," said the young man, "I have no idea what you can be
  • driving at. Suppose the lady were my friend's wife, suppose she were my
  • fairy godmother, suppose she were the Queen of Portugal; and how should
  • that affect yourself or Mr. Jones?"
  • "Blessed Mary!" cried the nurse, "it's he that will be glad to hear it!"
  • And immediately she fled upstairs.
  • Somerset, on his part, returned to the dining-room, and, with a very
  • thoughtful brow and ruminating many theories, disposed of the remainder
  • of the bottle. It was port; and port is a wine, sole among its equals
  • and superiors, that can in some degree support the competition of
  • tobacco. Sipping, smoking, and theorising, Somerset moved on from
  • suspicion to suspicion, from resolve to resolve, still growing braver
  • and rosier as the bottle ebbed. He was a sceptic, none prouder of the
  • name; he had no horror at command, whether for crimes or vices, but
  • beheld and embraced the world, with an immoral approbation, the frequent
  • consequence of youth and health. At the same time, he felt convinced
  • that he dwelt under the same roof with secret malefactors; and the
  • unregenerate instinct of the chase impelled him to severity. The bottle
  • had run low; the summer sun had finally withdrawn; and at the same
  • moment, night and the pangs of hunger recalled him from his dreams.
  • He went forth, and dined in the Criterion: a dinner in consonance, not
  • so much with his purse, as with the admirable wine he had discussed.
  • What with one thing and another, it was long past midnight when he
  • returned home. A cab was at the door; and entering the hall, Somerset
  • found himself face to face with one of the most regular of the few who
  • visited Mr. Jones: a man of powerful figure, strong lineaments, and a
  • chin-beard in the American fashion. This person was carrying on one
  • shoulder a black portmanteau, seemingly of considerable weight. That he
  • should find a visitor removing baggage in the dead of night, recalled
  • some odd stories to the young man's memory; he had heard of lodgers who
  • thus gradually drained away, not only their own effects, but the very
  • furniture and fittings of the house that sheltered them; and now, in a
  • mood between pleasantry and suspicion, and aping the manner of a
  • drunkard, he roughly bumped against the man with the chin-beard and
  • knocked the portmanteau from his shoulder to the floor. With a face
  • struck suddenly as white as paper, the man with the chin-beard called
  • lamentably on the name of his Maker, and fell in a mere heap on the mat
  • at the foot of the stairs. At the same time, though only for a single
  • instant, the heads of the sick lodger and the Irish nurse popped out
  • like rabbits over the banisters of the first floor; and on both the same
  • scare and pallor were apparent.
  • The sight of this incredible emotion turned Somerset to stone, and he
  • continued speechless, while the man gathered himself together, and, with
  • the help of the hand-rail and audibly thanking God, scrambled once more
  • upon his feet.
  • "What in Heaven's name ails you?" gasped the young man as soon as he
  • could find words and utterance.
  • "Have you a drop of brandy?" returned the other. "I am sick."
  • Somerset administered two drams, one after the other, to the man with
  • the chin-beard; who then, somewhat restored, began to confound himself
  • in apologies for what he called his miserable nervousness, the result,
  • he said, of a long course of dumb ague; and having taken leave with a
  • hand that still sweated and trembled, he gingerly resumed his burthen
  • and departed.
  • Somerset retired to bed but not to sleep. What, he asked himself, had
  • been the contents of the black portmanteau? Stolen goods? the carcass of
  • one murdered? or--and at the thought he sat upright in bed--an infernal
  • machine? He took a solemn vow that he would set these doubts at rest;
  • and, with the next morning, installed himself beside the dining-room
  • window, vigilant with eye and ear, to await and profit by the earliest
  • opportunity.
  • The hours went heavily by. Within the house there was no circumstance of
  • novelty; unless it might be that the nurse more frequently made little
  • journeys round the corner of the square, and before afternoon was
  • somewhat loose of speech and gait. A little after six, however, there
  • came round the corner of the gardens a very handsome and elegantly
  • dressed young woman, who paused a little way off, and for some time, and
  • with frequent sighs, contemplated the front of the Superfluous Mansion.
  • It was not the first time that she had thus stood afar and looked upon
  • it, like our common parents at the gates of Eden; and the young man had
  • already had occasion to remark the lively slimness of her carriage, and
  • had already been the butt of a chance arrow from her eye. He hailed her
  • coming, then, with pleasant feelings, and moved a little nearer to the
  • window to enjoy the sight. What was his surprise, however, when, as if
  • with a sensible effort, she drew near, mounted the steps, and tapped
  • discreetly at the door! He made haste to get before the Irish nurse, who
  • was not improbably asleep, and had the satisfaction to receive this
  • gracious visitor in person.
  • She inquired for Mr. Jones; and then, without transition, asked the
  • young man if he were the person of the house (and at the words, he
  • thought he could perceive her to be smiling), "because," she added, "if
  • you are, I should like to see some of the other rooms."
  • Somerset told her he was under an engagement to receive no other
  • lodgers; but she assured him that would be no matter, as these were
  • friends of Mr. Jones's. "And," she continued, moving suddenly to the
  • dining-room door, "let us begin here." Somerset was too late to prevent
  • her entering, and perhaps lacked the courage to essay. "Ah!" she cried,
  • "how changed it is!"
  • "Madam," cried the young man, "since your entrance, it is I who have the
  • right to say so."
  • She received this inane compliment with a demure and conscious droop of
  • the eyelids, and gracefully steering her dress among the mingled
  • litter, now with a smile, now with a sigh, reviewed the wonders of the
  • two apartments. She gazed upon the cartoons with sparkling eyes, and a
  • heightened colour, and, in a somewhat breathless voice, expressed a high
  • opinion of their merits. She praised the effective disposition of the
  • rockery, and in the bedroom, of which Somerset had vainly endeavoured to
  • defend the entry, she fairly broke forth in admiration. "How simple and
  • manly!" she cried: "none of that effeminacy of neatness, which is so
  • detestable in a man!" Hard upon this, telling him, before he had time to
  • reply, that she very well knew her way, and would trouble him no
  • further, she took her leave with an engaging smile, and ascended the
  • staircase alone.
  • For more than an hour the young lady remained closeted with Mr. Jones;
  • and at the end of that time, the night being now come completely, they
  • left the house in company. This was the first time since the arrival of
  • his lodger that Somerset had found himself alone with the Irish widow;
  • and without the loss of any more time than was required by decency, he
  • stepped to the foot of the stairs and hailed her by her name. She came
  • instantly, wreathed in weak smiles and with a nodding head; and when the
  • young man politely offered to introduce her to the treasures of his art,
  • she swore that nothing could afford her greater pleasure, for, though
  • she had never crossed the threshold, she had frequently observed his
  • beautiful pictures through the door. On entering the dining-room, the
  • sight of a bottle and two glasses prepared her to be a gentle critic;
  • and as soon as the pictures had been viewed and praised, she was easily
  • persuaded to join the painter in a single glass. "Here," she said, "are
  • my respects; and a pleasure it is, in this horrible house, to see a
  • gentleman like yourself, so affable and free, and a very nice painter, I
  • am sure." One glass so agreeably prefaced, was sure to lead to the
  • acceptance of a second; at the third, Somerset was free to cease from
  • the affectation of keeping her company; and as for the fourth, she
  • asked it of her own accord. "For indeed," said she, "what with all these
  • clocks and chemicals, without a drop of the creature life would be
  • impossible entirely. And you seen yourself that even M'Guire was glad to
  • beg for it. And even himself, when he is downhearted with all these
  • cruel disappointments, though as temperate a man as any child, will be
  • sometimes crying for a glass of it. And I'll thank you for a thimbleful
  • to settle what I got." Soon after, she began with tears to narrate the
  • deathbed dispositions and lament the trifling assets of her husband.
  • Then she declared she heard "the master" calling her, rose to her feet,
  • made but one lurch of it into the still-life rockery, and with her head
  • upon the lobster, fell into stertorous slumbers.
  • Somerset mounted at once to the first story, and opened the door of the
  • drawing-room, which was brilliantly lit by several lamps. It was a great
  • apartment; looking on the square with three tall windows, and joined by
  • a pair of ample folding-doors to the next room; elegant in proportion,
  • papered in sea-green, furnished in velvet of a delicate blue, and
  • adorned with a majestic mantelpiece of variously tinted marbles. Such
  • was the room that Somerset remembered; that which he now beheld was
  • changed in almost every feature: the furniture covered with a figured
  • chintz; the walls hung with a rhubarb-coloured paper, and diversified by
  • the curtained recesses for no less than seven windows. It seemed to
  • himself that he must have entered, without observing the transition,
  • into the adjoining house. Presently from these more specious changes,
  • his eye condescended to the many curious objects with which the floor
  • was littered. Here were the locks of dismounted pistols; clocks and
  • clockwork in every stage of demolition, some still busily ticking, some
  • reduced to their dainty elements; a great company of carboys, jars, and
  • bottles; a carpenter's bench and a laboratory-table.
  • The back drawing-room, to which Somerset proceeded, had likewise
  • undergone a change. It was transformed to the exact appearance of a
  • common lodging-house bedroom; a bed with green curtains occupied one
  • corner; and the window was blocked by the regulation table and mirror.
  • The door of a small closet here attracted the young man's attention; and
  • striking a vesta, he opened it and entered. On a table, several wigs and
  • beards were lying spread; about the walls hung an incongruous display of
  • suits and overcoats; and conspicuous among the last the young man
  • observed a large overall of the most costly sealskin. In a flash his
  • mind reverted to the advertisement in the _Standard_ newspaper. The
  • great height of his lodger, the disproportionate breadth of his
  • shoulders, and the strange particulars of his instalment, all pointed to
  • the same conclusion.
  • The vesta had now burned to his fingers; and taking the coat upon his
  • arm, Somerset hastily returned to the lighted drawing-room. There, with
  • a mixture of fear and admiration, he pored upon its goodly proportions
  • and the regularity and softness of the pile. The sight of a large
  • pier-glass put another fancy in his head. He donned the fur coat; and
  • standing before the mirror in an attitude suggestive of a Russian
  • prince, he thrust his hands into the ample pockets. There his fingers
  • encountered a folded journal. He drew it out, and recognised the type
  • and paper of the _Standard;_ and at the same instant his eyes alighted
  • on the offer of two hundred pounds. Plainly then, his lodger, now no
  • longer mysterious, had laid aside his coat on the very day of the
  • appearance of the advertisement.
  • He was thus standing, the tell-tale coat upon his back, the
  • incriminating paper in his hand, when the door opened and the tall
  • lodger, with a firm but somewhat pallid face, stepped into the room and
  • closed the door again behind him. For some time the two looked upon each
  • other in perfect silence; then Mr. Jones moved forward to the table,
  • took a seat, and, still without once changing the direction of his eyes,
  • addressed the young man.
  • "You are right," he said. "It is for me the blood money is offered. And
  • now what will you do?"
  • It was a question to which Somerset was far from being able to reply.
  • Taken as he was at unawares, masquerading in the man's own coat, and
  • surrounded by a whole arsenal of diabolical explosives, the keeper of
  • the lodging-house was silenced.
  • "Yes," resumed the other, "I am he. I am that man, whom with impotent
  • hate and fear they still hunt from den to den, from disguise to
  • disguise. Yet, my landlord, you have it in your power, if you be poor,
  • to lay the basis of your fortune; if you be unknown, to capture honour
  • at one snatch. You have hocussed an innocent widow; and I find you here
  • in my apartment, for whose use I pay you in stamped money, searching my
  • wardrobe, and your hand--shame, sir!--your hand in my very pocket. You
  • can now complete the cycle of your ignominious acts, by what will be at
  • once the simplest, the safest, and the most remunerative." The speaker
  • paused as if to emphasise his words; and then, with a great change of
  • tone and manner, thus resumed: "And yet, sir, when I look upon your
  • face, I feel certain that I cannot be deceived: certain that in spite of
  • all, I have the honour and pleasure of speaking to a gentleman. Take off
  • my coat, sir--which but cumbers you. Divest yourself of this confusion:
  • that which is but thought upon, thank God, need be no burthen to the
  • conscience; we have all harboured guilty thoughts; and if it flashed
  • into your mind to sell my flesh and blood, my anguish in the dock, and
  • the sweat of my death agony--it was a thought, dear sir, you were as
  • incapable of acting on, as I of any further question of your honour." At
  • these words the speaker, with a very open, smiling countenance, like a
  • forgiving father, offered Somerset his hand.
  • It was not in the young man's nature to refuse forgiveness or dissect
  • generosity. He instantly, and almost without thought, accepted the
  • proffered grasp.
  • "And now," resumed the lodger, "now that I hold in mine your loyal hand,
  • I lay by my apprehensions, I dismiss suspicion, I go further--by an
  • effort of will, I banish the memory of what is past. How you came here,
  • I care not: enough that you are here--as my guest. Sit ye down; and let
  • us, with your good permission, improve acquaintance over a glass of
  • excellent whisky."
  • So speaking, he produced glasses and a bottle; and the pair pledged each
  • other in silence.
  • "Confess," observed the smiling host, "you were surprised at the
  • appearance of the room."
  • "I was indeed," said Somerset; "nor can I imagine the purpose of these
  • changes."
  • "These," replied the conspirator, "are the devices by which I continue
  • to exist. Conceive me now, accused before one of your unjust tribunals;
  • conceive the various witnesses appearing, and the singular variety of
  • their reports! One will have visited me in this drawing-room as it
  • originally stood; a second finds it as it is to-night; and to-morrow or
  • next day, all may have been changed. If you love romance (as artists
  • do), few lives are more romantic than that of the obscure individual now
  • addressing you. Obscure yet famous. Mine is an anonymous, infernal
  • glory. By infamous means, I work towards my bright purpose. I found the
  • liberty and peace of a poor country desperately abused; the future
  • smiles upon that land; yet, in the meantime, I lead the existence of a
  • hunted brute, work towards appalling ends, and practise hell's
  • dexterities."
  • Somerset, glass in hand, contemplated the strange fanatic before him,
  • and listened to his heated rhapsody, with indescribable bewilderment. He
  • looked him in the face with curious particularity; saw there the marks
  • of education; and wondered the more profoundly.
  • "Sir," he said--"for I know not whether I should still address you as
  • Mr. Jones--"
  • "Jones, Breitman, Higginbotham, Pumpernickel, Daviot, Henderland, by all
  • or any of these you may address me," said the plotter; "for all I have
  • at some time borne. Yet that which I most prize, that which is most
  • feared, hated, and obeyed, is not a name to be found in your
  • directories; it is not a name current in post-offices or banks; and
  • indeed, like the celebrated clan M'Gregor, I may justly describe myself
  • as being nameless by day. But," he continued, rising to his feet, "by
  • night, and among my desperate followers, I am the redoubted Zero."
  • Somerset was unacquainted with the name; but he politely expressed
  • surprise and gratification. "I am to understand," he continued, "that,
  • under this alias, you follow the profession of a dynamiter?"[3]
  • The plotter had resumed his seat and now replenished the glasses.
  • "I do," he said. "In this dark period of time, a star--the star of
  • dynamite--has risen for the oppressed; and among those who practise its
  • use, so thick beset with dangers and attended by such incredible
  • difficulties and disappointments, few have been more assiduous, and not
  • many--" He paused, and a shade of embarrassment appeared upon his
  • face--"not many have been more successful than myself."
  • "I can imagine," observed Somerset, "that, from the sweeping
  • consequences looked for, the career is not devoid of interest. You have,
  • besides, some of the entertainment of the game of hide-and-seek. But it
  • would still seem to me--I speak as a layman--that nothing could be
  • simpler or safer than to deposit an infernal machine and retire to an
  • adjacent county to await the painful consequences."
  • "You speak, indeed," returned the plotter, with some evidence of warmth,
  • "you speak, indeed, most ignorantly. Do you make nothing, then, of such
  • a peril as we share this moment? Do you think it nothing to occupy a
  • house like this one, mined, menaced, and, in a word, literally tottering
  • to its fall?"
  • "Good God!" ejaculated Somerset.
  • "And when you speak of ease," pursued Zero, "in this age of scientific
  • studies, you fill me with surprise. Are you not aware that chemicals are
  • proverbially fickle as woman, and clockwork as capricious as the very
  • devil? Do you see upon my brow these furrows of anxiety? do you observe
  • the silver threads that mingle with my hair? Clockwork, clockwork has
  • stamped them on my brow--chemicals have sprinkled them upon my locks!
  • No, Mr. Somerset," he resumed, after a moment's pause, his voice still
  • quivering with sensibility, "you must not suppose the dynamiter's life
  • to be all gold. On the contrary: you cannot picture to yourself the
  • bloodshot vigils and the staggering disappointments of a life like mine.
  • I have toiled (let us say) for months, up early and down late; my bag is
  • ready, my clock set; a daring agent has hurried with white face to
  • deposit the instrument of ruin; we await the fall of England, the
  • massacre of thousands, the yell of fear and execration; and lo! a snap
  • like that of a child's pistol, an offensive smell, and the entire loss
  • of so much time and plant! If," he concluded musingly, "we had been
  • merely able to recover the lost bags, I believe, with but a touch or
  • two, I could have remedied the peccant engine. But what with the loss of
  • plant and the almost insuperable scientific difficulties of the task,
  • our friends in France are almost ready to desert the chosen medium. They
  • propose, instead, to break up the drainage system of cities and sweep
  • off whole populations with the devastating typhoid pestilence: a
  • tempting and a scientific project: a process, indiscriminate indeed, but
  • of idyllical simplicity. I recognise its elegance; but, sir, I have
  • something of the poet in my nature; something, possibly, of the tribune.
  • And, for my small part, I shall remain devoted to that more emphatic,
  • more striking, and (if you please) more popular method of the explosive
  • bomb. Yes," he cried, with unshaken hope, "I will still continue and, I
  • feel it in my bosom, I shall yet succeed."
  • "Two things I remark," said Somerset. "The first somewhat staggers me.
  • Have you, then--in all this course of life, which you have sketched so
  • vividly--have you not once succeeded?"
  • "Pardon me," said Zero. "I have had one success. You behold in me the
  • author of the outrage of Red Lion Court."
  • "But if I remember right," objected Somerset, "the thing was a _fiasco_.
  • A scavenger's barrow and some copies of the _Weekly Budget_--these were
  • the only victims."
  • "You will pardon me again," returned Zero, with positive asperity: "a
  • child was injured."
  • "And that fitly brings me to my second point," said Somerset. "For I
  • observed you to employ the word 'indiscriminate.' Now, surely, a
  • scavenger's barrow and a child (if child there were) represent the very
  • acme and top pin-point of indiscriminate and, pardon me, of ineffectual
  • reprisal."
  • "Did I employ the word?" asked Zero. "Well, I will not defend it. But
  • for efficiency, you touch on graver matters; and before entering upon so
  • vast a subject, permit me once more to fill our glasses. Disputation is
  • dry work," he added, with a charming gaiety of manner.
  • Once more accordingly the pair pledged each other in a stalwart grog;
  • and Zero, leaning back with an air of some complacency, proceeded more
  • largely to develop his opinions.
  • "The indiscriminate?" he began. "War, my dear sir, is indiscriminate.
  • War spares not the child; it spares not the barrow of the harmless
  • scavenger. No more," he concluded, beaming, "no more do I. Whatever may
  • strike fear, whatever may confound or paralyse the activities of the
  • guilty nation, barrow or child, imperial Parliament or excursion
  • steamer, is welcome to my simple plans. You are not," he inquired, with
  • a shade of sympathetic interest, "you are not, I trust, a believer?"
  • "Sir, I believe in nothing," said the young man.
  • "You are then," replied Zero, "in a position to grasp my argument. We
  • agree that humanity is the object, the glorious triumph of humanity; and
  • being pledged to labour for that end, and face to face with the banded
  • opposition of kings, parliaments, churches, and the members of the
  • force, who am I--who are we, dear sir--to affect a nicety about the
  • tools employed? You might, perhaps, expect us to attack the Queen, the
  • sinister Gladstone, the rigid Derby, or the dexterous Granville; but
  • there you would be in error. Our appeal is to the body of the people; it
  • is these that we would touch and interest. Now, sir, have you observed
  • the English housemaid?"
  • "I should think I had," cried Somerset.
  • "From a man of taste and a votary of art, I had expected it," returned
  • the conspirator politely. "A type apart; a very charming figure; and
  • thoroughly adapted to our ends. The neat cap, the clean print, the
  • comely person, the engaging manner; her position between classes,
  • parents in one, employers in another; the probability that she will have
  • at least one sweetheart, whose feelings we shall address:--yes, I have a
  • leaning--call it, if you will, a weakness--for the housemaid. Not that I
  • would be understood to despise the nurse. For the child is a very
  • interesting feature: I have long since marked out the child as the
  • sensitive point in society." He wagged his head, with a wise, pensive
  • smile. "And talking, sir, of children and of the perils of our trade,
  • let me now narrate to you a little incident of an explosive bomb, that
  • fell out some weeks ago under my own observation. It fell out thus."
  • And Zero leaning back in his chair narrated the following simple tale.
  • FOOTNOTE:
  • [3] The Arabian author of the original has here a long passage
  • conceived in a style too oriental for the English reader. We subjoin
  • a specimen, and it seems doubtful whether it should be printed as
  • prose or verse: "Any writard who writes dynamitard shall find in me
  • a never-resting fightard"; and he goes on (if we correctly gather
  • his meaning) to object to such elegant and obviously correct
  • spellings as lamp-lightard, corn-dealard, apple-filchard (clearly
  • justified by the parallel--pilchard), and opera-dançard.
  • "Dynamitist," he adds, "I could understand."
  • ZERO'S TALE OF THE EXPLOSIVE BOMB[4]
  • I dined by appointment with one of our most trusted agents, in a private
  • chamber at St. James's Hall. You have seen the man: it was M'Guire, the
  • most chivalrous of creatures, but not himself expert in our
  • contrivances. Hence the necessity of our meeting; for I need not remind
  • you what enormous issues depend upon the nice adjustment of the engine.
  • I set our little petard for half an hour, the scene of action being hard
  • by; and, the better to avert miscarriage, employed a device, a recent
  • invention of my own, by which the opening of the Gladstone bag in which
  • the bomb was carried should instantly determine the explosion. M'Guire
  • was somewhat dashed by this arrangement, which was new to him: and
  • pointed out, with excellent, clear good sense, that should he be
  • arrested, it would probably involve him in the fall of our opponents.
  • But I was not to be moved, made a strong appeal to his patriotism, gave
  • him a good glass of whisky, and despatched him on his glorious errand.
  • Our objective was the effigy of Shakespeare in Leicester Square: a spot,
  • I think, admirably chosen; not only for the sake of the dramatist, still
  • very foolishly claimed as a glory by the English race, in spite of his
  • disgusting political opinions; but from the fact that the seats in the
  • immediate neighbourhood are often thronged by children, errand-boys,
  • unfortunate young ladies of the poorer class, and infirm old men--all
  • classes making a direct appeal to public pity, and therefore suitable
  • with our designs. As M'Guire drew near, his heart was inflamed by the
  • most noble sentiment of triumph. Never had he seen the garden so
  • crowded; children, still stumbling in the impotence of youth, ran to and
  • fro, shouting and playing, round the pedestal; an old, sick pensioner
  • sat upon the nearest bench, a medal on his breast, a stick with which he
  • walked (for he was disabled by wounds) reclining on his knee. Guilty
  • England would thus be stabbed in the most delicate quarters; the moment
  • had, indeed, been well selected; and M'Guire, with a radiant prevision
  • of the event, drew merrily nearer. Suddenly his eye alighted on the
  • burly form of a policeman, standing hard by the effigy in an attitude of
  • watch. My bold companion paused; he looked about him closely; here and
  • there, at different points of the enclosure, other men stood or
  • loitered, affecting an abstraction, feigning to gaze upon the shrubs,
  • feigning to talk, feigning to be weary and to rest upon the benches.
  • M'Guire was no child in these affairs; he instantly divined one of the
  • plots of the Machiavellian Gladstone.
  • A chief difficulty with which we have to deal is a certain nervousness
  • in the subaltern branches of the corps; as the hour of some design draws
  • near, these chicken-souled conspirators appear to suffer some revulsion
  • of intent; and frequently despatch to the authorities, not indeed
  • specific denunciations, but vague anonymous warnings. But for this
  • purely accidental circumstance, England had long ago been an historical
  • expression. On the receipt of such a letter, the Government lays a trap
  • for its adversaries, and surrounds the threatened spot with hirelings.
  • My blood sometimes boils in my veins, when I consider the case of those
  • who sell themselves for money in such a cause. True, thanks to the
  • generosity of our supporters, we patriots receive a very comfortable
  • stipend; I myself, of course, touch a salary which puts me quite beyond
  • the reach of any peddling, mercenary thoughts; M'Guire, again, ere he
  • joined our ranks, was on the brink of starving, and now, thank God!
  • receives a decent income. That is as it should be; the patriot must not
  • be diverted from his task by any base consideration; and the distinction
  • between our position and that of the police is too obvious to be stated.
  • Plainly, however, our Leicester Square design had been divulged; the
  • Government had craftily filled the place with minions; even the
  • pensioner was not improbably a hireling in disguise; and our emissary,
  • without other aid or protection than the simple apparatus in his bag,
  • found himself confronted by force; brutal force; that strong hand which
  • was a character of the ages of oppression. Should he venture to deposit
  • the machine, it was almost certain that he would be observed and
  • arrested; a cry would arise; and there was just a fear that the police
  • might not be present in sufficient force to protect him from the
  • savagery of the mob. The scheme must be delayed. He stood with his bag
  • on his arm, pretending to survey the front of the Alhambra, when there
  • flashed into his mind a thought to appal the bravest. The machine was
  • set; at the appointed hour, it must explode; and how, in the interval,
  • was he to be rid of it?
  • Put yourself, I beseech you, into the body of that patriot. There he
  • was, friendless and helpless; a man in the very flower of life, for he
  • is not yet forty; with long years of happiness before him; and now
  • condemned, in one moment, to a cruel and revolting death by dynamite!
  • The square, he said, went round him like a thaumatrope; he saw the
  • Alhambra leap into the air like a balloon; and reeled against the
  • railing. It is probable he fainted.
  • When he came to himself, a constable had him by the arm.
  • "My God!" he cried.
  • "You seem to be unwell, sir," said the hireling.
  • "I feel better now," cried poor M'Guire: and with uneven steps, for the
  • pavement of the square seemed to lurch and reel under his footing, he
  • fled from the scene of this disaster. Fled? Alas, from what was he
  • fleeing? Did he not carry that from which he fled, along with him? and
  • had he the wings of the eagle, had he the swiftness of the ocean winds,
  • could he have been rapt into the uttermost quarters of the earth, how
  • should he escape the ruin that he carried? We have heard of living men
  • who have been fettered to the dead; the grievance, soberly considered,
  • is no more than sentimental; the case is but a flea-bite to that of him
  • who should be linked, like poor M'Guire, to an explosive bomb.
  • A thought struck him in Green Street, like a dart through his liver:
  • suppose it were the hour already. He stopped as though he had been shot,
  • and plucked his watch out. There was a howling in his ears, as loud as a
  • winter tempest; his sight was now obscured as if by a cloud, now, as by
  • a lightning flash, would show him the very dust upon the street. But so
  • brief were these intervals of vision, and so violently did the watch
  • vibrate in his hands, that it was impossible to distinguish the numbers
  • on the dial. He covered his eyes for a few seconds; and in that space,
  • it seemed to him that he had fallen to be a man of ninety. When he
  • looked again, the watch-plate had grown legible: he had twenty minutes.
  • Twenty minutes, and no plan!
  • Green Street, at that time, was very empty; and he now observed a little
  • girl of about six drawing near to him and, as she came, kicking in front
  • of her, as children will, a piece of wood. She sang, too; and something
  • in her accent recalling him to the past produced a sudden clearness in
  • his mind. Here was a God-sent opportunity!
  • "My dear," said he, "would you like a present of a pretty bag?"
  • The child cried aloud with joy and put out her hands to take it. She had
  • looked first at the bag, like a true child; but most unfortunately,
  • before she had yet received the fatal gift, her eyes fell directly on
  • M'Guire; and no sooner had she seen the poor gentleman's face than she
  • screamed out and leaped backward, as though she had seen the devil.
  • Almost at the same moment a woman appeared upon the threshold of a
  • neighbouring shop, and called upon the child in anger. "Come here,
  • colleen," she said, "and don't be plaguing the poor old gentleman!" With
  • that she re-entered the house, and the child followed her, sobbing
  • aloud.
  • With the loss of this hope M'Guire's reason swooned within him. When
  • next he awoke to consciousness, he was standing before St.
  • Martin's-in-the-Fields, wavering like a drunken man; the passers-by
  • regarded him with eyes in which he read, as in a glass, an image of the
  • terror and horror that dwelt within his own.
  • "I am afraid you are very ill, sir," observed a woman, stopping and
  • gazing hard in his face. "Can I do anything to help you?"
  • "Ill?" said M'Guire. "O God!" And then, recovering some shadow of his
  • self-command, "Chronic, madam," said he: "a long course of the dumb
  • ague. But since you are so compassionate--an errand that I lack the
  • strength to carry out," he gasped--"this bag to Portman Square. O
  • compassionate woman, as you hope to be saved, as you are a mother, in
  • the name of your babes that wait to welcome you at home, oh, take this
  • bag to Portman Square! I have a mother, too," he added, with a broken
  • voice. "Number 19 Portman Square."
  • I suppose he had expressed himself with too much energy of voice; for
  • the woman was plainly taken with a certain fear of him. "Poor
  • gentleman!" said she. "If I were you, I would go home." And she left him
  • standing there in his distress.
  • "Home!" thought M'Guire, "what a derision!" What home was there for him,
  • the victim of philanthropy? He thought of his old mother, of his happy
  • youth; of the hideous, rending pang of the explosion; of the possibility
  • that he might not be killed, that he might be cruelly mangled, crippled
  • for life, condemned to life-long pains, blinded perhaps, and almost
  • surely deafened. Ah, you spoke lightly of the dynamiter's peril; but
  • even waiving death, have you realised what it is for a fine, brave young
  • man of forty, to be smitten suddenly with deafness, cut off from all the
  • music of life, and from the voice of friendship and love? How little do
  • we realise the sufferings of others! Even your brutal Government, in the
  • heyday of its lust for cruelty, though it scruples not to hound the
  • patriot with spies, to pack the corrupt jury, to bribe the hangman, and
  • to erect the infamous gallows, would hesitate to inflict so horrible a
  • doom: not, I am well aware, from virtue, not from philanthropy, but with
  • the fear before it of the withering scorn of the good.
  • But I wander from M'Guire. From this dread glance into the past and
  • future, his thoughts returned at a bound upon the present. How had he
  • wandered there? and how long--O heavens! how long had he been about it?
  • He pulled out his watch; and found that but three minutes had elapsed.
  • It seemed too bright a thing to be believed. He glanced at the church
  • clock; and sure enough, it marked an hour four minutes in advance of the
  • watch.
  • Of all that he endured, M'Guire declares that pang was the most
  • desolate. Till then, he had had one friend, one counsellor, in whom he
  • plenarily trusted; by whose advertisement he numbered the minutes that
  • remained to him of life; on whose sure testimony he could tell when the
  • time was come to risk the last adventure, to cast the bag away from him,
  • and take to flight. And now in what was he to place reliance? His watch
  • was slow; it might be losing time; if so, in what degree? What limit
  • could he set to its derangement? and how much was it possible for a
  • watch to lose in thirty minutes? Five? ten? fifteen? It might be so;
  • already, it seemed years since he had left St. James's Hall on this so
  • promising enterprise; at any moment, then, the blow was to be looked
  • for.
  • In the face of this new distress, the wild disorder of his pulses
  • settled down; and a broken weariness succeeded, as though he had lived
  • for centuries and for centuries been dead. The buildings and the people
  • in the street became incredibly small, and far-away, and bright; London
  • sounded in his ears stilly, like a whisper; and the rattle of the cab
  • that nearly charged him down was like a sound from Africa. Meanwhile, he
  • was conscious of a strange abstraction from himself; and heard and felt
  • his footfalls on the ground, as those of a very old, small, debile, and
  • tragically fortuned man, whom he sincerely pitied.
  • As he was thus moving forward past the National Gallery, in a medium, it
  • seemed, of greater rarity and quiet than ordinary air, there slipped
  • into his mind the recollection of a certain entry in Whitcomb Street
  • hard by, where he might perhaps lay down his tragic cargo unremarked.
  • Thither, then, he bent his steps, seeming, as he went, to float above
  • the pavement; and there, in the mouth of the entry, he found a man in a
  • sleeved waistcoat, gravely chewing a straw. He passed him by, and twice
  • patrolled the entry, scouting for the barest chance; but the man had
  • faced about and continued to observe him curiously.
  • Another hope was gone. M'Guire re-issued from the entry, still followed
  • by the wondering eyes of the man in the sleeved waistcoat. He once more
  • consulted his watch: there were but fourteen minutes left to him. At
  • that, it seemed as if a sudden, genial heat were spread about his brain;
  • for a second or two, he saw the world as red as blood; and thereafter
  • entered into a complete possession of himself, with an incredible
  • cheerfulness of spirits, prompting him to sing and chuckle as he walked.
  • And yet this mirth seemed to belong to things external; and within, like
  • a black and leaden-heavy kernel, he was conscious of the weight upon his
  • soul.
  • "I care for nobody, no, not I,
  • And nobody cares for me,"
  • he sang, and laughed at the appropriate burthen, so that the passengers
  • stared upon him on the street. And still the warmth seemed to increase
  • and to become more genial. What was life? he considered, and what he,
  • M'Guire? What even Erin, our green Erin? All seemed so incalculably
  • little that he smiled as he looked down upon it. He would have given
  • years, had he possessed them, for a glass of spirits; but time failed,
  • and he must deny himself this last indulgence.
  • At the corner of the Haymarket, he very jauntily hailed a hansom cab;
  • jumped in; bade the fellow drive him to a part of the Embankment, which
  • he named; and as soon as the vehicle was in motion, concealed the bag as
  • completely as he could under the vantage of the apron, and once more
  • drew out his watch. So he rode for five interminable minutes, his heart
  • in his mouth at every jolt, scarce able to possess his terrors, yet
  • fearing to wake the attention of the driver by too obvious a change of
  • plan, and willing, if possible, to leave him time to forget the
  • Gladstone bag.
  • At length, at the head of some stairs on the Embankment, he hailed; the
  • cab was stopped; and he alighted--with how glad a heart! He thrust his
  • hand into his pocket. All was now over; he had saved his life; nor that
  • alone, but he had engineered a striking act of dynamite; for what could
  • be more pictorial, what more effective, than the explosion of a hansom
  • cab, as it sped rapidly along the streets of London? He felt in one
  • pocket; then in another. The most crushing seizure of despair descended
  • on his soul; and, struck into abject dumbness, he stared upon the
  • driver. He had not one penny.
  • "Hillo," said the driver, "don't seem well."
  • "Lost my money," said M'Guire, in tones so faint and strange that they
  • surprised his hearing.
  • The man looked through the trap. "I dessay," said he: "you've left your
  • bag."
  • M'Guire half unconsciously fetched it out; and looking on that black
  • continent at arm's length, withered inwardly and felt his features
  • sharpen as with mortal sickness.
  • "This is not mine," said he. "Your last fare must have left it. You had
  • better take it to the station."
  • "Now look here," returned the cabman: "are you off your chump? or am I?"
  • "Well, then, I'll tell you what," exclaimed M'Guire: "you take it for
  • your fare!"
  • "Oh, I dessay," replied the driver. "Anything else? What's _in_ your
  • bag? Open it, and let me see."
  • "No, no," returned M'Guire. "O no, not that. It's a surprise; it's
  • prepared expressly: a surprise for honest cabmen."
  • "No, you don't," said the man, alighting from his perch, and coming very
  • close to the unhappy patriot. "You're either going to pay my fare, or
  • get in again and drive to the office."
  • It was at this supreme hour of his distress, that M'Guire spied the
  • stout figure of one Godall, a tobacconist of Rupert Street, drawing near
  • along the Embankment. The man was not unknown to him; he had bought of
  • his wares, and heard him quoted for the soul of liberality; and such was
  • now the nearness of his peril, that even at such a straw of hope he
  • clutched with gratitude.
  • "Thank God!" he cried. "Here comes a friend of mine. I'll borrow." And
  • he dashed to meet the tradesman. "Sir," said he, "Mr. Godall, I have
  • dealt with you--you doubtless know my face--calamities for which I
  • cannot blame myself have overwhelmed me. Oh, sir, for the love of
  • innocence, for the sake of the bonds of humanity, and as you hope for
  • mercy at the throne of grace, lend me two-and-six!"
  • "I do not recognise your face," replied Mr. Godall; "but I remember the
  • cut of your beard, which I have the misfortune to dislike. Here, sir, is
  • a sovereign; which I very willingly advance to you, on the single
  • condition that you shave your chin."
  • M'Guire grasped the coin without a word; cast it to the cabman, calling
  • out to him to keep the change; bounded down the steps, flung the bag far
  • forth into the river, and fell headlong after it. He was plucked from a
  • watery grave, it is believed, by the hands of Mr. Godall. Even as he was
  • being hoisted dripping to the shore, a dull and choked explosion shook
  • the solid masonry of the Embankment, and far out in the river a
  • momentary fountain rose and disappeared.
  • FOOTNOTE:
  • [4] The Arabian author, with that quaint particularity of touch
  • which our translation usually prætermits, here registers a somewhat
  • interesting detail. Zero pronounced the word "boom"; and the reader,
  • if but for the nonce, will possibly consent to follow him.
  • THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION (_continued_)
  • Somerset in vain strove to attach a meaning to these words. He had, in
  • the meanwhile, applied himself assiduously to the flagon; the plotter
  • began to melt in twain, and seemed to expand and hover on his seat; and
  • with a vague sense of nightmare, the young man rose unsteadily to his
  • feet, and, refusing the proffer of a third grog, insisted that the hour
  • was late and he must positively get to bed.
  • "Dear me," observed Zero, "I find you very temperate. But I will not be
  • oppressive. Suffice it that we are now fast friends; and, my dear
  • landlord, _au revoir_!"
  • So saying the plotter once more shook hands; and with the politest
  • ceremonies, and some necessary guidance, conducted the bewildered young
  • gentleman to the top of the stair.
  • Precisely how he got to bed was a point on which Somerset remained in
  • utter darkness; but the next morning when, at a blow, he started broad
  • awake, there fell upon his mind a perfect hurricane of horror and
  • wonder. That he should have suffered himself to be led into the
  • semblance of intimacy with such a man as his abominable lodger,
  • appeared, in the cold light of day, a mystery of human weakness. True,
  • he was caught in a situation that might have tested the aplomb of
  • Talleyrand. That was perhaps a palliation; but it was no excuse. For so
  • wholesale a capitulation of principle, for such a fall into criminal
  • familiarity, no excuse indeed was possible; nor any remedy, but to
  • withdraw at once from the relation.
  • As soon as he was dressed, he hurried upstairs, determined on a rupture.
  • Zero hailed him with the warmth of an old friend.
  • "Come in," he cried, "dear Mr. Somerset! Come in, sit down, and, without
  • ceremony, join me at my morning meal."
  • "Sir," said Somerset, "you must permit me first to disengage my honour.
  • Last night, I was surprised into a certain appearance of complicity; but
  • once for all, let me inform you that I regard you and your machinations
  • with unmingled horror and disgust, and I will leave no stone unturned to
  • crush your vile conspiracy."
  • "My dear fellow," replied Zero, with an air of some complacency, "I am
  • well accustomed to these human weaknesses. Disgust? I have felt it
  • myself; it speedily wears off. I think none the worse, I think the more
  • of you, for this engaging frankness. And in the meanwhile, what are you
  • to do? You find yourself, if I interpret rightly, in very much the same
  • situation as Charles the Second (possibly the least degraded of your
  • British sovereigns) when he was taken into the confidence of the thief.
  • To denounce me is out of the question; and what else can you attempt?
  • No, dear Mr. Somerset, your hands are tied; and you find yourself
  • condemned, under pain of behaving like a cad, to be that same charming
  • and intellectual companion who delighted me last night."
  • "At least," cried Somerset, "I can, and do, order you to leave this
  • house."
  • "Ah!" cried the plotter, "but there I fail to follow you. You may, if
  • you please, enact the part of Judas; but if, as I suppose, you recoil
  • from that extremity of meanness, I am, on my side, far too intelligent
  • to leave these lodgings, in which I please myself exceedingly, and from
  • which you lack the power to drive me. No, no, dear sir; here I am, and
  • here I propose to stay."
  • "I repeat," cried Somerset, beside himself with a sense of his own
  • weakness, "I repeat that I give you warning. I am master of this house;
  • and I emphatically give you warning."
  • "A week's warning?" said the imperturbable conspirator. "Very well: we
  • will talk of it a week from now. That is arranged; and, in the
  • meanwhile, I observe my breakfast growing cold. Do, dear Mr. Somerset,
  • since you find yourself condemned, for a week at least, to the society
  • of a very interesting character, display some of that open favour, some
  • of that interest in life's obscurer sides, which stamp the character of
  • the true artist. Hang me, if you will, to-morrow; but to-day show
  • yourself divested of the scruple of the burgess, and sit down pleasantly
  • to share my meal."
  • "Man!" cried Somerset, "do you understand my sentiments?"
  • "Certainly," replied Zero; "and I respect them! Would you be outdone in
  • such a contest? will you alone be partial? and in this nineteenth
  • century, cannot two gentlemen of education agree to differ on a point of
  • politics? Come, sir: all your hard words have left me smiling; judge
  • then, which of us is the philosopher!"
  • Somerset was a young man of a very tolerant disposition and by nature
  • easily amenable to sophistry. He threw up his hands with a gesture of
  • despair, and took the seat to which the conspirator invited him. The
  • meal was excellent; the host not only affable, but primed with curious
  • information. He seemed, indeed, like one who had too long endured the
  • torture of silence, to exult in the most wholesale disclosures. The
  • interest of what he had to tell was great; his character, besides,
  • developed step by step; and Somerset, as the time fled, not only outgrew
  • some of the discomfort of his false position, but began to regard the
  • conspirator with a familiarity that verged upon contempt. In any
  • circumstances, he had a singular inability to leave the society in which
  • he found himself; company, even if distasteful, held him captive like a
  • limed sparrow; and on this occasion, he suffered hour to follow hour,
  • was easily persuaded to sit down once more to table, and did not even
  • attempt to withdraw till, on the approach of evening, Zero, with many
  • apologies, dismissed his guest. His fellow-conspirators, the dynamiter
  • handsomely explained, as they were unacquainted with the sterling
  • qualities of the young man, would be alarmed at the sight of a strange
  • face.
  • As soon as he was alone, Somerset fell back upon the humour of the
  • morning. He raged at the thought of his facility; he paced the
  • dining-room, forming the sternest resolutions for the future; he wrung
  • the hand which had been dishonoured by the touch of an assassin; and
  • among all these whirling thoughts, there flashed in from time to time,
  • and ever with a chill of fear, the thought of the confounded ingredients
  • with which the house was stored. A powder magazine seemed a secure
  • smoking-room alongside of the Superfluous Mansion.
  • He sought refuge in flight, in locomotion, in the flowing bowl. As long
  • as the bars were open, he travelled from one to another, seeking light,
  • safety, and the companionship of human faces; when these resources
  • failed him, he fell back on the belated baked-potato man; and at length,
  • still pacing the streets, he was goaded to fraternise with the police.
  • Alas, with what a sense of guilt he conversed with these guardians of
  • the law; how gladly had he wept upon their ample bosoms; and how the
  • secret fluttered to his lips and was still denied an exit! Fatigue began
  • at last to triumph over remorse; and about the hour of the first
  • milkman, he returned to the door of the mansion; looked at it with a
  • horrid expectation, as though it should have burst that instant into
  • flames; drew out his key, and when his foot already rested on the steps,
  • once more lost heart and fled for repose to the grisly shelter of a
  • coffee-shop.
  • It was on the stroke of noon when he awoke. Dismally searching in his
  • pockets, he found himself reduced to half-a-crown; and, when he had paid
  • the price of his distasteful couch, saw himself obliged to return to the
  • Superfluous Mansion. He sneaked into the hall and stole on tiptoe to the
  • cupboard where he kept his money. Yet half a minute, he told himself,
  • and he would be free for days from his obseding lodger, and might decide
  • at leisure on the course he should pursue. But fate had otherwise
  • designed: there came a tap at the door and Zero entered.
  • "Have I caught you?" he cried, with innocent gaiety. "Dear fellow, I was
  • growing quite impatient." And on the speaker's somewhat stolid face
  • there came a glow of genuine affection. "I am so long unused to have a
  • friend," he continued, "that I begin to be afraid I may prove jealous."
  • And he wrung the hand of his landlord.
  • Somerset was, of all men, least fit to deal with such a greeting. To
  • reject these kind advances was beyond his strength. That he could not
  • return cordiality for cordiality was already almost more than he could
  • carry. That inequality between kind sentiments which, to generous
  • characters, will always seem to be a sort of guilt, oppressed him to the
  • ground; and he stammered vague and lying words.
  • "That is all right," cried Zero--"that is as it should be--say no more!
  • I had a vague alarm; I feared you had deserted me; but I now own that
  • fear to have been unworthy, and apologise. To doubt of your forgiveness
  • were to repeat my sin. Come, then; dinner waits; join me again and tell
  • me your adventures of the night."
  • Kindness still sealed the lips of Somerset; and he suffered himself once
  • more to be set down to table with his innocent and criminal
  • acquaintance. Once more the plotter plunged up to the neck in damaging
  • disclosures: now it would be the name and biography of an individual,
  • now the address of some important centre, that rose, as if by accident,
  • upon his lips; and each word was like another turn of the thumbscrew to
  • his unhappy guest. Finally, the course of Zero's bland monologue led him
  • to the young lady of two days ago; that young lady, who had flashed on
  • Somerset for so brief a while but with so conquering a charm; and whose
  • engaging grace, communicative eyes, and admirable conduct of the
  • sweeping skirt, remained imprinted on his memory.
  • "You saw her?" said Zero. "Beautiful, is she not? She, too, is one of
  • ours: a true enthusiast: nervous, perhaps, in presence of the chemicals;
  • but in matters of intrigue the very soul of skill and daring. Lake,
  • Fonblanque, de Marly, Valdevia, such are some of the names that she
  • employs; her true name--but there, perhaps, I go too far. Suffice it,
  • that it is to her I owe my present lodging, and, dear Somerset, the
  • pleasure of your acquaintance. It appears she knew the house. You see,
  • dear fellow, I make no concealment: all that you can care to hear, I
  • tell you openly."
  • "For God's sake," cried the wretched Somerset, "hold your tongue! You
  • cannot imagine how you torture me!"
  • A shade of serious discomposure crossed the open countenance of Zero.
  • "There are times," he said, "when I begin to fancy that you do not like
  • me. Why, why, dear Somerset, this lack of cordiality? I am depressed;
  • the touchstone of my life draws near; and if I fail"--he gloomily
  • nodded--"from all the height of my ambitious schemes, I fall, dear boy,
  • into contempt. These are grave thoughts, and you may judge my need of
  • your delightful company. Innocent prattler, you relieve the weight of my
  • concerns. And yet ... and yet...." The speaker pushed away his plate,
  • and rose from table. "Follow me," said he, "follow me. My mood is on; I
  • must have air, I must behold the plain of battle."
  • So saying, he led the way hurriedly to the top flat of the mansion, and
  • thence, by ladder and trap, to a certain leaded platform, sheltered at
  • one end by a great stalk of chimneys and occupying the actual summit of
  • the roof. On both sides, it bordered, without parapet or rail, on the
  • incline of slates; and, northward above all, commanded an extensive view
  • of housetops, and, rising through the smoke, the distant spires of
  • churches.
  • "Here," cried Zero, "you behold this field of city, rich, crowded,
  • laughing with the spoil of continents; but soon, how soon, to be laid
  • low! Some day, some night, from this coign of vantage, you shall perhaps
  • be startled by the detonation of the judgment gun--not sharp and empty
  • like the crack of cannon, but deep-mouthed and unctuously solemn.
  • Instantly thereafter, you shall behold the flames break forth. Ay," he
  • cried, stretching forth his hand, "ay, that will be a day of
  • retribution. Then shall the pallid constable flee side by side with the
  • detected thief. Blaze!" he cried, "blaze, derided city! Fall, flatulent
  • monarchy, fall like Dagon!"
  • With these words his foot slipped upon the lead; and but for Somerset's
  • quickness, he had been instantly precipitated into space. Pale as a
  • sheet, and limp as a pocket-handkerchief, he was dragged from the edge
  • of downfall by one arm; helped, or rather carried, down the ladder; and
  • deposited in safety on the attic landing. Here he began to come to
  • himself, wiped his brow, and at length, seizing Somerset's hand in both
  • of his, began to utter his acknowledgments.
  • "This seals it," said he. "Ours is a life and death connection. You have
  • plucked me from the jaws of death; and if I were before attracted by
  • your character, judge now of the ardour of my gratitude and love! But I
  • perceive I am still greatly shaken. Lend me, I beseech you, lend me your
  • arm as far as my apartment."
  • A dram of spirits restored the plotter to something of his customary
  • self-possession; and he was standing, glass in hand and genially
  • convalescent, when his eye was attracted by the dejection of the
  • unfortunate young man.
  • "Good Heavens, dear Somerset," he cried, "what ails you? Let me offer
  • you a touch of spirits."
  • But Somerset had fallen below the reach of this material comfort.
  • "Let me be," he said. "I am lost; you have caught me in the toils. Up to
  • this moment, I have lived all my life in the most reckless manner, and
  • done exactly what I pleased, with the most perfect innocence. And
  • now--what am I? Are you so blind and wooden that you do not see the
  • loathing you inspire me with? Is it possible you can suppose me willing
  • to continue to exist upon such terms? To think," he cried, "that a young
  • man, guilty of no fault on earth but amiability, should find himself
  • involved in such a damned imbroglio!" And, placing his knuckles in his
  • eyes, Somerset rolled upon the sofa.
  • "My God," said Zero, "is this possible? And I so filled with tenderness
  • and interest! Can it be, dear Somerset, that you are under the empire of
  • these outworn scruples? or that you judge a patriot by the morality of
  • the religious tract? I thought you were a good agnostic."
  • "Mr. Jones," said Somerset, "it is in vain to argue. I boast myself a
  • total disbeliever not only in revealed religion, but in the data,
  • method, and conclusions of the whole of ethics. Well! what matters it?
  • what signifies a form of words? I regard you as a reptile, whom I would
  • rejoice, whom I long, to stamp under my heel. You would blow up others?
  • Well then, understand: I want, with every circumstance of infamy and
  • agony, to blow up you!"
  • "Somerset, Somerset!" said Zero, turning very pale, "this is wrong; this
  • is very wrong. You pain, you wound me, Somerset."
  • "Give me a match!" cried Somerset wildly. "Let me set fire to this
  • incomparable monster! Let me perish with him in his fall!"
  • "For God's sake," cried Zero, clutching hold of the young man, "for
  • God's sake command yourself! We stand upon the brink; death yawns around
  • us; a man--a stranger in this foreign land--one whom you have called
  • your friend----"
  • "Silence!" cried Somerset, "you are no friend, no friend of mine. I look
  • on you with loathing, like a toad: my flesh creeps with physical
  • repulsion; my soul revolts against the sight of you."
  • Zero burst into tears. "Alas!" he sobbed, "this snaps the last link that
  • bound me to humanity. My friend disowns--he insults me. I am indeed
  • accurst."
  • Somerset stood for an instant staggered by this sudden change of front.
  • The next moment, with a despairing gesture, he fled from the room and
  • from the house. The first dash of his escape carried him hard upon half
  • way to the next police-office; but presently began to droop; and before
  • he reached the house of lawful intervention, he fell once more among
  • doubtful counsels. Was he an agnostic? had he a right to act? Away with
  • such nonsense, and let Zero perish! ran his thoughts. And then again:
  • had he not promised, had he not shaken hands and broken bread? and that
  • with open eyes? and if so, how could he take action, and not forfeit
  • honour? But honour? what was honour? A figment, which, in the hot
  • pursuit of crime, he ought to dash aside. Ay, but crime? A figment, too,
  • which his enfranchised intellect discarded. All day, he wandered in the
  • parks, a prey to whirling thoughts; all night, patrolled the city; and
  • at the peep of day he sat down by the wayside in the neighbourhood of
  • Peckham and bitterly wept. His gods had fallen. He who had chosen the
  • broad, daylit, unencumbered paths of universal scepticism, found himself
  • still the bondslave of honour. He who had accepted life from a point of
  • view as lofty as the predatory eagle's, though with no design to prey;
  • he who had clearly recognised the common moral basis of war, of
  • commercial competition, and of crime; he who was prepared to help the
  • escaping murderer or to embrace the impenitent thief, found, to the
  • overthrow of all his logic, that he objected to the use of dynamite. The
  • dawn crept among the sleeping villas and over the smokeless fields of
  • city; and still the unfortunate sceptic sobbed over his fall from
  • consistency.
  • At length he rose and took the rising sun to witness. "There is no
  • question as to fact," he cried; "right and wrong are but figments and
  • the shadow of a word; but for all that, there are certain things that I
  • cannot do, and there are certain others that I will not stand."
  • Thereupon he decided to return, to make one last effort of persuasion,
  • and, if he could not prevail on Zero to desist from his infernal trade,
  • throw delicacy to the winds, give the plotter an hour's start, and
  • denounce him to the police. Fast as he went, being winged by this
  • resolution, it was already well on in the morning when he came in sight
  • of the Superfluous Mansion. Tripping down the steps, was the young lady
  • of the various aliases; and he was surprised to see upon her countenance
  • the marks of anger and concern.
  • "Madam," he began, yielding to impulse and with no clear knowledge of
  • what he was to add.
  • But at the sound of his voice she seemed to experience a shock of fear
  • or horror; started back; lowered her veil with a sudden movement; and
  • fled, without turning, from the square.
  • Here, then, we step aside a moment from following the fortunes of
  • Somerset, and proceed to relate the strange and romantic episode of THE
  • BROWN BOX.
  • DESBOROUGH'S ADVENTURE
  • THE BROWN BOX
  • Mr. Harry Desborough lodged in the fine and grave old quarter of
  • Bloomsbury, roared about on every side by the high tides of London, but
  • itself rejoicing in romantic silences and city peace. It was in Queen
  • Square that he had pitched his tent, next door to the Children's
  • Hospital, on your left hand as you go north: Queen Square, sacred to
  • humane and liberal arts, whence homes were made beautiful, where the
  • poor were taught, where the sparrows were plentiful and loud, and where
  • groups of patient little ones would hover all day long before the
  • hospital, if by chance they might kiss their hand or speak a word to
  • their sick brother at the window. Desborough's room was on the first
  • floor and fronted to the square; but he enjoyed besides, a right by
  • which he often profited, to sit and smoke upon a terrace at the back,
  • which looked down upon a fine forest of back gardens, and was in turn
  • commanded by the windows of an empty room.
  • On the afternoon of a warm day, Desborough sauntered forth upon this
  • terrace, somewhat out of hope and heart, for he had been now some weeks
  • on the vain quest of situations, and prepared for melancholy and
  • tobacco. Here, at least, he told himself that he would be alone; for,
  • like most youths who are neither rich, nor witty, nor successful, he
  • rather shunned than courted the society of other men. Even as he
  • expressed the thought, his eye alighted on the window of the room that
  • looked upon the terrace; and, to his surprise and annoyance, he beheld
  • it curtained with a silken hanging. It was like his luck, he thought;
  • his privacy was gone, he could no longer brood and sigh unwatched, he
  • could no longer suffer his discouragement to find a vent in words or
  • soothe himself with sentimental whistling; and in the irritation of the
  • moment, he struck his pipe upon the rail with unnecessary force. It was
  • an old, sweet, seasoned briar-root, glossy and dark with long
  • employment, and justly dear to his fancy. What, then, was his chagrin,
  • when the head snapped from the stem, leaped airily in space, and fell
  • and disappeared among the lilacs of the garden?
  • He threw himself savagely into the garden chair, pulled out the
  • story-paper which he had brought with him to read, tore off a fragment
  • of the last sheet, which contains only the answers to correspondents,
  • and set himself to roll a cigarette. He was no master of the art; again
  • and again, the paper broke between his fingers and the tobacco showered
  • upon the ground; and he was already on the point of angry resignation,
  • when the window swung slowly inward, the silken curtain was thrust
  • aside, and a lady somewhat strangely attired stepped forth upon the
  • terrace.
  • "Señorito," said she, and there was a rich thrill in her voice, like an
  • organ note, "Señorito, you are in difficulties. Suffer me to come to
  • your assistance."
  • With the words, she took the paper and tobacco from his unresisting
  • hands; and with a facility that, in Desborough's eyes, seemed magical,
  • rolled and presented him a cigarette. He took it, still seated, still
  • without a word; staring with all his eyes upon that apparition. Her face
  • was warm and rich in colour; in shape, it was that piquant triangle, so
  • innocently sly, so saucily attractive, so rare in our more northern
  • climates; her eyes were large, starry, and visited by changing lights;
  • her hair was partly covered by a lace mantilla, through which her arms,
  • bare to the shoulder, gleamed white; her figure, full and soft in all
  • the womanly contours, was yet alive and active, light with excess of
  • life, and slender by grace of some divine proportion.
  • "You do not like my cigarrito, Señor?" she asked. "Yet it is better made
  • than yours." At that she laughed, and her laughter trilled in his ear
  • like music; but the next moment her face fell. "I see," she cried. "It
  • is my manner that repels you. I am too constrained, too cold. I am not,"
  • she added, with a more engaging air, "I am not the simple English maiden
  • I appear."
  • "Oh!" murmured Harry, filled with inexpressible thoughts.
  • "In my own dear land," she pursued, "things are differently ordered.
  • There, I must own, a girl is bound by many and rigorous restrictions;
  • little is permitted her; she learns to be distant, she learns to appear
  • forbidding. But here, in free England--oh, glorious liberty!" she cried,
  • and threw up her arms with a gesture of inimitable grace--"here there
  • are no fetters; here the woman may dare to be herself entirely, and the
  • men, the chivalrous men--is it not written on the very shield of your
  • nation, _honi soit_? Ah, it is hard for me to learn, hard for me to dare
  • to be myself. You must not judge me yet awhile; I shall end by
  • conquering this stiffness, I shall end by growing English. Do I speak
  • the language well?"
  • "Perfectly--oh, perfectly!" said Harry, with a fervency of conviction
  • worthy of a graver subject.
  • "Ah, then," she said, "I shall soon learn; English blood ran in my
  • father's veins; and I have had the advantage of some training in your
  • expressive tongue. If I speak already without accent, with my thorough
  • English appearance, there is nothing left to change except my manners."
  • "Oh no," said Desborough. "Oh, pray not! I--madam----"
  • "I am," interrupted the lady, "the Señorita Teresa Valdevia. The evening
  • air grows chill. Adios, Señorito." And before Harry could stammer out a
  • word, she had disappeared into her room.
  • He stood transfixed, the cigarette still unlighted in his hand. His
  • thoughts had soared above tobacco, and still recalled and beautified the
  • image of his new acquaintance. Her voice re-echoed in his memory; her
  • eyes, of which he could not tell the colour, haunted his soul. The
  • clouds had risen at her coming, and he beheld a new-created world. What
  • she was, he could not fancy, but he adored her. Her age, he durst not
  • estimate; fearing to find her older than himself, and thinking sacrilege
  • to couple that fair favour with the thought of mortal changes. As for
  • her character, beauty, to the young, is always good. So the poor lad
  • lingered late upon the terrace, stealing timid glances at the curtained
  • window, sighing to the gold laburnums, rapt into the country of romance;
  • and when at length he entered and sat down to dine, on cold boiled
  • mutton and a pint of ale, he feasted on the food of gods.
  • Next day when he returned to the terrace, the window was a little ajar
  • and he enjoyed a view of the lady's shoulder, as she sat patiently
  • sewing and all unconscious of his presence. On the next, he had scarce
  • appeared when the window opened, and the Señorita tripped forth into the
  • sunlight, in a morning disorder, delicately neat, and yet somehow
  • foreign, tropical, and strange. In one hand she held a packet.
  • "Will you try," she said, "some of my father's tobacco--from dear Cuba?
  • There, as I suppose you know, all smoke, ladies as well as gentlemen. So
  • you need not fear to annoy me. The fragrance will remind me of home. My
  • home, Señor, was by the sea." And as she uttered these few words,
  • Desborough, for the first time in his life, realised the poetry of the
  • great deep. "Awake or asleep, I dream of it; dear home, dear Cuba!"
  • "But some day," said Desborough, with an inward pang, "some day you will
  • return!"
  • "Never!" she cried; "ah, never, in Heaven's name!"
  • "Are you then resident for life in England?" he inquired, with a strange
  • lightening of spirit.
  • "You ask too much, for you ask more than I know," she answered sadly;
  • and then, resuming her gaiety of manner: "But you have not tried my
  • Cuban tobacco," she said.
  • "Señorita," said he, shyly abashed by some shadow of coquetry in her
  • manner, "whatever comes to me--you--I mean," he concluded, deeply
  • flushing, "that I have no doubt the tobacco is delightful."
  • "Ah, Señor," she said, with almost mournful gravity, "you seemed so
  • simple and good, and already you are trying to pay compliments--and
  • besides," she added, brightening, with a quick upward glance, into a
  • smile, "you do it so badly! English gentlemen, I used to hear, could be
  • fast friends, respectful, honest friends; could be companions,
  • comforters, if the need arose, or champions, and yet never encroach. Do
  • not seek to please me by copying the graces of my countrymen. Be
  • yourself: the frank, kindly, honest English gentleman that I have heard
  • of since my childhood and still longed to meet."
  • Harry, much bewildered, and far from clear as to the manners of the
  • Cuban gentlemen, strenuously disclaimed the thought of plagiarism.
  • "Your national seriousness of bearing best becomes you, Señor," said the
  • lady. "See!" marking a line with her dainty, slippered foot, "thus far
  • it shall be common ground; there, at my window-sill, begins the
  • scientific frontier. If you choose, you may drive me to my forts; but
  • if, on the other hand, we are to be real English friends, I may join you
  • here when I am not too sad; or, when I am yet more graciously inclined,
  • you may draw your chair beside the window and teach me English customs,
  • while I work. You will find me an apt scholar, for my heart is in the
  • task." She laid her hand lightly upon Harry's arm, and looked into his
  • eyes. "Do you know," said she, "I am emboldened to believe that I have
  • already caught something of your English aplomb? Do you not perceive a
  • change, Señor? Slight, perhaps, but still a change? Is my deportment not
  • more open, more free, more like that of the dear 'British Miss,' than
  • when you saw me first?" She gave a radiant smile; withdrew her hand from
  • Harry's arm; and before the young man could formulate in words the
  • eloquent emotions that ran riot through his brain--with an "Adios,
  • Señor: good-night, my English friend," she vanished from his sight
  • behind the curtain.
  • The next day, Harry consumed an ounce of tobacco in vain upon the
  • neutral terrace; neither sight nor sound rewarded him, and the
  • dinner-hour summoned him at length from the scene of disappointment. On
  • the next, it rained; but nothing, neither business nor weather, neither
  • prospective poverty nor present hardship, could now divert the young man
  • from the service of his lady; and wrapt in a long ulster, with the
  • collar raised, he took his stand against the balustrade, awaiting
  • fortune, the picture of damp and discomfort to the eye, but glowing
  • inwardly with tender and delightful ardours. Presently the window
  • opened; and the fair Cuban, with a smile imperfectly dissembled,
  • appeared upon the sill.
  • "Come here," she said, "here, beside my window. The small verandah gives
  • a belt of shelter." And she graciously handed him a folding-chair.
  • As he sat down, visibly aglow with shyness and delight, a certain
  • bulkiness in his pocket reminded him that he was not come empty-handed.
  • "I have taken the liberty," said he, "of bringing you a little book. I
  • thought of you, when I observed it on the stall, because I saw it was in
  • Spanish. The man assured me it was by one of the best authors, and quite
  • proper." As he spoke, he placed the little volume in her hand. Her eyes
  • fell as she turned the pages, and a flush rose and died again upon her
  • cheeks, as deep as it was fleeting. "You are angry," he cried in agony.
  • "I have presumed."
  • "No, Señor, it is not that," returned the lady. "I"--and a flood of
  • colour once more mounted to her brow--"I am confused and ashamed because
  • I have deceived you. Spanish," she began, and paused--"Spanish is of
  • course my native tongue," she resumed, as though suddenly taking
  • courage; "and this should certainly put the highest value on your
  • thoughtful present; but alas, sir, of what use is it to me? And how
  • shall I confess to you the truth--the humiliating truth--that I cannot
  • read?"
  • As Harry's eyes met hers in undisguised amazement, the fair Cuban seemed
  • to shrink before his gaze. "Read?" repeated Harry. "You!"
  • She pushed the window still more widely open with a large and noble
  • gesture. "Enter, Señor," said she. "The time has come to which I have
  • long looked forward, not without alarm; when I must either fear to lose
  • your friendship, or tell you without disguise the story of my life."
  • It was with a sentiment bordering on devotion that Harry passed the
  • window. A semi-barbarous delight in form and colour had presided over
  • the studied disorder of the room in which he found himself. It was
  • filled with dainty stuffs, furs and rugs and scarves of brilliant hues,
  • and set with elegant and curious trifles--fans on the mantelshelf, an
  • antique lamp upon a bracket, and on the table a silver-mounted bowl of
  • cocoa-nut about half full of unset jewels. The fair Cuban, herself a gem
  • of colour and the fit masterpiece for that rich frame, motioned Harry to
  • a seat, and, sinking herself into another, thus began her history.
  • STORY OF THE FAIR CUBAN
  • I am not what I seem. My father drew his descent, on the one hand, from
  • grandees of Spain, and on the other, through the maternal line, from the
  • patriot Bruce. My mother, too, was the descendant of a line of kings;
  • but, alas! these kings were African. She was fair as the day: fairer
  • than I, for I inherited a darker stain of blood from the veins of my
  • European father; her mind was noble, her manners queenly and
  • accomplished; and seeing her more than the equal of her neighbours and
  • surrounded by the most considerate affection and respect, I grew up to
  • adore her, and when the time came, received her last sigh upon my lips,
  • still ignorant that she was a slave and alas! my father's mistress. Her
  • death, which befell me in my sixteenth year, was the first sorrow I had
  • known: it left our home bereaved of its attractions, cast a shade of
  • melancholy on my youth, and wrought in my father a tragic and durable
  • change. Months went by: with the elasticity of my years, I regained some
  • of the simple mirth that had before distinguished me; the plantation
  • smiled with fresh crops; the negroes on the estate had already forgotten
  • my mother and transferred their simple obedience to myself; but still
  • the cloud only darkened on the brows of Señor Valdevia. His absences
  • from home had been frequent even in the old days, for he did business in
  • precious gems in the city of Havana; they now became almost continuous;
  • and when he returned, it was but for the night and with the manner of a
  • man crushed down by adverse fortune.
  • The place where I was born and passed my days was an isle set in the
  • Caribbean Sea, some half-hour's rowing from the coasts of Cuba. It was
  • steep, rugged, and, except for my father's family and plantation,
  • uninhabited and left to nature. The house, a low building surrounded by
  • spacious verandahs, stood upon a rise of ground and looked across the
  • sea to Cuba. The breezes blew about it gratefully, fanned us as we lay
  • swinging in our silken hammocks, and tossed the boughs and flowers of
  • the magnolia. Behind and to the left, the quarter of the negroes and the
  • waving fields of the plantation covered an eighth part of the surface of
  • the isle. On the right and closely bordering on the garden, lay a vast
  • and deadly swamp, densely covered with wood, breathing fever, dotted
  • with profound sloughs, and inhabited by poisonous oysters, man-eating
  • crabs, snakes, alligators, and sickly fishes. Into the recesses of that
  • jungle none could penetrate but those of African descent; an invisible,
  • unconquerable foe lay there in wait for the European; and the air was
  • death.
  • One morning (from which I must date the beginning of my ruinous
  • misfortune) I left my room a little after day, for in that warm climate
  • all are early risers, and found not a servant to attend upon my wants. I
  • made the circuit of the house, still calling; and my surprise had almost
  • changed into alarm, when, coming at last into a large verandahed court,
  • I found it thronged with negroes. Even then, even when I was amongst
  • them, not one turned or paid the least regard to my arrival. They had
  • eyes and ears for but one person: a woman, richly and tastefully
  • attired; of elegant carriage, and a musical speech; not so much old in
  • years, as worn and marred by self-indulgence: her face, which was still
  • attractive, stamped with the most cruel passions, her eye burning with
  • the greed of evil. It was not from her appearance, I believe, but from
  • some emanation of her soul, that I recoiled in a kind of fainting
  • terror; as we hear of plants that blight and snakes that fascinate, the
  • woman shocked and daunted me. But I was of a brave nature; trod the
  • weakness down; and forcing my way through the slaves, who fell back
  • before me in embarrassment, as though in the presence of rival
  • mistresses, I asked, in imperious tones: "Who is this person?"
  • A slave girl, to whom I had been kind, whispered in my ear to have a
  • care, for that was Madam Mendizabal; but the name was new to me.
  • In the meanwhile the woman, applying a pair of glasses to her eyes,
  • studied me with insolent particularity from head to foot.
  • "Young woman," said she at last, "I have had a great experience in
  • refractory servants, and take a pride in breaking them. You really tempt
  • me; and if I had not other affairs, and these of more importance, on my
  • hand, I should certainly buy you at your father's sale."
  • "Madam----" I began, but my voice failed me.
  • "Is it possible that you do not know your position?" she returned, with
  • a hateful laugh. "How comical! Positively, I must buy her.
  • Accomplishments, I suppose?" she added, turning to the servants.
  • Several assured her that the young mistress had been brought up like
  • any lady, for so it seemed in their inexperience.
  • "She would do very well for my place of business in Havana," said Señora
  • Mendizabal, once more studying me through her glasses; "and I should
  • take a pleasure," she pursued, more directly addressing myself, "in
  • bringing you acquainted with a whip." And she smiled at me with a
  • savoury lust of cruelty upon her face.
  • At this, I found expression. Calling by name upon the servants, I bade
  • them turn this woman from the house, fetch her to the boat, and set her
  • back upon the mainland. But with one voice they protested that they
  • durst not obey, coming close about me, pleading and beseeching me to be
  • more wise; and when I insisted, rising higher in passion and speaking of
  • this foul intruder in the terms she had deserved, they fell back from me
  • as from one who had blasphemed. A superstitious reverence plainly
  • encircled the stranger; I could read it in their changed demeanour, and
  • in the paleness that prevailed upon the natural colour of their faces;
  • and their fear perhaps reacted on myself. I looked again at Madam
  • Mendizabal. She stood perfectly composed, watching my face through her
  • glasses with a smile of scorn; and at the sight of her assured
  • superiority to all my threats, a cry broke from my lips, a cry of rage,
  • fear, and despair, and I fled from the verandah and the house.
  • I ran I knew not where, but it was towards the beach. As I went, my head
  • whirled; so strange, so sudden, were these events and insults. Who was
  • she? what, in Heaven's name, the power she wielded over my obedient
  • negroes? Why had she addressed me as a slave? why spoken of my father's
  • sale? To all these tumultuary questions I could find no answer; and, in
  • the turmoil of my mind, nothing was plain except the hateful, leering
  • image of the woman.
  • I was still running, mad with fear and anger, when I saw my father
  • coming to meet me from the landing-place; and, with a cry that I
  • thought would have killed me, leaped into his arms and broke into a
  • passion of sobs and tears upon his bosom. He made me sit down below a
  • tall palmetto that grew not far off; comforted me, but with some
  • abstraction in his voice; and, as soon as I regained the least command
  • upon my feelings, asked me, not without harshness, what this grief
  • betokened. I was surprised by his tone into a still greater measure of
  • composure; and in firm tones, though still interrupted by sobs, I told
  • him there was a stranger in the island, at which I thought he started
  • and turned pale; that the servants would not obey me; that the
  • stranger's name was Madam Mendizabal, and, at that, he seemed to me both
  • troubled and relieved; that she had insulted me, treated me as a slave
  • (and here my father's brow began to darken), threatened to buy me at a
  • sale, and questioned my own servants before my face; and that, at last,
  • finding myself quite helpless and exposed to these intolerable
  • liberties, I had fled from the house in terror, indignation, and
  • amazement.
  • "Teresa," said my father, with singular gravity of voice, "I must make
  • to-day a call upon your courage; much must be told you, there is much
  • that you must do to help me; and my daughter must prove herself a woman
  • by her spirit. As for this Mendizabal, what shall I say? or how am I to
  • tell you what she is? Twenty years ago, she was the loveliest of slaves;
  • to-day she is what you see her--prematurely old, disgraced by the
  • practice of every vice and every nefarious industry, but free, rich,
  • married, they say, to some reputable man, whom may Heaven assist! and
  • exercising among her ancient mates, the slaves of Cuba, an influence as
  • unbounded as its reason is mysterious. Horrible rites, it is supposed,
  • cement her empire: the rites of Hoodoo. Be that as it may, I would have
  • you dismiss the thought of this incomparable witch; it is not from her
  • that danger threatens us; and into her hands, I make bold to promise,
  • you shall never fall."
  • "Father!" I cried. "Fall? Was there any truth, then, in her words? Am
  • I--O father, tell me plain; I can bear anything but this suspense."
  • "I will tell you," he replied, "with merciful bluntness. Your mother was
  • a slave; it was my design, so soon as I had saved a competence, to sail
  • to the free land of Britain, where the law would suffer me to marry her:
  • a design too long procrastinated; for death, at the last moment,
  • intervened. You will now understand the heaviness with which your
  • mother's memory hangs about my neck."
  • I cried out aloud, in pity for my parents; and, in seeking to console
  • the survivor, I forgot myself.
  • "It matters not," resumed my father. "What I have left undone can never
  • be repaired, and I must bear the penalty of my remorse. But, Teresa,
  • with so cutting a reminder of the evils of delay, I set myself at once
  • to do what was still possible: to liberate yourself."
  • I began to break forth in thanks, but he checked me with a sombre
  • roughness.
  • "Your mother's illness," he resumed, "had engaged too great a portion of
  • my time; my business in the city had lain too long at the mercy of
  • ignorant underlings; my head, my taste, my unequalled knowledge of the
  • more precious stones, that art by which I can distinguish, even on the
  • darkest night, a sapphire from a ruby and tell at a glance in what
  • quarter of the earth a gem was disinterred--all these had been too long
  • absent from the conduct of affairs. Teresa, I was insolvent."
  • "What matters that?" I cried. "What matters poverty, if we be left
  • together with our love and sacred memories?"
  • "You do not comprehend," he said gloomily. "Slave as you are,
  • young--alas! scarce more than child!--accomplished, beautiful with the
  • most touching beauty, innocent as an angel--all these qualities that
  • should disarm the very wolves and crocodiles, are, in the eyes of those
  • to whom I stand indebted, commodities to buy and sell. You are a
  • chattel; a marketable thing; and worth--heavens, that I should say such
  • words!--worth money. Do you begin to see? If I were to give you freedom,
  • I should defraud my creditors; the manumission would be certainly
  • annulled; you would be still a slave, and I a criminal."
  • I caught his hand in mine, kissed it, and moaned in pity for myself, in
  • sympathy for my father.
  • "How I have toiled," he continued, "how I have dared and striven to
  • repair my losses, Heaven has beheld and will remember. Its blessing was
  • denied to my endeavours, or, as I please myself by thinking, but delayed
  • to descend upon my daughter's head. At length, all hope was at an end; I
  • was ruined beyond retrieve; a heavy debt fell due upon the morrow, which
  • I could not meet; I should be declared a bankrupt, and my goods, my
  • lands, my jewels that I so much loved, my slaves whom I have spoiled and
  • rendered happy, and oh! tenfold worse, you, my beloved daughter, would
  • be sold and pass into the hands of ignorant and greedy traffickers. Too
  • long, I saw, had I accepted and profited by this great crime of slavery;
  • but was my daughter, my innocent, unsullied daughter, was _she_ to pay
  • the price? I cried out--no!--I took Heaven to witness my temptation; I
  • caught up this bag and fled. Close upon my track are the pursuers;
  • perhaps to-night, perhaps to-morrow, they will land upon this isle,
  • sacred to the memory of the dear soul that bore you, to consign your
  • father to an ignominious prison, and yourself to slavery and dishonour.
  • We have not many hours before us. Off the north coast of our isle, by
  • strange good fortune, an English yacht has for some days been hovering.
  • It belongs to Sir George Greville, whom I slightly know, to whom ere now
  • I have rendered unusual services, and who will not refuse to help in our
  • escape. Or if he did, if his gratitude were in default, I have the power
  • to force him. For what does it mean my child--what means this
  • Englishman, who hangs for years upon the shores of Cuba, and returns
  • from every trip with new and valuable gems?"
  • "He may have found a mine," I hazarded.
  • "So he declares," returned my father; "but the strange gift I have
  • received from nature easily transpierced the fable. He brought me
  • diamonds only, which I bought, at first, in innocence; at a second
  • glance, I started; for of these stones, my child, some had first seen
  • the day in Africa, some in Brazil; while others, from their peculiar
  • water and rude workmanship, I divined to be the spoil of ancient
  • temples. Thus put upon the scent, I made inquiries: Oh, he is cunning,
  • but I was cunninger than he. He visited, I found, the shop of every
  • jeweller in town; to one he came with rubies, to one with emeralds, to
  • one with precious beryl; to all, with this same story of the mine. But
  • in what mine, what rich epitome of the earth's surface, were there
  • conjoined the rubies of Ispahan, the pearls of Coromandel, and the
  • diamonds of Golconda? No, child, that man, for all his yacht and title,
  • that man must fear and must obey me. To-night, then, as soon as it is
  • dark, we must take our way through the swamp by the path which I shall
  • presently show you; thence, across the highlands of the isle, a track is
  • blazed, which shall conduct us to the haven on the north; and close by
  • the yacht is riding. Should my pursuers come before the hour at which I
  • look to see them, they will still arrive too late; a trusty man attends
  • on the mainland; as soon as they appear, we shall behold, if it be dark,
  • the redness of a fire--if it be day, a pillar of smoke, on the opposing
  • headland; and thus warned, we shall have time to put the swamp between
  • ourselves and danger. Meantime, I would conceal this bag; I would,
  • before all things, be seen to arrive at the house with empty hands; a
  • babbling slave might else undo us. For see!" he added; and holding up
  • the bag, which he had already shown me, he poured into my lap a shower
  • of unmounted jewels, brighter than flowers, of every size and colour,
  • and catching, as they fell, upon a million dainty facets, the ardour of
  • the sun.
  • I could not restrain a cry of admiration.
  • "Even in your ignorant eyes," pursued my father, "they command respect.
  • Yet what are they but pebbles, passive to the tool, cold as death?
  • Ingrate!" he cried. "Each one of these--miracles of nature's patience,
  • conceived out of the dust in centuries of microscopical activity, each
  • one is, for you and me, a year of life, liberty, and mutual affection.
  • How, then, should I cherish them! and why do I delay to place them
  • beyond reach! Teresa, follow me."
  • He rose to his feet, and led me to the borders of the great jungle,
  • where they overhung, in a wall of poisonous and dusky foliage, the
  • declivity of the hill on which my father's house stood planted. For some
  • while he skirted, with attentive eyes, the margin of the thicket. Then,
  • seeming to recognise some mark, for his countenance became immediately
  • lightened of a load of thought, he paused and addressed me. "Here," said
  • he, "is the entrance of the secret path that I have mentioned, and here
  • you shall await me. I but pass some hundreds of yards into the swamp to
  • bury my poor treasure; as soon as that is safe I will return." It was in
  • vain that I sought to dissuade him, urging the dangers of the place; in
  • vain that I begged to be allowed to follow, pleading the black blood
  • that I now knew to circulate in my veins: to all my appeals he turned a
  • deaf ear, and, bending back a portion of the screen of bushes,
  • disappeared into the pestilential silence of the swamp.
  • At the end of a full hour, the bushes were once more thrust aside; and
  • my father stepped from out the thicket, and paused, and almost staggered
  • in the first shock of the blinding sunlight. His face was of a singular
  • dusky red; and yet, for all the heat of the tropical noon, he did not
  • seem to sweat.
  • "You are tired," I cried, springing to meet him. "You are ill."
  • "I am tired," he replied; "the air in that jungle stifles one; my eyes,
  • besides, have grown accustomed to its gloom, and the strong sunshine
  • pierces them like knives. A moment, Teresa, give me but a moment. All
  • shall yet be well. I have buried the hoard under a cypress, immediately
  • beyond the bayou, on the left-hand margin of the path; beautiful, bright
  • things, they now lie whelmed in slime; you shall find them there, if
  • needful. But come, let us to the house; it is time to eat against our
  • journey of the night; to eat and then to sleep, my poor Teresa: then to
  • sleep." And he looked upon me out of bloodshot eyes, shaking his head as
  • if in pity.
  • We went hurriedly, for he kept murmuring that he had been gone too long
  • and that the servants might suspect; passed through the airy stretch of
  • the verandah; and came at length into the grateful twilight of the
  • shuttered house. The meal was spread; the house servants, already
  • informed by the boatmen of the master's return, were all back at their
  • posts, and terrified, as I could see, to face me. My father still
  • murmuring of haste with weary and feverish pertinacity, I hurried at
  • once to take my place at table; but I had no sooner left his arm than he
  • paused and thrust forth both his hands with a strange gesture of
  • groping. "How is this?" he cried, in a sharp, unhuman voice. "Am I
  • blind?" I ran to him and tried to lead him to the table; but he resisted
  • and stood stiffly where he was, opening and shutting his jaws, as if in
  • a painful effort after breath. Then suddenly he raised both hands to his
  • temples, cried out, "My head, my head!" and reeled and fell against the
  • wall.
  • I knew too well what it must be. I turned and begged the servants to
  • relieve him. But they, with one accord, denied the possibility of hope;
  • the master had gone into the swamp, they said, the master must die; all
  • help was idle. Why should I dwell upon his sufferings? I had him carried
  • to a bed, and watched beside him. He lay still, and at times ground his
  • teeth, and talked at times unintelligibly, only that one word of hurry,
  • hurry, coming distinctly to my ears, and telling me that, even in the
  • last struggle with the powers of death, his mind was still tortured by
  • his daughter's peril. The sun had gone down, the darkness had fallen,
  • when I perceived that I was alone on this unhappy earth. What thoughts
  • had I of flight, of safety, of the impending dangers of my situation?
  • Beside the body of my last friend, I had forgotten all except the
  • natural pangs of my bereavement.
  • The sun was some four hours above the eastern line when I was recalled
  • to a knowledge of the things of earth by the entrance of the slave-girl
  • to whom I have already referred. The poor soul was indeed devotedly
  • attached to me; and it was with streaming tears that she broke to me the
  • import of her coming. With the first light of dawn a boat had reached
  • our landing-place, and set on shore upon our isle (till now so
  • fortunate) a party of officers bearing a warrant to arrest my father's
  • person, and a man of a gross body and low manners, who declared the
  • island, the plantation, and all its human chattels, to be now his own.
  • "I think," said my slave-girl, "he must be a politician or some very
  • powerful sorcerer; for Madam Mendizabal had no sooner seen them coming
  • than she took to the woods."
  • "Fool," said I, "it was the officer she feared; and at any rate why does
  • that beldam still dare to pollute the island with her presence? And oh,
  • Cora," I exclaimed, remembering my grief, "what matter all these
  • troubles to an orphan?"
  • "Mistress," said she, "I must remind you of two things. Never speak as
  • you do now of Madam Mendizabal; or never to a person of colour; for she
  • is the most powerful woman in this world, and her real name even, if one
  • durst pronounce it, were a spell to raise the dead. And whatever you do,
  • speak no more of her to your unhappy Cora; for though it is possible she
  • may be afraid of the police (and indeed I think that I have heard she is
  • in hiding), and though I know that you will laugh and not believe, yet
  • it is true, and proved, and known that she hears every word that people
  • utter in this whole, vast world; and your poor Cora is already deep
  • enough in her black books. She looks at me, mistress, till my blood
  • turns ice. That is the first I had to say; and now for the second; do,
  • pray, for Heaven's sake, bear in mind that you are no longer the poor
  • Señor's daughter. He is gone, dear gentleman; and now you are no more
  • than a common slave-girl like myself. The man to whom you belong calls
  • for you; oh, my dear mistress, go at once! With your youth and beauty,
  • you may still, if you are winning and obedient, secure yourself an easy
  • life."
  • For the moment I looked on the creature with the indignation you may
  • conceive; the next, it was gone: she did but speak after her kind, as
  • the bird sings or cattle bellow. "Go," said I. "Go, Cora. I thank you
  • for your kind intentions. Leave me alone one moment with my dead father;
  • and tell this man that I will come at once."
  • She went; and I, turning to the bed of death, addressed to those deaf
  • ears the last appeal and defence of my beleaguered innocence. "Father,"
  • I said, "it was your last thought, even in the pangs of dissolution,
  • that your daughter should escape disgrace. Here, at your side, I swear
  • to you that purpose shall be carried out; by what means, I know not; by
  • crime, if need be; and Heaven forgive both you and me and our
  • oppressors, and Heaven help my helplessness!" Thereupon I felt
  • strengthened as by long repose; stepped to the mirror, ay, even in that
  • chamber of the dead; hastily arranged my hair, refreshed my tear-worn
  • eyes, breathed a dumb farewell to the originator of my days and sorrows;
  • and, composing my features to a smile, went forth to meet my master.
  • He was in a great, hot bustle, reviewing that house, once ours, to which
  • he had but now succeeded; a corpulent, sanguine man of middle age,
  • sensual, vulgar, humorous, and, if I judged rightly, not ill-disposed by
  • nature. But the sparkle that came into his eye as he observed me enter
  • warned me to expect the worse.
  • "Is this your late mistress?" he inquired of the slaves; and, when he
  • had learnt it was so, instantly dismissed them. "Now, my dear," said he,
  • "I am a plain man: none of your damned Spaniards, but a true blue,
  • hard-working, honest Englishman. My name is Caulder."
  • "Thank you, sir," said I, and curtsied very smartly as I had seen the
  • servants.
  • "Come," said he, "this is better than I had expected; and if you choose
  • to be dutiful in the station to which it has pleased God to call you,
  • you will find me a very kind old fellow. I like your looks," he added,
  • calling me by my name, which he scandalously mispronounced. "Is your
  • hair all your own?" he then inquired with a certain sharpness, and
  • coming up to me, as though I were a horse, he grossly satisfied his
  • doubts. I was all one flame from head to foot, but I contained my
  • righteous anger and submitted. "That is very well," he continued,
  • chucking me good-humouredly under the chin. "You will have no cause to
  • regret coming to old Caulder, eh? But that is by the way. What is more
  • to the point is this: your late master was a most dishonest rogue and
  • levanted with some valuable property that belonged of rights to me. Now,
  • considering your relation to him, I regard you as the likeliest person
  • to know what has become of it; and I warn you, before you answer, that
  • my whole future kindness will depend upon your honesty. I am an honest
  • man myself, and expect the same in my servants."
  • "Do you mean the jewels?" said I, sinking my voice into a whisper.
  • "That is just precisely what I do," said he, and chuckled.
  • "Hush!" said I.
  • "Hush?" he repeated. "And why hush? I am on my own place, I would have
  • you to know, and surrounded by my own lawful servants."
  • "Are the officers gone?" I asked; and, oh! how my hopes hung upon the
  • answer!
  • "They are," said he, looking somewhat disconcerted. "Why do you ask?"
  • "I wish you had kept them," I answered, solemnly enough, although my
  • heart at that same moment leaped with exultation. "Master, I must not
  • conceal from you the truth. The servants on this estate are in a
  • dangerous condition, and mutiny has long been brewing."
  • "Why," he cried, "I never saw a milder-looking lot of niggers in my
  • life." But for all that he turned somewhat pale.
  • "Did they tell you," I continued, "that Madam Mendizabal is on the
  • island? that, since her coming, they obey none but her? that if, this
  • morning, they have received you with even decent civility, it was only
  • by her orders--issued with what after-thought I leave you to consider?"
  • "Madam Jezebel?" said he. "Well, she is a dangerous devil; the police
  • are after her, besides, for a whole series of murders; but after all,
  • what then? To be sure, she has a great influence with you coloured folk.
  • But what in fortune's name can be her errand here?"
  • "The jewels," I replied. "Ah, sir, had you seen that treasure, sapphire
  • and emerald and opal, and the golden topaz, and rubies, red as the
  • sunset--of what incalculable worth, of what unequalled beauty to the
  • eye!--had you seen it, as I have, and alas! as _she_ has--you would
  • understand and tremble at your danger."
  • "She has seen them!" he cried, and I could see by his face that my
  • audacity was justified by its success.
  • I caught his hand in mine. "My master," said I, "I am now yours; it is
  • my duty, it should be my pleasure, to defend your interests and life.
  • Hear my advice then; and, I conjure you, be guided by my prudence.
  • Follow me privily; let none see where we are going; I will lead you to
  • the place where the treasure has been buried; that once disinterred, let
  • us make straight for the boat, escape to the mainland, and not return to
  • this dangerous isle without the countenance of soldiers."
  • What free man in a free land would have credited so sudden a devotion?
  • But this oppressor, through the very arts and sophistries he had abused,
  • to quiet the rebellion of his conscience and to convince himself that
  • slavery was natural, fell like a child into the trap I laid for him. He
  • praised and thanked me; told me I had all the qualities he valued in a
  • servant; and when he had questioned me further as to the nature and
  • value of the treasure, and I had once more artfully inflamed his greed,
  • bade me, without delay, proceed to carry out my plan of action.
  • From a shed in the garden I took a pick and shovel; and thence, by
  • devious paths among the magnolias, led my master to the entrance of the
  • swamp. I walked first, carrying, as I was now in duty bound, the tools,
  • and glancing continually behind me, lest we should be spied upon and
  • followed. When we were come as far as the beginning of the path, it
  • flashed into my mind I had forgotten meat; and leaving Mr. Caulder in
  • the shadow of a tree, I returned alone to the house for a basket of
  • provisions. Were they for him? I asked myself. And a voice within me
  • answered, No. While we were face to face, while I still saw before my
  • eyes the man to whom I belonged as the hand belongs to the body, my
  • indignation held me bravely up. But now that I was alone, I conceived a
  • sickness at myself and my designs that I could scarce endure; I longed
  • to throw myself at his feet, avow my intended treachery, and warn him
  • from that pestilential swamp, to which I was decoying him to die; but my
  • vow to my dead father, my duty to my innocent youth, prevailed upon
  • these scruples; and though my face was pale and must have reflected the
  • horror that oppressed my spirits, it was with a firm step that I
  • returned to the borders of the swamp, and with smiling lips that I bade
  • him rise and follow me.
  • The path on which we now entered was cut, like a tunnel, through the
  • living jungle. On either hand and overhead, the mass of foliage was
  • continuously joined; the day sparingly filtered through the depth of
  • superimpending wood; and the air was hot like steam, and heady with
  • vegetable odours, and lay like a load upon the lungs and brain.
  • Underfoot, a great depth of mould received our silent footprints; on
  • each side, mimosas, as tall as a man, shrank from my passing skirts
  • with a continuous hissing rustle; and, but for these sentient
  • vegetables, all in that den of pestilence was motionless and noiseless.
  • We had gone but a little way in, when Mr. Caulder was seized with sudden
  • nausea, and must sit down a moment on the path. My heart yearned, as I
  • beheld him; and I seriously begged the doomed mortal to return upon his
  • steps. What were a few jewels in the scales with life? I asked. But no,
  • he said; that witch Madam Jezebel would find them out; he was an honest
  • man, and would not stand to be defrauded, and so forth, panting the
  • while, like a sick dog. Presently he got to his feet again, protesting
  • he had conquered his uneasiness; but as we again began to go forward, I
  • saw in his changed countenance the first approaches of death.
  • "Master," said I, "you look pale, deathly pale; your pallor fills me
  • with dread. Your eyes are bloodshot; they are red like the rubies that
  • we seek."
  • "Wench," he cried, "look before you; look at your steps. I declare to
  • Heaven, if you annoy me once again by looking back, I shall remind you
  • of the change in your position."
  • A little after, I observed a worm upon the ground, and told, in a
  • whisper, that its touch was death. Presently a great green serpent,
  • vivid as the grass in spring, wound rapidly across the path; and once
  • again I paused and looked back at my companion with a horror in my eyes.
  • "The coffin snake," said I, "the snake that dogs its victim like a
  • hound."
  • But he was not to be dissuaded. "I am an old traveller," said he. "This
  • is a foul jungle indeed; but we shall soon be at an end."
  • "Ay," said I, looking at him with a strange smile, "what end?"
  • Thereupon he laughed again and again, but not very heartily; and then,
  • perceiving that the path began to widen and grow higher, "There!" said
  • he. "What did I tell you? We are past the worst."
  • Indeed, we had now come to the bayou, which was in that place very
  • narrow and bridged across by a fallen trunk; but on either hand we could
  • see it broaden out, under a cavern of great arms of trees and hanging
  • creepers: sluggish, putrid, of a horrible and sickly stench, floated on
  • by the flat heads of alligators, and its banks alive with scarlet crabs.
  • "If we fall from that unsteady bridge," said I, "see, where the caiman
  • lies ready to devour us! If, by the least divergence from the path, we
  • should be snared in a morass, see, where those myriads of scarlet vermin
  • scour the border of the thicket! Once helpless, how they would swarm
  • together to the assault! What could man do against a thousand of such
  • mailed assailants? And what a death were that, to perish alive under
  • their claws!"
  • "Are you mad, girl?" he cried. "I bid you be silent and lead on."
  • Again I looked upon him, half relenting; and at that he raised the stick
  • that was in his hand and cruelly struck me on the face. "Lead on!" he
  • cried again. "Must I be all day, catching my death in this vile slough,
  • and all for a prating slave-girl?"
  • I took the blow in silence, I took it smiling; but the blood welled back
  • upon my heart. Something, I know not what, fell at that moment with a
  • dull plunge in the waters of the lagoon, and I told myself it was my
  • pity that had fallen.
  • On the farther side, to which we now hastily scrambled, the wood was not
  • so dense, the web of creepers not so solidly convolved. It was possible,
  • here and there, to mark a patch of somewhat brighter daylight, or to
  • distinguish, through the lighter web of parasites, the proportions of
  • some soaring tree. The cypress on the left stood very visibly forth,
  • upon the edge of such a clearing; the path in that place widened
  • broadly; and there was a patch of open ground, beset with horrible
  • ant-heaps, thick with their artificers. I laid down the tools and basket
  • by the cypress root, where they were instantly blackened over with the
  • crawling ants; and looked once more in the face of my unconscious
  • victim. Mosquitoes and foul flies wove so close a veil between us that
  • his features were obscured; and the sound of their flight was like the
  • turning of a mighty wheel.
  • "Here," I said, "is the spot. I cannot dig, for I have not learned to
  • use such instruments; but, for your own sake, I beseech you to be swift
  • in what you do."
  • He had sunk once more upon the ground, panting like a fish; and I saw
  • rising in his face the same dusky flush that had mantled on my father's.
  • "I feel ill," he gasped, "horribly ill; the swamp turns around me; the
  • drone of these carrion flies confounds me. Have you not wine?"
  • I gave him a glass, and he drank greedily. "It is for you to think,"
  • said I, "if you should further persevere. The swamp has an ill name."
  • And at the word I ominously nodded.
  • "Give me the pick," said he. "Where are the jewels buried?"
  • I told him vaguely; and in the sweltering heat and closeness, and dim
  • twilight of the jungle, he began to wield the pickaxe, swinging it
  • overhead with the vigour of a healthy man. At first, there broke forth
  • upon him a strong sweat, that made his face to shine, and in which the
  • greedy insects settled thickly.
  • "To sweat in such a place," said I. "O master, is this wise? Fever is
  • drunk in through open pores."
  • "What do you mean?" he screamed, pausing with the pick buried in the
  • soil. "Do you seek to drive me mad? Do you think I do not understand the
  • danger that I run?"
  • "That is all I want," said I: "I only wish you to be swift." And then,
  • my mind flitting to my father's deathbed, I began to murmur, scarce
  • above my breath, the same vain repetition of words, "Hurry, hurry,
  • hurry."
  • Presently, to my surprise, the treasure-seeker took them up; and while
  • he still wielded the pick, but now with staggering and uncertain blows,
  • repeated to himself, as it were the burthen of a song, "Hurry, hurry,
  • hurry"; and then again, "There is no time to lose; the marsh has an ill
  • name, ill name"; and then back to "Hurry, hurry, hurry," with a dreadful
  • mechanical, hurried, and yet wearied utterance, as a sick man rolls upon
  • his pillow. The sweat had disappeared; he was now dry, but, all that I
  • could see of him, of the same dull brick-red. Presently his pick
  • unearthed the bag of jewels; but he did not observe it, and continued
  • hewing at the soil.
  • "Master," said I, "there is the treasure."
  • He seemed to waken from a dream. "Where?" he cried; and then, seeing it
  • before his eyes, "Can this be possible?" he added. "I must be
  • light-headed. Girl," he cried suddenly, with the same screaming tone of
  • voice that I had once before observed, "what is wrong? is this swamp
  • accursed?"
  • "It is a grave," I answered. "You will not go out alive; and as for me,
  • my life is in God's hands."
  • He fell upon the ground like a man struck by a blow, but whether from
  • the effect of my words, or from sudden seizure of the malady, I cannot
  • tell. Pretty soon he raised his head. "You have brought me here to die,"
  • he said; "at the risk of your own days, you have condemned me. Why?"
  • "To save my honour," I replied. "Bear me out that I have warned you.
  • Greed of these pebbles, and not I, has been your undoer."
  • He took out his revolver and handed it to me. "You see," he said, "I
  • could have killed you even yet. But I am dying, as you say; nothing
  • could save me; and my bill is long enough already. Dear me, dear me," he
  • said, looking in my face with a curious, puzzled, and pathetic look,
  • like a dull child at school, "if there be a judgment afterwards, my bill
  • is long enough."
  • At that, I broke into a passion of weeping, crawled at his feet, kissed
  • his hands, begged his forgiveness, put the pistol back into his grasp,
  • and besought him to avenge his death; for indeed, if with my life I
  • could have bought back his, I had not balanced at the cost. But he was
  • determined, the poor soul, that I should yet more bitterly regret my
  • act.
  • "I have nothing to forgive," said he. "Dear Heaven, what a thing is an
  • old fool! I thought, upon my word, you had taken quite a fancy to me."
  • He was seized, at the same time, with a dreadful, swimming dizziness,
  • clung to me like a child, and called upon the name of some woman.
  • Presently this spasm, which I watched with choking tears, lessened and
  • died away; and he came again to the full possession of his mind. "I must
  • write my will," he said. "Get out my pocket-book." I did so, and he
  • wrote hurriedly on one page with a pencil. "Do not let my son know," he
  • said; "he is a cruel dog, is my son Philip; do not let him know how you
  • have paid me out"; and then all of a sudden, "God," he cried, "I am
  • blind," and clapped both hands before his eyes; and then again, and in a
  • groaning whisper, "Don't leave me to the crabs!" I swore I would be true
  • to him so long as a pulse stirred; and I redeemed my promise. I sat
  • there and watched him, as I had watched my father; but with what
  • different, with what appalling thoughts! Through the long afternoon, he
  • gradually sank. All that while, I fought an uphill battle to shield him
  • from the swarms of ants and the clouds of mosquitoes: the prisoner of my
  • crime. The night fell, the roar of insects instantly redoubled in the
  • dark arcades of the swamp; and still I was not sure that he had breathed
  • his last. At length, the flesh of his hand, which I yet held in mine,
  • grew chill between my fingers, and I knew that I was free.
  • I took his pocket-book and the revolver, being resolved rather to die
  • than to be captured, and, laden besides with the basket and the bag of
  • gems, set forward towards the north. The swamp, at that hour of the
  • night, was filled with a continuous din: animals and insects of all
  • kinds and all inimical to life, contributing their parts. Yet in the
  • midst of this turmoil of sound, I walked as though my eyes were
  • bandaged, beholding nothing. The soil sank under my foot, with a horrid,
  • slippery consistence, as though I were walking among toads; the touch of
  • the thick wall of foliage, by which alone I guided myself, affrighted me
  • like the touch of serpents; the darkness checked my breathing like a
  • gag; indeed, I have never suffered such extremes of fear as during that
  • nocturnal walk, nor have I ever known a more sensible relief than when I
  • found the path beginning to mount and to grow firmer under foot, and
  • saw, although still some way in front of me, the silver brightness of
  • the moon.
  • Presently I had crossed the last of the jungle, and come forth amongst
  • noble and lofty woods, clean rock, the clean, dry dust, the aromatic
  • smell of mountain plants that had been baked all day in sunlight, and
  • the expressive silence of the night. My negro blood had carried me
  • unhurt across that reeking and pestiferous morass; by mere good fortune,
  • I had escaped the crawling and stinging vermin with which it was alive;
  • and I had now before me the easier portion of my enterprise, to cross
  • the isle and to make good my arrival at the haven and my acceptance on
  • the English yacht. It was impossible by night to follow such a track as
  • my father had described; and I was casting about for any landmark and,
  • in my ignorance, vainly consulting the disposition of the stars, when
  • there fell upon my ear, from somewhere far in front, the sound of many
  • voices hurriedly singing.
  • I scarce knew upon what grounds I acted; but I shaped my steps in the
  • direction of that sound; and in a quarter of an hour's walking, came
  • unperceived to the margin of an open glade. It was lighted by the strong
  • moon and by the flames of a fire. In the midst there stood a little low
  • and rude building, surmounted by a cross: a chapel, as I then remembered
  • to have heard, long since desecrated and given over to the rites of
  • Hoodoo. Hard by the steps of entrance was a black mass, continually
  • agitated and stirring to and fro as if with inarticulate life; and this
  • I presently perceived to be a heap of cocks, hares, dogs, and other
  • birds and animals, still struggling, but helplessly tethered and cruelly
  • tossed one upon another. Both the fire and the chapel were surrounded by
  • a ring of kneeling Africans, both men and women. Now they would raise
  • their palms half closed to Heaven, with a peculiar, passionate gesture
  • of supplication; now they would bow their heads and spread their hands
  • before them on the ground. As the double movement passed and repassed
  • along the line, the heads kept rising and falling, like waves upon the
  • sea; and still, as if in time to these gesticulations, the hurried chant
  • continued. I stood spell-bound, knowing that my life depended by a hair,
  • knowing that I had stumbled on a celebration of the rites of Hoodoo.
  • Presently the door of the chapel opened and there came forth a tall
  • negro, entirely nude, and bearing in his hand the sacrificial knife. He
  • was followed by an apparition still more strange and shocking: Madam
  • Mendizabal, naked also, and carrying in both hands, and raised to the
  • level of her face, an open basket of wicker. It was filled with coiling
  • snakes; and these, as she stood there with the uplifted basket, shot
  • through the osier grating and curled about her arms. At the sight of
  • this, the fervour of the crowd seemed to swell suddenly higher; and the
  • chant rose in pitch and grew more irregular in time and accent. Then, at
  • a sign from the tall negro, where he stood, motionless and smiling, in
  • the moon- and fire-light, the singing died away, and there began the
  • second stage of this barbarous and bloody celebration. From different
  • parts of the ring, one after another, man or woman, ran forth into the
  • midst; ducked, with that same gesture of the thrown-up hand, before the
  • priestess and her snakes; and, with various adjurations, uttered aloud
  • the blackest wishes of the heart. Death and disease were the favours
  • usually invoked: the death or the disease of enemies or rivals; some
  • calling down these plagues upon the nearest of their own blood, and one,
  • to whom I swear I had been never less than kind, invoking them upon
  • myself. At each petition, the tall negro, still smiling, picked up some
  • bird or animal from the heaving mass upon his left, slew it with the
  • knife, and tossed its body on the ground. At length, it seemed, it
  • reached the turn of the high priestess. She set down the basket on the
  • steps, moved into the centre of the ring, grovelled in the dust before
  • the reptiles, and still grovelling lifted up her voice, between speech
  • and singing, and with so great, with so insane a fervour of excitement,
  • as struck a sort of horror through my blood.
  • "Power," she began, "whose name we do not utter; power that is neither
  • good nor evil, but below them both; stronger than good, greater than
  • evil--all my life long I have adored and served thee. Who has shed blood
  • upon thine altars? whose voice is broken with the singing of thy
  • praises? whose limbs are faint before their age with leaping in thy
  • revels? Who has slain the child of her body? I," she cried, "I,
  • Metamnbogu! By my own name, I name myself. I tear away the veil. I would
  • be served or perish. Hear me, slime of the fat swamp, blackness of the
  • thunder, venom of the serpent's udder--hear or slay me! I would have two
  • things, O shapeless one, O horror of emptiness--two things, or die! The
  • blood of my white-faced husband; oh! give me that; he is the enemy of
  • Hoodoo; give me blood! And yet another, O racer of the blind winds, O
  • germinator in the ruins of the dead, O root of life, root of corruption!
  • I grow old, I grow hideous; I am known, I am hunted for my life: let thy
  • servant then lay by this outworn body; let thy chief priestess turn
  • again to the blossom of her days, and be a girl once more, and the
  • desired of all men, even as in the past! And, O lord and master, as I
  • here ask a marvel not yet wrought since we were torn from the old land,
  • have I not prepared the sacrifice in which thy soul delighteth--the kid
  • without the horns?"
  • Even as she uttered the words, there was a great rumour of joy through
  • all the circle of worshippers; it rose, and fell, and rose again; and
  • swelled at last into rapture, when the tall negro, who had stepped an
  • instant into the chapel, reappeared before the door, carrying in his
  • arms the body of the slave-girl, Cora. I know not if I saw what
  • followed. When next my mind awoke to a clear knowledge, Cora was laid
  • upon the steps before the serpents; the negro with the knife stood over
  • her; the knife rose; and at this I screamed out in my great horror,
  • bidding them, in God's name, to pause.
  • A stillness fell upon the mob of cannibals. A moment more, and they must
  • have thrown off this stupor, and I infallibly have perished. But Heaven
  • had designed to save me. The silence of these wretched men was not yet
  • broken, when there arose, in the empty night, a sound louder than the
  • roar of any European tempest, swifter to travel than the wings of any
  • Eastern wind. Blackness engulfed the world: blackness, stabbed across
  • from every side by intricate and blinding lightning. Almost in the same
  • second, at one world-swallowing stride, the heart of the tornado reached
  • the clearing. I heard an agonising crash, and the light of my reason was
  • overwhelmed.
  • When I recovered consciousness, the day was come. I was unhurt; the
  • trees close about me had not lost a bough; and I might have thought at
  • first that the tornado was a feature in a dream. It was otherwise
  • indeed; for when I looked abroad, I perceived I had escaped destruction
  • by a hand's-breadth. Right through the forest, which here covered hill
  • and dale, the storm had ploughed a lane of ruin. On either hand, the
  • trees waved uninjured in the air of the morning; but in the forthright
  • course of its advance, the hurricane had left no trophy standing.
  • Everything in that line, tree, man, or animal, the desecrated chapel and
  • the votaries of Hoodoo, had been subverted and destroyed in that brief
  • spasm of anger of the powers of air. Everything but a yard or two beyond
  • the line of its passage, humble flower, lofty tree, and the poor
  • vulnerable maid who now knelt to pay her gratitude to Heaven, awoke
  • unharmed in the crystal purity and peace of the new day.
  • To move by the path of the tornado was a thing impossible to man, so
  • wildly were the wrecks of the tall forest piled together by that
  • fugitive convulsion. I crossed it indeed; with such labour and patience,
  • with so many dangerous slips and falls, as left me, at the farther side,
  • bankrupt alike of strength and courage. There I sat down awhile to
  • recruit my forces; and as I ate (how should I bless the kindliness of
  • Heaven!), my eye, flitting to and fro in the colonnade of the great
  • trees, alighted on a trunk that had been blazed. Yes, by the directing
  • hand of Providence, I had been conducted to the very track I was to
  • follow. With what a light heart I now set forth, and walking with how
  • glad a step traversed the uplands of the isle!
  • It was hard upon the hour of noon when I came, all tattered and wayworn,
  • to the summit of a steep descent, and looked below me on the sea. About
  • all the coast, the surf, roused by the tornado of the night, beat with a
  • particular fury and made a fringe of snow. Close at my feet I saw a
  • haven, set in precipitous and palm-crowned bluffs of rock. Just outside,
  • a ship was heaving on the surge, so trimly sparred, so glossily painted,
  • so elegant and _point-device_ in every feature, that my heart was seized
  • with admiration. The English colours blew from her masthead; and, from
  • my high station, I caught glimpses of her snowy planking, as she rolled
  • on the uneven deep, and saw the sun glitter on the brass of her deck
  • furniture. There, then, was my ship of refuge; and of all my
  • difficulties only one remained: to get on board of her.
  • Half an hour later, I issued at last out of the woods on the margin of a
  • cove, into whose jaws the tossing and blue billows entered, and along
  • whose shores they broke with a surprising loudness. A wooded promontory
  • hid the yacht; and I had walked some distance round the beach, in what
  • appeared to be a virgin solitude, when my eye fell on a boat, drawn into
  • a natural harbour, where it rocked in safety, but deserted. I looked
  • about for those who should have manned her; and presently, in the
  • immediate entrance of the wood, spied the red embers of a fire and,
  • stretched around in various attitudes, a party of slumbering mariners.
  • To these I drew near: most were black, a few white; but all were dressed
  • with the conspicuous decency of yachtsmen; and one, from his peaked cap
  • and glittering buttons, I rightly divined to be an officer. Him, then, I
  • touched upon the shoulder. He started up; the sharpness of his movement
  • woke the rest; and they all stared upon me in surprise.
  • "What do you want?" inquired the officer.
  • "To go on board the yacht," I answered.
  • I thought they all seemed disconcerted at this; and the officer, with
  • something of sharpness, asked me who I was. Now I had determined to
  • conceal my name until I met Sir George; and the first name that rose to
  • my lips was that of the Señora Mendizabal. At the word, there went a
  • shock about the little party of seamen; the negroes stared at me with
  • indescribable eagerness, the whites themselves with something of a
  • scared surprise; and instantly the spirit of mischief prompted me to
  • add: "And if the name is new to your ears, call me Metamnbogu."
  • I had never seen an effect so wonderful. The negroes threw their hands
  • into the air, with the same gesture I remarked the night before about
  • the Hoodoo camp-fire; first one, and then another, ran forward and
  • kneeled down and kissed the skirts of my torn dress; and when the white
  • officer broke out swearing and calling to know if they were mad, the
  • coloured seamen took him by the shoulders, dragged him on one side till
  • they were out of hearing, and surrounded him with open mouths and
  • extravagant pantomime. The officer seemed to struggle hard; he laughed
  • aloud, and I saw him make gestures of dissent and protest; but in the
  • end, whether overcome by reason or simply weary of resistance, he gave
  • in--approached me civilly enough, but with something of a sneering
  • manner underneath--and touching his cap, "My lady," said he, "if that
  • is what you are, the boat is ready."
  • My reception on board the _Nemorosa_ (for so the yacht was named)
  • partook of the same mingled nature. We were scarcely within hail of that
  • great and elegant fabric, where she lay rolling gunwale under and
  • churning the blue sea to snow, before the bulwarks were lined with the
  • heads of a great crowd of seamen, black, white, and yellow; and these
  • and the few who manned the boat began exchanging shouts in some _lingua
  • franca_ incomprehensible to me. All eyes were directed on the passenger;
  • and once more I saw the negroes toss up their hands to Heaven, but now
  • as if with passionate wonder and delight.
  • At the head of the gangway, I was received by another officer, a
  • gentlemanly man with blond and bushy whiskers; and to him I addressed my
  • demand to see Sir George.
  • "But this is not----" he cried, and paused.
  • "I know it," returned the other officer, who had brought me from the
  • shore. "But what the devil can we do? Look at all the niggers!"
  • I followed his direction; and as my eye lighted upon each, the poor
  • ignorant Africans ducked, and bowed, and threw their hands into the air,
  • as though in the presence of a creature half divine. Apparently the
  • officer with the whiskers had instantly come round to the opinion of his
  • subaltern; for he now addressed me with every signal of respect.
  • "Sir George is at the island, my lady," said he: "for which, with your
  • ladyship's permission, I shall immediately make all sail. The cabins are
  • prepared. Steward, take Lady Greville below."
  • Under this new name, then, and so captivated by surprise that I could
  • neither think nor speak, I was ushered into a spacious and airy cabin,
  • hung about with weapons and surrounded by divans. The steward asked for
  • my commands; but I was by this time so wearied, bewildered, and
  • disturbed, that I could only wave him to leave me to myself, and sink
  • upon a pile of cushions. Presently, by the changed motion of the ship, I
  • knew her to be under way; my thoughts, so far from clarifying, grew the
  • more distracted and confused; dreams began to mingle and confound them;
  • and at length, by insensible transition, I sank into a dreamless
  • slumber.
  • When I awoke, the day and night had passed, and it was once more
  • morning. The world on which I reopened my eyes swam strangely up and
  • down; the jewels in the bag that lay beside me clinked together
  • ceaselessly; the clock and the barometer wagged to and fro like
  • pendulums; and overhead, seamen were singing out at their work, and
  • coils of rope clattering and thumping on the deck. Yet it was long
  • before I had divined that I was at sea; long before I had recalled, one
  • after another, the tragical, mysterious, and inexplicable events that
  • had brought me where I was.
  • When I had done so, I thrust the jewels, which I was surprised to find
  • had been respected, into the bosom of my dress; and, seeing a silver
  • bell hard by upon a table, rang it loudly. The steward instantly
  • appeared; I asked for food; and he proceeded to lay the table, regarding
  • me the while with a disquieting and pertinacious scrutiny. To relieve
  • myself of my embarrassment, I asked him, with as fair a show of ease as
  • I could muster, if it were usual for yachts to carry so numerous a crew?
  • "Madam," said he, "I know not who you are, nor what mad desire has
  • induced you to usurp a name and an appalling destiny that are not yours.
  • I warn you from the soul. No sooner arrived at the island----"
  • At this moment he was interrupted by the whiskered officer, who had
  • entered unperceived behind him, and now laid a hand upon his shoulder.
  • The sudden pallor, the deadly and sick fear that was imprinted on the
  • steward's face, formed a startling addition to his words.
  • "Parker!" said the officer, and pointed towards the door.
  • "Yes, Mr. Kentish," said the steward. "For God's sake, Mr. Kentish!"
  • And vanished, with a white face, from the cabin.
  • Thereupon the officer bade me sit down, and began to help me, and join
  • in the meal. "I fill your ladyship's glass," said he, and handed me a
  • tumbler of neat rum.
  • "Sir," cried I, "do you expect me to drink this?"
  • He laughed heartily. "Your ladyship is so much changed," said he, "that
  • I no longer expect any one thing more than any other."
  • Immediately after, a white seaman entered the cabin, saluted both Mr.
  • Kentish and myself, and informed the officer there was a sail in sight,
  • which was bound to pass us very close, and that Mr. Harland was in doubt
  • about the colours.
  • "Being so near the island?" asked Mr. Kentish.
  • "That was what Mr. Harland said, sir," returned the sailor, with a
  • scrape.
  • "Better not, I think," said Mr. Kentish. "My compliments to Mr. Harland;
  • and if she seem a lively boat, give her the stars and stripes; but if
  • she be dull, and we can easily outsail her, show John Dutchman. That is
  • always another word for incivility at sea; so we can disregard a hail or
  • a flag of distress, without attracting notice."
  • As soon as the sailor had gone on deck, I turned to the officer in
  • wonder. "Mr. Kentish, if that be your name," said I, "are you ashamed of
  • your own colours?"
  • "Your ladyship refers to the 'Jolly Roger'?" he inquired, with perfect
  • gravity; and, immediately after, went into peals of laughter. "Pardon
  • me," said he; "but here for the first time, I recognise your ladyship's
  • impetuosity." Nor, try as I pleased, could I extract from him any
  • explanation of this mystery, but only oily and commonplace evasion.
  • While we were thus occupied, the movement of the _Nemorosa_ gradually
  • became less violent; its speed at the same time diminished; and
  • presently after, with a sullen plunge, the anchor was discharged into
  • the sea. Kentish immediately rose, offered his arm, and conducted me on
  • deck; where I found we were lying in a roadstead among many low and
  • rocky islets, hovered about by an innumerable cloud of sea-fowl.
  • Immediately under our board, a somewhat larger isle was green with
  • trees, set with a few low buildings and approached by a pier of very
  • crazy workmanship; and a little inshore of us, a smaller vessel lay at
  • anchor.
  • I had scarce time to glance to the four quarters ere a boat was lowered.
  • I was handed in, Kentish took place beside me, and we pulled briskly to
  • the pier. A crowd of villainous, armed loiterers, both black and white,
  • looked on upon our landing; and again the word passed about among the
  • negroes, and again I was received with prostrations and the same gesture
  • of the flung-up hand. By this, what with the appearance of these men and
  • the lawless, seagirt spot in which I found myself, my courage began a
  • little to decline, and, clinging to the arm of Mr. Kentish, I begged him
  • to tell me what it meant.
  • "Nay, madam," he returned, "_you_ know." And leading me smartly through
  • the crowd, which continued to follow at a considerable distance, and at
  • which he still kept looking back, I thought, with apprehension, he
  • brought me to a low house that stood alone in an encumbered yard, opened
  • the door, and begged me to enter.
  • "But why?" said I. "I demand to see Sir George."
  • "Madam," returned Mr. Kentish, looking suddenly as black as thunder, "to
  • drop all fence, I know neither who nor what you are; beyond the fact
  • that you are not the person whose name you have assumed. But be what you
  • please, spy, ghost, devil, or most ill-judging jester, if you do not
  • immediately enter that house, I will cut you to the earth." And even as
  • he spoke, he threw an uneasy glance behind him at the following crowd of
  • blacks.
  • I did not wait to be twice threatened; I obeyed at once and with a
  • palpitating heart; and the next moment, the door was locked from the
  • outside and the key withdrawn. The interior was long, low, and quite
  • unfurnished, but filled, almost from end to end, with sugar-cane,
  • tar-barrels, old tarry rope, and other incongruous and highly
  • inflammable material; and not only was the door locked, but the solitary
  • window barred with iron.
  • I was by this time so exceedingly bewildered and afraid, that I would
  • have given years of my life to be once more the slave of Mr. Caulder. I
  • still stood, with my hands clasped, the image of despair, looking about
  • me on the lumber of the room or raising my eyes to Heaven; when there
  • appeared, outside the window bars, the face of a very black negro, who
  • signed to me imperiously to draw near. I did so, and he instantly, and
  • with every mark of fervour, addressed me a long speech in some unknown
  • and barbarous tongue.
  • "I declare," I cried, clasping my brow, "I do not understand one
  • syllable."
  • "Not?" he said in Spanish. "Great, great, are the powers of Hoodoo! Her
  • very mind is changed! But, O chief priestess, why have you suffered
  • yourself to be shut into this cage? why did you not call your slaves at
  • once to your defence? Do you not see that all has been prepared to
  • murder you? at a spark, this flimsy house will go in flames; and alas!
  • who shall then be the chief priestess? and what shall be the profit of
  • the miracle?"
  • "Heavens!" cried I, "can I not see Sir George? I must, I must, come by
  • speech of him. Oh, bring me to Sir George!" And, my terror fairly
  • mastering my courage, I fell upon my knees and began to pray to all the
  • saints.
  • "Lordy!" cried the negro, "here they come!" And his black head was
  • instantly withdrawn from the window.
  • "I never heard such nonsense in my life," exclaimed a voice.
  • "Why, so we all say, Sir George," replied the voice of Mr. Kentish. "But
  • put yourself in our place. The niggers were near two to one. And upon my
  • word, if you'll excuse me, sir, considering the notion they have taken
  • in their heads, I regard it as precious fortunate for all of us that
  • the mistake occurred."
  • "This is no question of fortune, sir," returned Sir George. "It is a
  • question of my orders, and you may take my word for it, Kentish, either
  • Harland, or yourself, or Parker--or, by George, all three of you!--shall
  • swing for this affair. These are my sentiments. Give me the key and be
  • off."
  • Immediately after, the key turned in the lock; and there appeared upon
  • the threshold a gentleman, between forty and fifty, with a very open
  • countenance and of a stout and personable figure.
  • "My dear young lady," said he, "who the devil may you be?"
  • I told him all my story in one rush of words. He heard me, from the
  • first, with an amazement you can scarcely picture, but when I came to
  • the death of the Señora Mendizabal in the tornado, he fairly leaped into
  • the air.
  • "My dear child," he cried, clasping me in his arms, "excuse a man who
  • might be your father! This is the best news I ever had since I was born;
  • for that hag of a mulatto was no less a person than my wife." He sat
  • down upon a tar-barrel, as if unmanned by joy. "Dear me," said he, "I
  • declare this tempts me to believe in Providence. And what," he added,
  • "can I do for you?"
  • "Sir George," said I, "I am already rich: all that I ask is your
  • protection."
  • "Understand one thing," he said, with great energy: "I will never
  • marry."
  • "I had not ventured to propose it," I exclaimed, unable to restrain my
  • mirth; "I only seek to be conveyed to England, the natural home of the
  • escaped slave."
  • "Well," returned Sir George, "frankly I owe you something for this
  • exhilarating news; besides, your father was of use to me. Now, I have
  • made a small competence in business--a jewel mine, a sort of naval
  • agency, et cætera, and I am on the point of breaking up my company, and
  • retiring to my place in Devonshire to pass a plain old age, unmarried.
  • One good turn deserves another: if you swear to hold your tongue about
  • this island, these little bonfire arrangements, and the whole episode of
  • my unfortunate marriage, why, I'll carry you home aboard the
  • _Nemorosa_."
  • I eagerly accepted his conditions.
  • "One thing more," said he. "My late wife was some sort of a sorceress
  • among the blacks; and they are all persuaded she has come alive again in
  • your agreeable person. Now, you will have the goodness to keep up that
  • fancy, if you please; and to swear to them, on the authority of Hoodoo
  • or whatever his name may be, that I am from this moment quite a sacred
  • character."
  • "I swear it," said I, "by my father's memory; and that is a vow that I
  • will never break."
  • "I have considerably better hold on you than any oath," returned Sir
  • George, with a chuckle; "for you are not only an escaped slave, but
  • have, by your own account, a considerable amount of stolen property."
  • I was struck dumb; I saw it was too true; in a glance, I recognised that
  • these jewels were no longer mine; with similar quickness, I decided they
  • should be restored, ay, if it cost me the liberty that I had just
  • regained. Forgetful of all else, forgetful of Sir George, who sat and
  • watched me with a smile, I drew out Mr. Caulder's pocket-book and turned
  • to the page on which the dying man had scrawled his testament. How shall
  • I describe the agony of happiness and remorse with which I read it! for
  • my victim had not only set me free, but bequeathed to me the bag of
  • jewels.
  • My plain tale draws towards a close. Sir George and I, in my character
  • of his rejuvenated wife, displayed ourselves arm-in-arm among the
  • negroes, and were cheered and followed to the place of embarkation.
  • There, Sir George, turning about, made a speech to his old companions,
  • in which he thanked and bade them farewell with a very manly spirit; and
  • towards the end of which he fell on some expressions which I still
  • remember. "If any of you gentry lose your money," he said, "take care
  • you do not come to me; for in the first place, I shall do my best to
  • have you murdered; and if that fails, I hand you over to the law.
  • Blackmail won't do for me. I'll rather risk all upon a cast, than be
  • pulled to pieces by degrees. I'll rather be found out and hang, than
  • give a doit to one man-jack of you." That same night we got under way
  • and crossed to the port of New Orleans, whence, as a sacred trust, I
  • sent the pocket-book to Mr. Caulder's son. In a week's time, the men
  • were all paid off; new hands were shipped; and the _Nemorosa_ weighed
  • her anchor for Old England.
  • A more delightful voyage it were hard to fancy. Sir George, of course,
  • was not a conscientious man; but he had an unaffected gaiety of
  • character that naturally endeared him to the young; and it was
  • interesting to hear him lay out his projects for the future, when he
  • should be returned to parliament, and place at the service of the nation
  • his experience of marine affairs. I asked him if his notion of piracy
  • upon a private yacht were not original. But he told me, no. "A yacht,
  • Miss Valdevia," he observed, "is a chartered nuisance. Who smuggles? Who
  • robs the salmon rivers of the west of Scotland? Who cruelly beats the
  • keepers if they dare to intervene? The crews and the proprietors of
  • yachts. All I have done is to extend the line a trifle; and if you ask
  • me for my unbiassed opinion, I do not suppose that I am in the least
  • alone."
  • In short we were the best of friends, and lived like father and
  • daughter; though I still withheld from him, of course, that respect
  • which is only due to moral excellence.
  • We were still some days' sail from England, when Sir George obtained,
  • from an outward-bound ship, a packet of newspapers; and from that fatal
  • hour my misfortunes recommenced. He sat, the same evening, in the cabin,
  • reading the news, and making savoury comments on the decline of England
  • and the poor condition of the navy; when I suddenly observed him to
  • change countenance.
  • "Hullo!" said he, "this is bad; this is deuced bad, Miss Valdevia. You
  • would not listen to sound sense, you would send that pocket-book to
  • that man Caulder's son."
  • "Sir George," said I, "it was my duty."
  • "You are prettily paid for it, at least," says he; "and much as I regret
  • it, I, for one, am done with you. This fellow Caulder demands your
  • extradition."
  • "But a slave," I returned, "is safe in England."
  • "Yes, by George!" replied the baronet; "but it's not a slave, Miss
  • Valdevia, it's a thief that he demands. He has quietly destroyed the
  • will; and now accuses you of robbing your father's bankrupt estate of
  • jewels to the value of a hundred thousand pounds."
  • I was so much overcome by indignation at this hateful charge and concern
  • for my unhappy fate that the genial baronet made haste to put me more at
  • ease.
  • "Do not be cast down," said he. "Of course, I wash my hands of you
  • myself. A man in my position--baronet, old family, and all that--cannot
  • possibly be too particular about the company he keeps. But I am a deuced
  • good-humoured old boy, let me tell you, when not ruffled; and I will do
  • the best I can to put you right. I will lend you a trifle of ready
  • money, give you the address of an excellent lawyer in London, and find a
  • way to set you on shore unsuspected."
  • He was in every particular as good as his word. Four days later, the
  • _Nemorosa_ sounded her way, under the cloak of a dark night, into a
  • certain haven of the coast of England; and a boat, rowing with muffled
  • oars, set me ashore upon the beach within a stone's throw of a railway
  • station. Thither, guided by Sir George's directions, I groped a devious
  • way; and, finding a bench upon the platform, sat me down, wrapped in a
  • man's fur greatcoat, to await the coming of the day. It was still dark
  • when a light was struck behind one of the windows of the building; nor
  • had the east begun to kindle to the warmer colours of the dawn, before a
  • porter, carrying a lantern, issued from the door and found himself face
  • to face with the unfortunate Teresa. He looked all about him; in the
  • grey twilight of the dawn, the haven was seen to lie deserted, and the
  • yacht had long since disappeared.
  • "Who are you?" he cried.
  • "I am a traveller," said I.
  • "And where do you come from?" he asked.
  • "I'm going, by the first train, to London," I replied.
  • In such manner, like a ghost or a new creation, was Teresa with her bag
  • of jewels landed on the shores of England; in this silent fashion,
  • without history or name, she took her place among the millions of a new
  • country.
  • Since then, I have lived by the expedients of my lawyer, lying concealed
  • in quiet lodgings, dogged by the spies of Cuba, and not knowing at what
  • hour my liberty and honour may be lost.
  • THE BROWN BOX (_concluded_)
  • The effect of this tale on the mind of Harry Desborough was instant and
  • convincing. The Fair Cuban had been already the loveliest, she now
  • became, in his eyes, the most romantic, the most innocent and the most
  • unhappy of her sex. He was bereft of words to utter what he felt: what
  • pity, what admiration, what youthful envy of a career so vivid and
  • adventurous. "Oh, madam!" he began; and finding no language adequate to
  • that apostrophe, caught up her hand and wrung it in his own. "Count upon
  • me," he added, with bewildered fervour; and, getting somehow or other
  • out of the apartment and from the circle of that radiant sorceress, he
  • found himself in the strange out-of-doors, beholding dull houses,
  • wondering at dull passers-by, a fallen angel. She had smiled upon him as
  • he left, and with how significant, how beautiful a smile! The memory
  • lingered in his heart; and when he found his way to a certain restaurant
  • where music was performed, flutes (as it were of Paradise) accompanied
  • his meal. The strings went to the melody of that parting smile; they
  • paraphrased and glossed it in the sense that he desired; and for the
  • first time in his plain and somewhat dreary life, he perceived himself
  • to have a taste for music.
  • The next day, and the next, his meditations moved to that delectable
  • air. Now he saw her, and was favoured; now saw her not at all; now saw
  • her and was put by. The fall of her foot upon the stair entranced him;
  • the books that he sought out and read were books on Cuba and spoke of
  • her indirectly; nay, and in the very landlady's parlour, he found one
  • that told of precisely such a hurricane and, down to the smallest
  • detail, confirmed (had confirmation been required) the truth of her
  • recital. Presently he began to fall into that prettiest mood of a young
  • love, in which the lover scorns himself for his presumption. Who was he,
  • the dull one, the commonplace unemployed, the man without adventure, the
  • impure, the untruthful, to aspire to such a creature made of fire and
  • air, and hallowed and adorned by such incomparable passages of life?
  • What should he do, to be more worthy? by what devotion, call down the
  • notice of these eyes to so terrene a being as himself?
  • He betook himself, thereupon, to the rural privacy of the square, where,
  • being a lad of a kind heart, he had made himself a circle of
  • acquaintances among its shy frequenters, the half-domestic cats and the
  • visitors that hung before the windows of the Children's Hospital. There
  • he walked, considering the depth of his demerit and the height of the
  • adored one's super-excellence; now lighting upon earth to say a pleasant
  • word to the brother of some infant invalid; now, with a great heave of
  • breath remembering the queen of women, and the sunshine of his life.
  • What was he to do? Teresa, he had observed, was in the habit of leaving
  • the house towards afternoon: she might, perchance, run danger from some
  • Cuban emissary, when the presence of a friend might turn the balance in
  • her favour: how, then, if he should follow her? To offer his company
  • would seem like an intrusion; to dog her openly were a manifest
  • impertinence; he saw himself reduced to a more stealthy part, which,
  • though in some ways distasteful to his mind, he did not doubt that he
  • could practise with the skill of a detective.
  • The next day he proceeded to put his plan in action. At the corner of
  • Tottenham Court Road, however, the Señorita suddenly turned back, and
  • met him face to face, with every mark of pleasure and surprise.
  • "Ah, Señor, I am sometimes fortunate!" she cried. "I was looking for a
  • messenger"; and with the sweetest of smiles she despatched him to the
  • east end of London, to an address which he was unable to find. This was
  • a bitter pill to the knight-errant; but when he returned at night, worn
  • out with fruitless wandering and dismayed by his _fiasco_, the lady
  • received him with a friendly gaiety, protesting that all was for the
  • best, since she had changed her mind and long since repented of her
  • message.
  • Next day he resumed his labours, glowing with pity and courage, and
  • determined to protect Teresa with his life. But a painful shock awaited
  • him. In the narrow and silent Hanway Street, she turned suddenly about
  • and addressed him with a manner and a light in her eyes, that were new
  • to the young man's experience.
  • "Do I understand that you follow me, Señor?" she cried. "Are these the
  • manners of the English gentleman?"
  • Harry confounded himself in the most abject apologies and prayers to be
  • forgiven, vowed to offend no more, and was at length dismissed,
  • crestfallen and heavy of heart. The check was final; he gave up that
  • road to service; and began once more to hang about the square or on the
  • terrace, filled with remorse and love, admirable and idiotic, a fit
  • object for the scorn and envy of older men. In these idle hours, while
  • he was courting fortune for a sight of the beloved, it fell out
  • naturally that he should observe the manners and appearance of such as
  • came about the house. One person alone was the occasional visitor of the
  • young lady: a man of considerable stature and distinguished only by the
  • doubtful ornament of a chin-beard in the style of an American deacon.
  • Something in his appearance grated upon Harry; this distaste grew upon
  • him in the course of days; and when at length he mustered courage to
  • inquire of the Fair Cuban who this was, he was yet more dismayed by her
  • reply.
  • "That gentleman," said she, a smile struggling to her face, "that
  • gentleman, I will not attempt to conceal from you, desires my hand in
  • marriage, and presses me with the most respectful ardour. Alas, what am
  • I to say? I, the forlorn Teresa, how shall I refuse or accept such
  • protestations?"
  • Harry feared to say more; a horrid pang of jealousy transfixed him; and
  • he had scarce the strength of mind to take his leave with decency. In
  • the solitude of his own chamber, he gave way to every manifestation of
  • despair. He passionately adored the Señorita; but it was not only the
  • thought of her possible union with another that distressed his soul, it
  • was the indefeasible conviction that her suitor was unworthy. To a duke,
  • a bishop, a victorious general, or any man adorned with obvious
  • qualities, he had resigned her with a sort of bitter joy; he saw himself
  • follow the wedding party from a great way off; he saw himself return to
  • the poor house, then robbed of its jewel; and while he could have wept
  • for his despair, he felt he could support it nobly. But this affair
  • looked otherwise. The man was patently no gentleman; he had a startled,
  • skulking, guilty bearing; his nails were black, his eyes evasive, his
  • love perhaps was a pretext; he was perhaps, under this deep disguise, a
  • Cuban emissary! Harry swore that he would satisfy these doubts; and the
  • next evening, about the hour of the usual visit, he posted himself at a
  • spot whence his eye commanded the three issues of the square.
  • Presently after, a four-wheeler rumbled to the door; and the man with
  • the chin-beard alighted, paid off the cabman, and was seen by Harry to
  • enter the house with a brown box hoisted on his back. Half an hour
  • later, he came forth again without the box, and struck eastward at a
  • rapid walk; and Desborough, with the same skill and caution that he had
  • displayed in following Teresa, proceeded to dog the steps of her
  • admirer. The man began to loiter, studying with apparent interest the
  • wares of the small fruiterer or tobacconist; twice he returned hurriedly
  • upon his former course; and then, as though he had suddenly conquered a
  • moment's hesitation, once more set forth with resolute and swift steps
  • in the direction of Lincoln's Inn. At length, in a deserted by-street,
  • he turned; and coming up to Harry with a countenance which seemed to
  • have become older and whiter, inquired with some severity of speech if
  • he had not had the pleasure of seeing the gentleman before.
  • "You have, sir," said Harry, somewhat abashed, but with a good show of
  • stoutness; "and I will not deny that I was following you on purpose.
  • Doubtless," he added, for he supposed that all men's minds must still be
  • running on Teresa, "you can divine my reason."
  • At these words, the man with the chin-beard was seized with a palsied
  • tremor. He seemed, for some seconds, to seek the utterance which his
  • fear denied him; and then, whipping sharply about, he took to his heels
  • at the most furious speed of running.
  • Harry was at first so taken aback that he neglected to pursue; and by
  • the time he had recovered his wits, his best expedition was only
  • rewarded by a glimpse of the man with the chin-beard mounting into a
  • hansom, which immediately after disappeared into the moving crowds of
  • Holborn.
  • Puzzled and dismayed by this unusual behaviour, Harry returned to the
  • house in Queen Square, and ventured for the first time to knock at the
  • fair Cuban's door. She bade him enter, and he found her kneeling with
  • rather a disconsolate air beside a brown wooden trunk.
  • "Señorita," he broke out, "I doubt whether that man's character is what
  • he wishes you to believe. His manner, when he found, and indeed when I
  • admitted, that I was following him, was not the manner of an honest
  • man."
  • "Oh!" she cried, throwing up her hands as in desperation, "Don Quixote,
  • Don Quixote, have you again been tilting against windmills?" And then,
  • with a laugh, "Poor soul!" she added, "how you must have terrified him!
  • For know that the Cuban authorities are here, and your poor Teresa may
  • soon be hunted down. Even yon humble clerk from my solicitor's office
  • may find himself at any moment the quarry of armed spies."
  • "A humble clerk!" cried Harry, "why, you told me yourself that he wished
  • to marry you!"
  • "I thought you English like what you call a joke," replied the lady
  • calmly. "As a matter of fact he is my lawyer's clerk, and has been here
  • to-night charged with disastrous news. I am in sore straits, Señor
  • Harry. Will you help me?"
  • At this most welcome word, the young man's heart exulted; and in the
  • hope, pride, and self-esteem, that kindled with the very thought of
  • service, he forgot to dwell upon the lady's jest. "Can you ask?" he
  • cried. "What is there that I can do? Only tell me that."
  • With signs of an emotion that was certainly unfeigned, the Fair Cuban
  • laid her hand upon the box. "This box," she said, "contains my jewels,
  • papers, and clothes; all, in a word, that still connects me with Cuba
  • and my dreadful past. They must now be smuggled out of England; or, by
  • the opinion of my lawyer, I am lost beyond remedy. To-morrow, on board
  • the Irish packet, a sure hand awaits the box; the problem still unsolved
  • is to find some one to carry it as far as Holyhead, to see it placed on
  • board the steamer, and instantly return to town. Will you be he? Will
  • you leave to-morrow by the first train, punctually obey orders, bear
  • still in mind that you are surrounded by Cuban spies; and without so
  • much as a look behind you, or a single movement to betray your interest,
  • leave the box where you have put it and come straight on shore? Will
  • you do this, and so save your friend?"
  • "I do not clearly understand ..." began Harry.
  • "No more do I," replied the Cuban. "It is not necessary that we should,
  • so long as we obey the lawyer's orders."
  • "Señorita," returned Harry gravely, "I think this, of course, a very
  • little thing to do for you, when I would willingly do all. But suffer me
  • to say one word. If London is unsafe for your treasures, it cannot long
  • be safe for you; and indeed, if I at all fathom the plan of your
  • solicitor, I fear I may find you already fled on my return. I am not
  • considered clever, and can only speak out plainly what is in my heart:
  • that I love you, and that I cannot bear to lose all knowledge of you. I
  • hope no more than to be your servant; I ask no more than just that I
  • shall hear of you. Oh, promise me so much!"
  • "You shall," she said, after a pause. "I promise you, you shall." But
  • though she spoke with earnestness, the marks of great embarrassment and
  • a strong conflict of emotions appeared upon her face.
  • "I wish to tell you," resumed Desborough, "in case of accidents...."
  • "Accidents!" she cried: "why do you say that?"
  • "I do not know," said he, "you may be gone before my return, and we may
  • not meet again for long. And so I wished you to know this: That since
  • the day you gave me the cigarette, you have never once, not once, been
  • absent from my mind; and if it will in any way serve you, you may
  • crumple me up like that piece of paper, and throw me on the fire. I
  • would love to die for you."
  • "Go!" she said, "Go now at once! My brain is in a whirl. I scarce know
  • what we are talking. Go; and good-night; and oh, may you come safe!"
  • Once back in his own room a fearful joy possessed the young man's mind;
  • and as he recalled her face struck suddenly white and the broken
  • utterance of her last words, his heart at once exulted and misgave him.
  • Love had indeed looked upon him with a tragic mask; and yet what
  • mattered, since at least it was love--since at least she was commoved at
  • their division? He got to bed with these parti-coloured thoughts; passed
  • from one dream to another all night long, the white face of Teresa still
  • haunting him, wrung with unspoken thoughts; and, in the grey of the
  • dawn, leaped suddenly out of bed, in a kind of horror. It was already
  • time for him to rise. He dressed, made his breakfast on cold food that
  • had been laid for him the night before; and went down to the room of his
  • idol for the box. The door was open; a strange disorder reigned within;
  • the furniture all pushed aside, and the centre of the room left bare of
  • impediment, as though for the pacing of a creature with a tortured mind.
  • There lay the box, however, and upon the lid a paper with these words:
  • "Harry, I hope to be back before you go. Teresa."
  • He sat down to wait, laying his watch before him on the table. She had
  • called him Harry: that should be enough, he thought, to fill the day
  • with sunshine; and yet somehow the sight of that disordered room still
  • poisoned his enjoyment. The door of the bedchamber stood gaping open;
  • and though he turned aside his eyes as from a sacrilege, he could not
  • but observe the bed had not been slept in. He was still pondering what
  • this should mean, still trying to convince himself that all was well,
  • when the moving needle of his watch summoned him to set forth without
  • delay. He was before all things a man of his word; ran round to
  • Southampton Row to fetch a cab; and, taking the box on the front seat,
  • drove off towards the terminus.
  • The streets were scarcely awake; there was little to amuse the eye; and
  • the young man's attention centred on the dumb companion of his drive. A
  • card was nailed upon one side, bearing the superscription: "Miss Doolan,
  • passenger to Dublin. Glass. With care." He thought with a sentimental
  • shock that the fair idol of his heart was perhaps driven to adopt the
  • name of Doolan; and, as he still studied the card, he was aware of a
  • deadly black depression settling steadily upon his spirits. It was in
  • vain for him to contend against the tide; in vain that he shook himself
  • or tried to whistle: the sense of some impending blow was not to be
  • averted. He looked out; in the long, empty streets, the cab pursued its
  • way without a trace of any follower. He gave ear; and over and above the
  • jolting of the wheels upon the road, he was conscious of a certain
  • regular and quiet sound that seemed to issue from the box. He put his
  • ear to the cover; at one moment, he seemed to perceive a delicate
  • ticking; the next, the sound was gone, nor could his closest hearkening
  • recapture it. He laughed at himself; but still the gloom continued; and
  • it was with more than the common relief of an arrival, that he leaped
  • from the cab before the station.
  • Probably enough on purpose, Teresa had named an hour some thirty minutes
  • earlier than needful; and when Harry had given the box into the charge
  • of a porter, who set it on a truck, he proceeded briskly to pace the
  • platform. Presently the bookstall opened; and the young man was looking
  • at the books when he was seized by the arm. He turned and, though she
  • was closely veiled, at once recognised the Fair Cuban.
  • "Where is it?" she asked; and the sound of her voice surprised him.
  • "It?" he said. "What?"
  • "The box. Have it put on a cab instantly. I am in fearful haste."
  • He hurried to obey, marvelling at these changes, but not daring to
  • trouble her with questions; and when the cab had been brought round, and
  • the box mounted on the front, she passed a little way off upon the
  • pavement and beckoned him to follow.
  • "Now," said she, still in those mechanical and hushed tones that had at
  • first affected him, "you must go on to Holyhead alone; go on board the
  • steamer; and if you see a man in tartan trousers and a pink scarf, say
  • to him that all has been put off: if not," she added, with a sobbing
  • sigh, "it does not matter. So, good-bye."
  • "Teresa," said Harry, "get into your cab, and I will go along with you.
  • You are in some distress, perhaps some danger; and till I know the
  • whole, not even you can make me leave you."
  • "You will not?" she asked. "Oh, Harry, it were better!"
  • "I will not," said Harry stoutly.
  • She looked at him for a moment through her veil; took his hand suddenly
  • and sharply, but more as if in fear than tenderness; and, still holding
  • him, walked to the cab-door.
  • "Where are we to drive?" asked Harry.
  • "Home, quickly," she answered; "double fare!" And as soon as they had
  • both mounted to their places, the vehicle crazily trundled from the
  • station.
  • Teresa leaned back in a corner. The whole way Harry could perceive her
  • tears to flow under her veil; but she vouchsafed no explanation. At the
  • door of the house in Queen Square, both alighted; and the cabman lowered
  • the box, which Harry, glad to display his strength, received upon his
  • shoulders.
  • "Let the man take it," she whispered. "Let the man take it."
  • "I will do no such thing," said Harry cheerfully; and having paid the
  • fare, he followed Teresa through the door which she had opened with her
  • key. The landlady and maid were gone upon their morning errands; the
  • house was empty and still; and as the rattling of the cab died away down
  • Gloucester Street, and Harry continued to ascend the stair with his
  • burthen, he heard close against his shoulders the same faint and muffled
  • ticking as before. The lady, still preceding him, opened the door of her
  • room, and helped him to lower the box tenderly in the corner by the
  • window.
  • "And now," said Harry, "what is wrong?"
  • "You will not go away?" she cried, with a sudden break in her voice and
  • beating her hands together in the very agony of impatience. "Oh, Harry,
  • Harry, go away! Oh, go, and leave me to the fate that I deserve!"
  • "The fate?" repeated Harry. "What is this?"
  • "No fate," she resumed. "I do not know what I am saying. But I wish to
  • be alone. You may come back this evening, Harry; come again when you
  • like; but leave me now, only leave me now!" And then suddenly, "I have
  • an errand," she exclaimed; "you cannot refuse me that!"
  • "No," replied Harry, "you have no errand. You are in grief or danger.
  • Lift your veil and tell me what it is."
  • "Then," she said, with a sudden composure, "you leave but one course
  • open to me." And raising the veil, she showed him a countenance from
  • which every trace of colour had fled, eyes marred with weeping, and a
  • brow on which resolve had conquered fear. "Harry," she began, "I am not
  • what I seem."
  • "You have told me that before," said Harry, "several times."
  • "Oh, Harry, Harry," she cried, "how you shame me! But this is the God's
  • truth. I am a dangerous and wicked girl. My name is Clara Luxmore. I was
  • never nearer Cuba than Penzance. From first to last I have cheated and
  • played with you. And what I am I dare not even name to you in words.
  • Indeed, until to-day, until the sleepless watches of last night, I never
  • grasped the depth and foulness of my guilt."
  • The young man looked upon her aghast. Then a generous current poured
  • along his veins. "That is all one," he said. "If you be all you say, you
  • have the greater need of me."
  • "Is it possible," she exclaimed, "that I have schemed in vain? And will
  • nothing drive you from this house of death?"
  • "Of death?" he echoed.
  • "Death!" she cried: "death! In that box which you have dragged about
  • London and carried on your defenceless shoulders, sleep, at the
  • trigger's mercy, the destroying energies of dynamite."
  • "My God!" cried Harry.
  • "Ah!" she continued wildly, "will you flee now? At any moment you may
  • hear the click that sounds the ruin of this building. I was sure M'Guire
  • was wrong; this morning, before day, I flew to Zero; he confirmed my
  • fears; I beheld you, my beloved Harry, fall a victim to my own
  • contrivances. I knew then I loved you--Harry, will you go now? Will you
  • not spare me this unwilling crime?"
  • Harry remained speechless, his eyes fixed upon the box: at last he
  • turned to her.
  • "Is it," he asked hoarsely, "an infernal machine?"
  • Her lips formed the word "yes"; which her voice refused to utter.
  • With fearful curiosity, he drew near and bent above the box; in that
  • still chamber, the ticking was distinctly audible; and at the measured
  • sound, the blood flowed back upon his heart.
  • "For whom?" he asked.
  • "What matters it?" she cried, seizing him by the arm. "If you may still
  • be saved, what matter questions?"
  • "God in Heaven!" cried Harry. "And the Children's Hospital! At whatever
  • cost, this damned contrivance must be stopped!"
  • "It cannot," she gasped. "The power of man cannot avert the blow. But
  • you, Harry--you, my beloved--you may still----"
  • And then from the box that lay so quietly in the corner, a sudden catch
  • was audible, like the catch of a clock before it strikes the hour. For
  • one second, the two stared at each other with lifted brows and stony
  • eyes. Then Harry, throwing one arm over his face, with the other
  • clutched the girl to his breast and staggered against the wall.
  • A dull and startling thud resounded through the room; their eyes blinked
  • against the coming horror; and still clinging together like drowning
  • people, they fell to the floor. Then followed a prolonged and strident
  • hissing as from the indignant pit; an offensive stench seized them by
  • the throat; the room was filled with dense and choking fumes.
  • Presently these began a little to disperse: and when at length they drew
  • themselves, all limp and shaken, to a sitting posture, the first object
  • that greeted their vision was the box reposing uninjured in its corner,
  • but still leaking little wreaths of vapour round the lid.
  • "Oh, poor Zero!" cried the girl with a strange sobbing laugh. "Alas,
  • poor Zero! This will break his heart!"
  • THE SUPERFLUOUS MANSION (_concluded_)
  • Somerset ran straight upstairs; the door of the drawing-room, contrary
  • to all custom, was unlocked; and, bursting in, the young man found Zero
  • seated on a sofa in an attitude of singular dejection. Close beside him
  • stood an untasted grog, the mark of strong preoccupation. The room
  • besides was in confusion: boxes had been tumbled to and fro; the floor
  • was strewn with keys and other implements; and in the midst of this
  • disorder lay a lady's glove.
  • "I have come," cried Somerset, "to make an end of this. Either you will
  • instantly abandon all your schemes, or (cost what it may) I will
  • denounce you to the police."
  • "Ah!" replied Zero, slowly shaking his head. "You are too late, dear
  • fellow! I am already at the end of all my hopes and fallen to be a
  • laughing-stock and mockery. My reading," he added, with a gentle
  • despondency of manner, "has not been much among romances; yet I recall
  • from one a phrase that depicts my present state with critical
  • exactitude; and you behold me sitting here 'like a burst drum.'"
  • "What has befallen you?" cried Somerset.
  • "My last batch," retorted the plotter wearily, "like all the others, is
  • a hollow mockery and a fraud. In vain do I combine the elements; in vain
  • adjust the springs; and I have now arrived at such a pitch of
  • disconsideration that (except yourself, dear fellow) I do not know a
  • soul that I can face. My subordinates themselves have turned upon me.
  • What language have I heard to-day, what illiberality of sentiment, what
  • pungency of expression! She came once; I could have pardoned that, for
  • she was moved; but she returned, returned to announce to me this
  • crushing blow; and, Somerset, she was very inhumane. Yes, dear fellow, I
  • have drunk a bitter cup; the speech of females is remarkable for ...
  • well, well! Denounce me, if you will; you but denounce the dead. I am
  • extinct. It is strange how, at this supreme crisis of my life, I should
  • be haunted by quotations from works of an inexact and even fanciful
  • description; but here," he added, "is another: 'Othello's occupation's
  • gone.' Yes, dear Somerset, it is gone; I am no more a dynamiter; and
  • how, I ask you, after having tasted of these joys, am I to condescend to
  • a less glorious life?"
  • "I cannot describe how you relieve me," returned Somerset, sitting down
  • on one of several boxes that had been drawn out into the middle of the
  • floor. "I had conceived a sort of maudlin toleration for your character;
  • I have a great distaste, besides, for anything in the nature of a duty;
  • and upon both grounds, your news delights me. But I seem to perceive,"
  • he added, "a certain sound of ticking in this box."
  • "Yes," replied Zero, with the same slow weariness of manner, "I have set
  • several of them going."
  • "My God!" cried Somerset, bounding to his feet. "Machines?"
  • "Machines!" returned the plotter bitterly. "Machines indeed! I blush to
  • be their author. Alas!" he said, burying his face in his hands, "that I
  • should live to say it!"
  • "Madman!" cried Somerset, shaking him by the arm. "What am I to
  • understand? Have you, indeed, set these diabolical contrivances in
  • motion? and do we stay here to be blown up?"
  • "'Hoist with his own petard?'" returned the plotter musingly. "One more
  • quotation: strange! But indeed my brain is struck with numbness. Yes,
  • dear boy, I have, as you say, put my contrivances in motion. The one on
  • which you are sitting, I have timed for half an hour. Yon other----"
  • "Half an hour!" echoed Somerset, dancing with trepidation. "Merciful
  • heavens, in half an hour?"
  • "Dear fellow, why so much excitement?" inquired Zero. "My dynamite is
  • not more dangerous than toffy; had I an only child, I would give it him
  • to play with. You see this brick?" he continued, lifting a cake of the
  • infernal compound from the laboratory-table. "At a touch it should
  • explode, and that with such unconquerable energy as should bestrew the
  • square with ruins. Well, now, behold! I dash it on the floor."
  • Somerset sprang forward, and, with the strength of the very ecstasy of
  • terror, wrested the brick from his possession. "Heavens!" he cried,
  • wiping his brow; and then with more care than ever mother handled her
  • first-born withal, gingerly transported the explosive to the far end of
  • the apartment; the plotter, his arms once more fallen to his side,
  • dispiritedly watching him.
  • "It was entirely harmless," he sighed. "They describe it as burning like
  • tobacco."
  • "In the name of fortune," cried Somerset, "what have I done to you, or
  • what have you done to yourself, that you should persist in this insane
  • behaviour? If not for your own sake, then for mine, let us depart from
  • this doomed house, where I profess I have not the heart to leave you;
  • and then, if you will take my advice, and if your determination be
  • sincere, you will instantly quit this city, where no further occupation
  • can detain you."
  • "Such, dear fellow, was my own design," replied the plotter. "I have, as
  • you observe, no further business here; and once I have packed a little
  • bag, I shall ask you to share a frugal meal, to go with me as far as to
  • the station, and see the last of a broken-hearted man. And yet," he
  • added, looking on the boxes with a lingering regret, "I should have
  • liked to make quite certain. I cannot but suspect my underlings of some
  • mismanagement; it may be fond, but yet I cherish that idea: it may be
  • the weakness of a man of science, but yet," he cried, rising into some
  • energy, "I will never, I cannot if I try, believe that my poor dynamite
  • has had fair usage!"
  • "Five minutes!" said Somerset, glancing with horror at the timepiece.
  • "If you do not instantly buckle to your bag, I leave you."
  • "A few necessaries," returned Zero, "only a few necessaries, dear
  • Somerset, and you behold me ready."
  • He passed into the bedroom, and after an interval which seemed to draw
  • out into eternity for his unfortunate companion, he returned, bearing in
  • his hand an open Gladstone bag. His movements were still horribly
  • deliberate, and his eyes lingered gloatingly on his dear boxes, as he
  • moved to and fro about the drawing-room, gathering a few small trifles.
  • Last of all, he lifted one of the squares of dynamite.
  • "Put that down!" cried Somerset. "If what you say be true, you have no
  • call to load yourself with that ungodly contraband."
  • "Merely a curiosity, dear boy," he said persuasively, and slipped the
  • brick into his bag; "merely a memento of the past--ah, happy past,
  • bright past! You will not take a touch of spirits? no? I find you very
  • abstemious. Well," he added, "if you have really no curiosity to await
  • the event----"
  • "I!" cried Somerset. "My blood boils to get away."
  • "Well, then," said Zero, "I am ready; I would I could say, willing; but
  • thus to leave the scene of my sublime endeavours----"
  • Without further parley, Somerset seized him by the arm, and dragged him
  • downstairs; the hall-door shut with a clang on the deserted mansion; and
  • still towing his laggardly companion, the young man sped across the
  • square in the Oxford Street direction. They had not yet passed the
  • corner of the garden, when they were arrested by a dull thud of an
  • extraordinary amplitude of sound, accompanied and followed by a
  • shattering _fracas_. Somerset turned in time to see the mansion rend in
  • twain, vomit forth flames and smoke, and instantly collapse into its
  • cellars. At the same moment, he was thrown violently to the ground. His
  • first glance was towards Zero. The plotter had but reeled against the
  • garden rail; he stood there, the Gladstone bag clasped tight upon his
  • heart, his whole face radiant with relief and gratitude; and the young
  • man heard him murmur to himself: "_Nunc dimittis, nunc dimittis!_"
  • The consternation of the populace was indescribable: the whole of Golden
  • Square was alive with men, women, and children, running wildly to and
  • fro, and, like rabbits in a warren, dashing in and out of the house
  • doors, and under favour of this confusion, Somerset dragged away the
  • lingering plotter.
  • "It was grand," he continued to murmur: "it was indescribably grand. Ah,
  • green Erin, green Erin, what a day of glory! and, oh, my calumniated
  • dynamite, how triumphantly hast thou prevailed!"
  • Suddenly a shade crossed his face; and pausing in the middle of the
  • footway, he consulted the dial of his watch.
  • "Good God!" he cried, "how mortifying! seven minutes too early! The
  • dynamite surpassed my hopes; but the clockwork, fickle clockwork, has
  • once more betrayed me. Alas, can there be no success unmixed with
  • failure? and must even this red-letter day be chequered by a shadow?"
  • "Incomparable ass!" said Somerset, "what have you done? Blown up the
  • house of an unoffending old lady, and the whole earthly property of the
  • only person who is fool enough to befriend you!"
  • "You do not understand these matters," replied Zero, with an air of
  • great dignity. "This will shake England to the heart. Gladstone, the
  • truculent old man, will quail before the pointing finger of revenge. And
  • now that my dynamite is proved effective----"
  • "Heavens, you remind me!" ejaculated Somerset. "That brick in your bag
  • must be instantly disposed of. But how? If we could throw it in the
  • river----"
  • "A torpedo," cried Zero, brightening, "a torpedo in the Thames! Superb,
  • dear fellow! I recognise in you the marks of an accomplished anarch."
  • "True!" returned Somerset. "It cannot so be done; and there is no help
  • but you must carry it away with you. Come on, then, and let me at once
  • consign you to a train."
  • "Nay, nay, dear boy," protested Zero. "There is now no call for me to
  • leave. My character is now reinstated; my fame brightens; this is the
  • best thing I have done yet; and I see from here the ovations that await
  • the author of the Golden Square Atrocity."
  • "My young friend," returned the other, "I give you your choice. I will
  • either see you safe on board a train or safe in gaol."
  • "Somerset, this is unlike you!" said the chemist. "You surprise me,
  • Somerset."
  • "I shall considerably more surprise you at the next police office,"
  • returned Somerset, with something bordering on rage. "For on one point
  • my mind is settled: either I see you packed off to America, brick and
  • all, or else you dine in prison."
  • "You have perhaps neglected one point," returned the unoffended Zero:
  • "for, speaking as a philosopher, I fail to see what means you can employ
  • to force me. The will, my dear fellow----"
  • "Now, see here," interrupted Somerset. "You are ignorant of anything but
  • science, which I can never regard as being truly knowledge; I, sir, have
  • studied life; and allow me to inform you that I have but to raise my
  • hand and voice--here in this street--and the mob----"
  • "Good God in Heaven, Somerset," cried Zero, turning deadly white and
  • stopping in his walk, "great God in Heaven, what words are these? Oh,
  • not in jest, not even in jest, should they be used! The brutal mob, the
  • savage passions.... Somerset, for God's sake, a public-house!"
  • Somerset considered him with freshly awakened curiosity. "This is very
  • interesting," said he. "You recoil from such a death?"
  • "Who would not?" asked the plotter.
  • "And to be blown up by dynamite," inquired the young man, "doubtless
  • strikes you as a form of euthanasia?"
  • "Pardon me," returned Zero: "I own, and, since I have braved it daily in
  • my professional career, I own it even with pride: it is a death
  • unusually distasteful to the mind of man."
  • "One more question," said Somerset; "you object to Lynch Law? why?"
  • "It is assassination," said the plotter calmly; but with eyebrows a
  • little lifted, as in wonder at the question.
  • "Shake hands with me," cried Somerset. "Thank God, I have now no
  • ill-feeling left; and though you cannot conceive how I burn to see you
  • on the gallows, I can quite contentedly assist at your departure."
  • "I do not very clearly take your meaning," said Zero, "but I am sure you
  • mean kindly. As to my departure, there is another point to be
  • considered. I have neglected to supply myself with funds; my little all
  • has perished in what history will love to relate under the name of the
  • Golden Square Atrocity; and without what is coarsely if vigorously
  • called stamps, you must be well aware it is impossible for me to pass
  • the ocean."
  • "For me," said Somerset, "you have now ceased to be a man. You have no
  • more claim upon me than a door-scraper; but the touching confusion of
  • your mind disarms me from extremities. Until to-day, I always thought
  • stupidity was funny; I now know otherwise; and when I look upon your
  • idiot face, laughter rises within me like a deadly sickness, and the
  • tears spring up into my eyes as bitter as blood. What should this
  • portend? I begin to doubt; I am losing faith in scepticism. Is it
  • possible," he cried, in a kind of horror of himself--"is it conceivable
  • that I believe in right and wrong? Already I have found myself, with
  • incredulous surprise, to be the victim of a prejudice of personal
  • honour. And must this change proceed? Have you robbed me of my youth?
  • Must I fall, at my time of life, into the Common Banker? But why should
  • I address that head of wood? Let this suffice. I dare not let you stay
  • among women and children; I lack the courage to denounce you, if by any
  • means I may avoid it; you have no money; well then, take mine, and go;
  • and if ever I behold your face after to-day, that day will be your
  • last."
  • "Under the circumstances," replied Zero, "I scarce see my way to refuse
  • your offer. Your expressions may pain, they cannot surprise me; I am
  • aware our point of view requires a little training, a little moral
  • hygiene, if I may so express it; and one of the points that has always
  • charmed me in your character is this delightful frankness. As for the
  • small advance, it shall be remitted you from Philadelphia."
  • "It shall not," said Somerset.
  • "Dear fellow, you do not understand," returned the plotter. "I shall now
  • be received with fresh confidence by my superiors; and my experiments
  • will be no longer hampered by pitiful conditions of the purse."
  • "What I am now about, sir, is a crime," replied Somerset; "and were you
  • to roll in wealth like Vanderbilt, I should scorn to be reimbursed of
  • money I had so scandalously misapplied. Take it, and keep it. By George,
  • sir, three days of you have transformed me to an ancient Roman."
  • With these words, Somerset hailed a passing hansom; and the pair were
  • driven rapidly to the railway terminus. There, an oath having been
  • extracted, the money changed hands.
  • "And now," said Somerset, "I have bought back my honour with every penny
  • I possess. And I thank God, though there is nothing before me but
  • starvation, I am free from all entanglement with Mr. Zero Pumpernickel
  • Jones."
  • "To starve?" cried Zero. "Dear fellow, I cannot endure the thought."
  • "Take your ticket!" returned Somerset.
  • "I think you display temper," said Zero.
  • "Take your ticket," reiterated the young man.
  • "Well," said the plotter, as he returned, ticket in hand, "your attitude
  • is so strange and painful, that I scarce know if I should ask you to
  • shake hands."
  • "As a man, no," replied Somerset; "but I have no objection to shake
  • hands with you, as I might with a pump-well that ran poison or
  • hell-fire."
  • "This is a very cold parting," sighed the dynamiter; and still followed
  • by Somerset, he began to descend the platform. This was now bustling
  • with passengers; the train for Liverpool was just about to start,
  • another had but recently arrived; and the double tide made movement
  • difficult. As the pair reached the neighbourhood of the bookstall,
  • however, they came into an open space; and here the attention of the
  • plotter was attracted by a Standard broadside bearing the words: "Second
  • Edition: Explosion in Golden Square." His eye lighted; groping in his
  • pocket for the necessary coin, he sprang forward--his bag knocked
  • sharply on the corner of the stall--and instantly, with a formidable
  • report, the dynamite exploded. When the smoke cleared away the stall was
  • seen much shattered, and the stall-keeper running forth in terror from
  • the ruins; but of the Irish patriot or the Gladstone bag no adequate
  • remains were to be found.
  • In the first scramble of the alarm, Somerset made good his escape, and
  • came out upon the Euston Road, his head spinning, his body sick with
  • hunger, and his pockets destitute of coin. Yet as he continued to walk
  • the pavements, he wondered to find in his heart a sort of peaceful
  • exultation, a great content, a sense, as it were, of divine presence and
  • the kindliness of fate; and he was able to tell himself that even if
  • the worst befell, he could now starve with a certain comfort since Zero
  • was expunged.
  • Late in the afternoon he found himself at the door of Mr. Godall's shop;
  • and being quite unmanned by his long fast, and scarce considering what
  • he did, he opened the glass door and entered.
  • "Ha!" said Mr. Godall, "Mr. Somerset! Well, have you met with an
  • adventure? Have you the promised story? Sit down, if you please; suffer
  • me to choose you a cigar of my own special brand; and reward me with a
  • narrative in your best style."
  • "I must not take a cigar," said Somerset.
  • "Indeed!" said Mr. Godall. "But now I come to look at you more closely,
  • I perceive that you are changed. My poor boy, I hope there is nothing
  • wrong?"
  • Somerset burst into tears.
  • EPILOGUE OF THE CIGAR DIVAN
  • On a certain day of lashing rain in the December of last year, and
  • between the hours of nine and ten in the morning, Mr. Edward Challoner
  • pioneered himself under an umbrella to the door of the Cigar Divan in
  • Rupert Street. It was a place he had visited but once before: the memory
  • of what had followed on that visit and the fear of Somerset having
  • prevented his return. Even now, he looked in before he entered; but the
  • shop was free of customers.
  • The young man behind the counter was so intently writing in a penny
  • version-book, that he paid no heed to Challoner's arrival. On a second
  • glance, it seemed to the latter that he recognised him.
  • "By Jove," he thought, "unquestionably Somerset!"
  • And though this was the very man he had been so sedulously careful to
  • avoid, his unexplained position at the receipt of custom changed
  • distaste to curiosity.
  • "'Or opulent rotunda strike the sky,'" said the shopman to himself, in
  • the tone of one considering a verse. "I suppose it would be too much to
  • say 'orotunda,' and yet how noble it were! 'Or opulent orotunda strike
  • the sky.' But that is the bitterness of arts; you see a good effect, and
  • some nonsense about sense continually intervenes."
  • "Somerset, my dear fellow," said Challoner, "is this a masquerade?"
  • "What? Challoner!" cried the shopman. "I am delighted to see you. One
  • moment, till I finish the octave of my sonnet: only the octave." And
  • with a friendly waggle of the hand, he once more buried himself in the
  • commerce of the Muses. "I say," he said presently, looking up, "you seem
  • in wonderful preservation: how about the hundred pounds?"
  • "I have made a small inheritance from a great aunt in Wales," replied
  • Challoner modestly.
  • "Ah," said Somerset, "I very much doubt the legitimacy of inheritance.
  • The State, in my view, should collar it. I am now going through a stage
  • of socialism and poetry," he added apologetically, as one who spoke of a
  • course of medicinal waters.
  • "And are you really the person of the--establishment?" inquired
  • Challoner, deftly evading the word "shop."
  • "A vendor, sir, a vendor," returned the other, pocketing his poesy. "I
  • help old Happy and Glorious. Can I offer you a weed?"
  • "Well, I scarcely like ..." began Challoner.
  • "Nonsense, my dear fellow," cried the shopman. "We are very proud of the
  • business; and the old man, let me inform you, besides being the most
  • egregious of created beings from the point of view of ethics, is
  • literally sprung from the loins of kings. '_De Godall je suis le
  • fervent._' There is only one Godall.--By the way," he added, as
  • Challoner lit his cigar, "how did you get on with the detective trade?"
  • "I did not try," said Challoner curtly.
  • "Ah, well, I did," returned Somerset, "and made the most incomparable
  • mess of it; lost all my money and fairly covered myself with odium and
  • ridicule. There is more in that business, Challoner, than meets the eye;
  • there is more, in fact, in all businesses. You must believe in them, or
  • get up the belief that you believe. Hence," he added, "the recognised
  • inferiority of the plumber, for no one could believe in plumbing."
  • "_A propos_," asked Challoner, "do you still paint?"
  • "Not now," replied Paul; "but I think of taking up the violin."
  • Challoner's eye, which had been somewhat restless since the trade of the
  • detective had been named, now rested for a moment on the columns of the
  • morning paper, where it lay spread upon the counter.
  • "By Jove," he cried, "that's odd!"
  • "What is odd?" asked Paul.
  • "Oh, nothing," returned the other: "only I once met a person called
  • M'Guire."
  • "So did I!" cried Somerset. "Is there anything about him?"
  • Challoner read as follows: "_Mysterious death in Stepney._ An inquest
  • was held yesterday on the body of Patrick M'Guire, described as a
  • carpenter. Dr. Dovering stated that he had for some time treated the
  • deceased as a dispensary patient, for sleeplessness, loss of appetite,
  • and nervous depression. There was no cause of death to be found. He
  • would say the deceased had sunk. Deceased was not a temperate man, which
  • doubtless accelerated death. Deceased complained of dumb ague, but
  • witness had never been able to detect any positive disease. He did not
  • know that he had any family. He regarded him as a person of unsound
  • intellect, who believed himself a member and the victim of some secret
  • society. If he were to hazard an opinion, he would say deceased had died
  • of fear."
  • "And the doctor would be right," cried Somerset; "and my dear Challoner,
  • I am so relieved to hear of his demise, that I will----. Well, after
  • all," he added, "poor devil, he was well served."
  • The door at this moment opened, and Desborough appeared upon the
  • threshold. He was wrapped in a long waterproof, imperfectly supplied
  • with buttons; his boots were full of water, his hat greasy with service;
  • and yet he wore the air of one exceeding well content with life. He was
  • hailed by the two others with exclamations of surprise and welcome.
  • "And did you try the detective business?" inquired Paul.
  • "No," returned Harry. "Oh yes, by the way, I did though: twice, and got
  • caught out both times. But I thought I should find my--my wife here?" he
  • added, with a kind of proud confusion.
  • "What? are you married?" cried Somerset.
  • "Oh yes," said Harry, "quite a long time: a month at least."
  • "Money?" asked Challoner.
  • "That's the worst of it," Desborough admitted. "We are deadly hard up.
  • But the Pri--Mr. Godall is going to do something for us. That is what
  • brings us here."
  • "Who was Mrs. Desborough?" said Challoner, in the tone of a man of
  • society.
  • "She was a Miss Luxmore," returned Harry. "You fellows will be sure to
  • like her, for she is much cleverer than I. She tells wonderful stories,
  • too; better than a book."
  • And just then the door opened, and Mrs. Desborough entered. Somerset
  • cried out aloud to recognise the young lady of the Superfluous Mansion,
  • and Challoner fell back a step and dropped his cigar as he beheld the
  • sorceress of Chelsea.
  • "What!" cried Harry, "do you both know my wife?"
  • "I believe I have seen her," said Somerset, a little wildly.
  • "I think I have met the gentleman," said Mrs. Desborough sweetly; "but I
  • cannot imagine where it was."
  • "Oh no," cried Somerset fervently; "I have no notion--I cannot
  • conceive--where it could have been. Indeed," he continued, growing in
  • emphasis, "I think it highly probable that it's a mistake."
  • "And you, Challoner?" asked Harry, "you seemed to recognise her, too."
  • "These are both friends of yours, Harry?" said the lady. "Delighted, I
  • am sure. I do not remember to have met Mr. Challoner."
  • Challoner was very red in the face, perhaps from having groped after his
  • cigar. "I do not remember to have had the pleasure," he responded
  • huskily.
  • "Well, and Mr. Godall?" asked Mrs. Desborough.
  • "Are you the lady that has an appointment with old ..." began Somerset,
  • and paused, blushing. "Because if so," he resumed, "I was to announce
  • you at once."
  • And the shopman raised a curtain, opened a door, and passed into a small
  • pavilion which had been added to the back of the house. On the roof, the
  • rain resounded musically. The walls were lined with maps and prints and
  • a few works of reference. Upon a table was a large-scale map of Egypt
  • and the Soudan, and another of Tonkin, on which, by the aid of coloured
  • pins, the progress of the different wars was being followed day by day.
  • A light, refreshing odour of the most delicate tobacco hung upon the
  • air; and a fire, not of foul coal, but of clear-flaming resinous
  • billets, chattered upon silver dogs. In this elegant and plain
  • apartment, Mr. Godall sat in a morning muse, placidly gazing at the fire
  • and hearkening to the rain upon the roof.
  • "Ha, my dear Mr. Somerset," said he, "and have you since last night
  • adopted any fresh political principle?"
  • "The lady, sir," said Somerset, with another blush.
  • "You have seen her, I believe?" returned Mr. Godall; and on Somerset's
  • replying in the affirmative: "You will excuse me, my dear sir," he
  • resumed, "if I offer you a hint. I think it not improbable this lady may
  • desire entirely to forget the past. From one gentleman to another, no
  • more words are necessary."
  • A moment after, he had received Mrs. Desborough with that grave and
  • touching urbanity that so well became him.
  • "I am pleased, madam, to welcome you to my poor house," he said; "and
  • shall be still more so, if what were else a barren courtesy and a
  • pleasure personal to myself, shall prove to be of serious benefit to you
  • and Mr. Desborough."
  • "Your highness," replied Clara, "I must begin with thanks; it is like
  • what I have heard of you, that you should thus take up the case of the
  • unfortunate; and as for my Harry, he is worthy of all that you can do."
  • She paused.
  • "But for yourself?" suggested Mr. Godall--"it was thus you were about to
  • continue, I believe."
  • "You take the words out of my mouth," she said. "For myself, it is
  • different."
  • "I am not here to be a judge of men," replied the prince; "still less of
  • women. I am now a private person like yourself and many million others;
  • but I am one who still fights upon the side of quiet. Now, madam, you
  • know better than I, and God better than you, what you have done to
  • mankind in the past; I pause not to inquire; it is with the future I
  • concern myself, it is for the future I demand security. I would not
  • willingly put arms into the hands of a disloyal combatant; and I dare
  • not restore to wealth one of the levyers of a private and a barbarous
  • war. I speak with some severity, and yet I pick my terms. I tell myself
  • continually that you are a woman; and a voice continually reminds me of
  • the children whose lives and limbs you have endangered. A woman," he
  • repeated solemnly--"and children. Possibly, madam, when you are yourself
  • a mother, you will feel the bite of that antithesis: possibly when you
  • kneel at night beside a cradle, a fear will fall upon you, heavier than
  • any shame; and when your child lies in the pain and danger of disease,
  • you shall hesitate to kneel before your Maker."
  • "You look at the fault," she said, "and not at the excuse. Has your own
  • heart never leaped within you at some story of oppression? But, alas,
  • no! for you were born upon a throne."
  • "I was born of woman," said the prince; "I came forth from my mother's
  • agony, helpless as a wren, like other nurselings. This, which you
  • forgot, I have still faithfully remembered. Is it not one of your
  • English poets, that looked abroad upon the earth and saw vast
  • circumvallations, innumerable troops manoeuvring, warships at sea, and a
  • great dust of battles on shore; and, casting anxiously about for what
  • should be the cause of so many and painful preparations, spied at last,
  • in the centre of all, a mother and her babe? These, madam, are my
  • politics; and the verses, which are by Mr. Coventry Patmore, I have
  • caused to be translated into the Bohemian tongue. Yes, these are my
  • politics: to change what we can, to better what we can; but still to
  • bear in mind that man is but a devil weakly fettered by some generous
  • beliefs and impositions; and for no word however nobly sounding, and no
  • cause however just and pious, to relax the stricture of these bonds."
  • There was a silence of a moment.
  • "I fear, madam," resumed the prince, "that I but weary you. My views are
  • formal like myself; and like myself, they also begin to grow old. But I
  • must still trouble you for some reply."
  • "I can say but one thing," said Mrs. Desborough: "I love my husband."
  • "It is a good answer," returned the prince; "and you name a good
  • influence, but one that need not be conterminous with life."
  • "I will not play at pride with such a man as you," she answered. "What
  • do you ask of me? not protestations, I am sure. What shall I say? I have
  • done much that I cannot defend and that I would not do again. Can I say
  • more? Yes: I can say this: I never abused myself with the muddle-headed
  • fairy tales of politics. I was at least prepared to meet reprisals.
  • While I was levying war myself--or levying murder, if you choose the
  • plainer term--I never accused my adversaries of assassination. I never
  • felt or feigned a righteous horror, when a price was put upon my life by
  • those whom I attacked. I never called the policeman a hireling. I may
  • have been a criminal, in short; but I never was a fool."
  • "Enough, madam," returned the prince: "more than enough! Your words are
  • most reviving to my spirits; for in this age, when even the assassin is
  • a sentimentalist, there is no virtue greater in my eyes than
  • intellectual clarity. Suffer me then to ask you to retire; for by the
  • signal of that bell, I perceive my old friend, your mother, to be close
  • at hand. With her I promise you to do my utmost."
  • And as Mrs. Desborough returned to the Divan, the prince, opening a door
  • upon the other side, admitted Mrs. Luxmore.
  • "Madam, and my very good friend," said he, "is my face so much changed
  • that you no longer recognise Prince Florizel in Mr. Godall?"
  • "To be sure!" she cried, looking at him through her glasses. "I have
  • always regarded your highness as a perfect man; and in your altered
  • circumstances, of which I have already heard with deep regret, I will
  • beg you to consider my respect increased instead of lessened."
  • "I have found it so," returned the prince, "with every class of my
  • acquaintance. But, madam, I pray you to be seated. My business is of a
  • delicate order, and regards your daughter."
  • "In that case," said Mrs. Luxmore, "you may save yourself the trouble of
  • speaking, for I have fully made up my mind to have nothing to do with
  • her. I will not hear one word in her defence; but as I value nothing so
  • particularly as the virtue of justice, I think it my duty to explain to
  • you the grounds of my complaint. She deserted me, her natural protector;
  • for years she has consorted with the most disreputable persons; and, to
  • fill the cup of her offence, she has recently married. I refuse to see
  • her, or the being to whom she has linked herself. One hundred and twenty
  • pounds a year, I have always offered her: I offer it again. It is what I
  • had myself when I was her age."
  • "Very well, madam," said the prince; "and be that so! But to touch upon
  • another matter: what was the income of the Reverend Bernard Fanshawe?"
  • "My father?" asked the spirited old lady. "I believe he had seven
  • hundred pounds in the year."
  • "You were one, I think, of several?" pursued the prince.
  • "Of four," was the reply. "We were four daughters; and, painful as the
  • admission is to make, a more detestable family could scarce be found in
  • England."
  • "Dear me!" said the prince. "And you, madam, have an income of eight
  • thousand?"
  • "Not more than five," returned the old lady; "but where on earth are you
  • conducting me?"
  • "To an allowance of one thousand pounds a year," replied Florizel,
  • smiling. "For I must not suffer you to take your father for a rule. He
  • was poor, you are rich. He had many calls upon his poverty: there are
  • none upon your wealth. And indeed, madam, if you will let me touch this
  • matter with a needle, there is but one point in common to your two
  • positions: that each had a daughter more remarkable for liveliness than
  • duty."
  • "I have been entrapped into this house," said the old lady, getting to
  • her feet. "But it shall not avail. Not all the tobacconists in
  • Europe...."
  • "Ah, madam," interrupted Florizel, "before what is referred to as my
  • fall, you had not used such language! And since you so much object to
  • the simple industry by which I live, let me give you a friendly hint. If
  • you will not consent to support your daughter, I shall be constrained to
  • place that lady behind my counter, where I doubt not she would prove a
  • great attraction; and your son-in-law shall have a livery and run the
  • errands. With such young blood my business might be doubled, and I might
  • be bound, in common gratitude, to place the name of Luxmore beside that
  • of Godall."
  • "Your highness," said the old lady, "I have been very rude, and you are
  • very cunning. I suppose the minx is on the premises. Produce her."
  • "Let us rather observe them unperceived," said the prince; and so saying
  • he rose and quietly drew back the curtain.
  • Mrs. Desborough sat with her back to them on a chair; Somerset and Harry
  • were hanging on her words with extraordinary interest; Challoner,
  • alleging some affair, had long ago withdrawn from the detested
  • neighbourhood of the enchantress.
  • "At that moment," Mrs. Desborough was saying, "Mr. Gladstone detected
  • the features of his cowardly assailant. A cry rose to his lips: a cry of
  • mingled triumph...."
  • "That is Mr. Somerset!" interrupted the spirited old lady, in the
  • highest note of her register. "Mr. Somerset, what have you done with my
  • house-property?"
  • "Madam," said the prince, "let it be mine to give the explanation; and
  • in the meanwhile, welcome your daughter."
  • "Well, Clara, how do you do?" said Mrs. Luxmore. "It appears I am to
  • give you an allowance. So much the better for you. As for Mr. Somerset,
  • I am very ready to have an explanation; for the whole affair, though
  • costly, was eminently humorous. And at any rate," she added, nodding to
  • Paul, "he is a young gentleman for whom I have a great affection, and
  • his pictures were the funniest I ever saw."
  • "I have ordered a collation," said the prince. "Mr. Somerset, as these
  • are all your friends, I propose, if you please, that you should join
  • them at table. I will take the shop."
  • STRANGE CASE OF DR. JEKYLL AND MR. HYDE
  • _TO
  • KATHARINE DE MATTOS_
  • _It's ill to loose the bands that God decreed to bind;
  • Still will we be the children of the heather and the wind.
  • Far away from home, O it's still for you and me
  • That the broom is blowing bonnie in the north countrie._
  • STRANGE CASE OF DR. JEKYLL AND MR. HYDE
  • STORY OF THE DOOR
  • Mr. Utterson the lawyer was a man of a rugged countenance, that was
  • never lighted by a smile; cold, scanty and embarrassed in discourse;
  • backward in sentiment; lean, long, dusty, dreary, and yet somehow
  • lovable. At friendly meetings, and when the wine was to his taste,
  • something eminently human beaconed from his eye; something indeed which
  • never found its way into his talk, but which spoke not only in these
  • silent symbols of the after-dinner face, but more often and loudly in
  • the acts of his life. He was austere with himself; drank gin when he was
  • alone, to mortify a taste for vintages; and though he enjoyed the
  • theatre, had not crossed the doors of one for twenty years. But he had
  • an approved tolerance for others; sometimes wondering, almost with envy,
  • at the high pressure of spirits involved in their misdeeds; and in any
  • extremity inclined to help rather than to reprove. "I incline to Cain's
  • heresy," he used to say quaintly: "I let my brother go to the devil in
  • his own way." In this character, it was frequently his fortune to be the
  • last reputable acquaintance and the last good influence in the lives of
  • down-going men. And to such as these, so long as they came about his
  • chambers, he never marked a shade of change in his demeanour.
  • No doubt the feat was easy to Mr. Utterson; for he was undemonstrative
  • at the best, and even his friendships seemed to be founded in a similar
  • catholicity of good-nature. It is the mark of a modest man to accept his
  • friendly circle ready-made from the hands of opportunity; and that was
  • the lawyer's way. His friends were those of his own blood, or those whom
  • he had known the longest; his affections, like ivy, were the growth of
  • time, they implied no aptness in the object. Hence, no doubt, the bond
  • that united him to Mr. Richard Enfield, his distant kinsman, the
  • well-known man about town. It was a nut to crack for many, what these
  • two could see in each other or what subject they could find in common.
  • It was reported by those who encountered them in their Sunday walks that
  • they said nothing, looked singularly dull, and would hail with obvious
  • relief the appearance of a friend. For all that, the two men put the
  • greatest store by these excursions, counted them the chief jewel of each
  • week, and not only set aside occasions of pleasure, but even resisted
  • the calls of business, that they might enjoy them uninterrupted.
  • It chanced on one of these rambles that their way led them down a
  • by-street in a busy quarter of London. The street was small, and what is
  • called quiet, but it drove a thriving trade on the week-days. The
  • inhabitants were all doing well, it seemed, and all emulously hoping to
  • do better still, and laying out the surplus of their gains in coquetry;
  • so that the shop-fronts stood along that thoroughfare with an air of
  • invitation, like rows of smiling saleswomen. Even on Sunday, when it
  • veiled its more florid charms and lay comparatively empty of passage,
  • the street shone out in contrast to its dingy neighbourhood, like a fire
  • in a forest; and with its freshly painted shutters, well-polished
  • brasses, and general cleanliness and gaiety of note, instantly caught
  • and pleased the eye of the passenger.
  • Two doors from one corner on the left hand going east, the line was
  • broken by the entry of a court; and just at that point a certain
  • sinister block of building thrust forward its gable on the street. It
  • was two stories high; showed no window, nothing but a door on the lower
  • story and a blind forehead of discoloured wall on the upper; and bore in
  • every feature the marks of prolonged and sordid negligence. The door,
  • which was equipped with neither bell nor knocker, was blistered and
  • distained. Tramps slouched into the recess and struck matches on the
  • panels; children kept shop upon the steps; the schoolboy had tried his
  • knife on the mouldings; and for close on a generation no one had
  • appeared to drive away these random visitors or to repair their ravages.
  • Mr. Enfield and the lawyer were on the other side of the by-street, but
  • when they came abreast of the entry, the former lifted up his cane and
  • pointed.
  • "Did you ever remark that door?" he asked; and when his companion had
  • replied in the affirmative, "it is connected in my mind," added he,
  • "with a very odd story."
  • "Indeed?" said Mr. Utterson, with a slight change of voice, "and what
  • was that?"
  • "Well, it was this way," returned Mr. Enfield: "I was coming home from
  • some place at the end of the world, about three o'clock of a black
  • winter morning, and my way lay through a part of town where there was
  • literally nothing to be seen but lamps. Street after street, and all the
  • folks asleep--street after street, all lighted up as if for a procession
  • and all as empty as a church--till at last I got into that state of mind
  • when a man listens and listens and begins to long for the sight of a
  • policeman. All at once I saw two figures: one a little man who was
  • stumping along eastward at a good walk, and the other a girl of maybe
  • eight or ten, who was running as hard as she was able down a cross
  • street. Well, sir, the two ran into one another naturally enough at the
  • corner; and then came the horrible part of the thing; for the man
  • trampled calmly over the child's body and left her screaming on the
  • ground. It sounds nothing to hear, but it was hellish to see. It wasn't
  • like a man; it was like some damned Juggernaut. I gave a view-holloa,
  • took to my heels, collared my gentleman, and brought him back to where
  • there was already quite a group about the screaming child. He was
  • perfectly cool, and made no resistance, but gave me one look so ugly
  • that it brought out the sweat on me like running. The people who had
  • turned out were the girl's own family; and pretty soon, the doctor, for
  • whom she had been sent, put in his appearance. Well, the child was not
  • much the worse, more frightened, according to the Sawbones; and there
  • you might have supposed would be an end to it. But there was one curious
  • circumstance. I had taken a loathing to my gentleman at first sight. So
  • had the child's family, which was only natural. But the doctor's case
  • was what struck me. He was the usual cut-and-dry apothecary, of no
  • particular age and colour, with a strong Edinburgh accent, and about as
  • emotional as a bagpipe. Well, sir, he was like the rest of us; every
  • time he looked at my prisoner, I saw that Sawbones turn sick and white
  • with the desire to kill him. I knew what was in his mind, just as he
  • knew what was in mine; and killing being out of the question, we did the
  • next best. We told the man we could and would make such a scandal out of
  • this as should make his name stink from one end of London to the other.
  • If he had any friends or any credit, we undertook that he should lose
  • them. And all the time, as we were pitching it in red-hot, we were
  • keeping the women off him as best we could, for they were as wild as
  • harpies. I never saw a circle of such hateful faces; and there was the
  • man in the middle, with a kind of black sneering coolness--frightened,
  • too, I could see that--but carrying it off, sir, really like Satan. 'If
  • you choose to make capital out of this accident,' said he, 'I am
  • naturally helpless. No gentleman but wishes to avoid a scene,' says he.
  • 'Name your figure.' Well, we screwed him up to a hundred pounds for the
  • child's family; he would have clearly liked to stick out; but there was
  • something about the lot of us that meant mischief, and at last he
  • struck. The next thing was to get the money; and where do you think he
  • carried us but to that place with the door?--whipped out a key, went in,
  • and presently came back with the matter of ten pounds in gold and a
  • cheque for the balance on Coutts's, drawn payable to bearer and signed
  • with a name that I can't mention, though it's one of the points of my
  • story, but it was a name at least very well known and often printed. The
  • figure was stiff; but the signature was good for more than that, if it
  • was only genuine. I took the liberty of pointing out to my gentleman
  • that the whole business looked apocryphal, and that a man does not, in
  • real life, walk into a cellar-door at four in the morning and come out
  • of it with another man's cheque for close upon a hundred pounds. But he
  • was quite easy and sneering. 'Set your mind at rest,' says he, 'I will
  • stay with you till the banks open and cash the cheque myself.' So we all
  • set off, the doctor, and the child's father, and our friend and myself,
  • and passed the rest of the night in my chambers; and next day, when we
  • had breakfasted, went in a body to the bank. I gave in the cheque
  • myself, and said I had every reason to believe it was a forgery. Not a
  • bit of it. The cheque was genuine."
  • "Tut-tut," said Mr. Utterson.
  • "I see you feel as I do," said Mr. Enfield. "Yes, it's a bad story. For
  • my man was a fellow that nobody could have to do with, a really damnable
  • man: and the person that drew the cheque is the very pink of the
  • proprieties, celebrated too, and (what makes it worse) one of your
  • fellows who do what they call good. Blackmail, I suppose; an honest man
  • paying through the nose for some of the capers of his youth. Black Mail
  • House is what I call that place with the door, in consequence. Though
  • even that, you know, is far from explaining all," he added, and with the
  • words fell into a vein of musing.
  • From this he was recalled by Mr. Utterson asking rather suddenly: "And
  • you don't know if the drawer of the cheque lives there?"
  • "A likely place, isn't it?" returned Mr. Enfield. "But I happened to
  • have noticed his address; he lives in some square or other."
  • "And you never asked about--the place with the door?" said Mr. Utterson.
  • "No, sir: I had a delicacy," was the reply. "I feel very strongly about
  • putting questions; it partakes too much of the style of the day of
  • judgment. You start a question, and it's like starting a stone. You sit
  • quietly on the top of a hill; and away the stone goes, starting others;
  • and presently some bland old bird (the last you would have thought of)
  • is knocked on the head in his own back-garden and the family have to
  • change their name. No, sir, I make it a rule of mine: the more it looks
  • like Queer Street, the less I ask."
  • "A very good rule too," said the lawyer.
  • "But I have studied the place for myself," continued Mr. Enfield. "It
  • seems scarcely a house. There is no other door, and nobody goes in or
  • out of that one but, once in a great while, the gentleman of my
  • adventure. There are three windows looking on the court on the first
  • floor; none below; the windows are always shut, but they're clean. And
  • then there is a chimney which is generally smoking; so somebody must
  • live there. Yet it's not so sure; for the buildings are so packed
  • together about that court that it's hard to say where one ends and
  • another begins."
  • The pair walked on again for a while in silence; and then, "Enfield,"
  • said Mr. Utterson, "that's a good rule of yours."
  • "Yes, I think it is," returned Enfield.
  • "But for all that," continued the lawyer, "there's one point I want to
  • ask: I want to ask the name of that man who walked over the child."
  • "Well," said Mr. Enfield, "I can't see what harm it would do. He was a
  • man of the name of Hyde."
  • "H'm," said Mr. Utterson. "What sort of a man is he to see?"
  • "He is not easy to describe. There is something wrong with his
  • appearance; something displeasing, something downright detestable. I
  • never saw a man I so disliked, and yet I scarce know why. He must be
  • deformed somewhere; he gives a strong feeling of deformity, although I
  • couldn't specify the point. He's an extraordinary-looking man, and yet
  • I really can name nothing out of the way. No, sir; I can make no hand of
  • it; I can't describe him. And it's not want of memory; for I declare I
  • can see him this moment."
  • Mr. Utterson again walked some way in silence and obviously under a
  • weight of consideration. "You are sure he used a key?" he inquired at
  • last.
  • "My dear sir----" began Enfield, surprised out of himself.
  • "Yes, I know," said Utterson; "I know it must seem strange. The fact is,
  • if I do not ask you the name of the other party it is because I know it
  • already. You see, Richard, your tale has gone home. If you have been
  • inexact in any point, you had better correct it."
  • "I think you might have warned me," returned the other with a touch of
  • sullenness. "But I have been pedantically exact, as you call it. The
  • fellow had a key; and what's more, he has it still. I saw him use it not
  • a week ago."
  • Mr. Utterson sighed deeply but said never a word; and the young man
  • presently resumed. "Here is another lesson to say nothing," said he. "I
  • am ashamed of my long tongue. Let us make a bargain never to refer to
  • this again."
  • "With all my heart," said the lawyer. "I shake hands on that, Richard."
  • SEARCH FOR MR. HYDE
  • That evening Mr. Utterson came home to his bachelor house in sombre
  • spirits and sat down to dinner without relish. It was his custom of a
  • Sunday, when this meal was over, to sit close by the fire, a volume of
  • some dry divinity on his reading-desk, until the clock of the
  • neighbouring church rang out the hour of twelve, when he would go
  • soberly and gratefully to bed. On this night, however, as soon as the
  • cloth was taken away, he took up a candle and went into his
  • business-room. There he opened his safe, took from the most private part
  • of it a document endorsed on the envelope as Dr. Jekyll's Will, and sat
  • down with a clouded brow to study its contents. The will was holograph,
  • for Mr. Utterson, though he took charge of it now that it was made, had
  • refused to lend the least assistance in the making of it; it provided
  • not only that, in case of the decease of Henry Jekyll, M.D., D.C.L.,
  • LL.D., F.R.S., &c., all his possessions were to pass into the hands of
  • his "friend and benefactor Edward Hyde," but that in case of Dr.
  • Jekyll's "disappearance or unexplained absence for any period exceeding
  • three calendar months," the said Edward Hyde should step into the said
  • Henry Jekyll's shoes without further delay and free from any burthen or
  • obligation, beyond the payment of a few small sums to the members of the
  • doctor's household. This document had long been the lawyer's eyesore. It
  • offended him both as a lawyer and as a lover of the sane and customary
  • sides of life, to whom the fanciful was the immodest. And hitherto it
  • was his ignorance of Mr. Hyde that had swelled his indignation; now, by
  • a sudden turn, it was his knowledge. It was already bad enough when the
  • name was but a name of which he could learn no more. It was worse when
  • it began to be clothed upon with detestable attributes; and out of the
  • shifting, insubstantial mists that had so long baffled his eye, there
  • leaped up the sudden, definite presentment of a fiend.
  • "I thought it was madness," he said, as he replaced the obnoxious paper
  • in the safe, "and now I begin to fear it is disgrace."
  • With that he blew out his candle, put on a great-coat, and set forth in
  • the direction of Cavendish Square, that citadel of medicine, where his
  • friend, the great Dr. Lanyon, had his house and received his crowding
  • patients. "If any one knows, it will be Lanyon," he had thought.
  • The solemn butler knew and welcomed him; he was subjected to no stage of
  • delay, but ushered direct from the door to the dining-room, where Dr.
  • Lanyon sat alone over his wine. This was a hearty, healthy, dapper,
  • red-faced gentleman, with a shock of hair prematurely white, and a
  • boisterous and decided manner. At sight of Mr. Utterson, he sprang up
  • from his chair and welcomed him with both hands. The geniality, as was
  • the way of the man, was somewhat theatrical to the eye; but it reposed
  • on genuine feeling. For these two were old friends, old mates both at
  • school and college, both thorough respecters of themselves and of each
  • other, and, what does not always follow, men who thoroughly enjoyed each
  • other's company.
  • After a little rambling talk, the lawyer led up to the subject which so
  • disagreeably preoccupied his mind.
  • "I suppose, Lanyon," said he, "you and I must be the two oldest friends
  • that Henry Jekyll has?"
  • "I wish the friends were younger," chuckled Dr. Lanyon. "But I suppose
  • we are. And what of that? I see little of him now."
  • "Indeed?" said Utterson. "I thought you had a bond of common interest."
  • "We had," was the reply. "But it is more than ten years since Henry
  • Jekyll became too fanciful for me. He began to go wrong, wrong in mind;
  • and though of course I continue to take an interest in him for old
  • sake's sake, as they say, I see and I have seen devilish little of the
  • man. Such unscientific balderdash," added the doctor, flushing suddenly
  • purple, "would have estranged Damon and Pythias."
  • This little spirt of temper was somewhat of a relief to Mr. Utterson.
  • "They have only differed on some point of science," he thought; and
  • being a man of no scientific passions (except in the matter of
  • conveyancing) he even added: "It is nothing worse than that!" He gave
  • his friend a few seconds to recover his composure, and then approached
  • the question he had come to put. "Did you ever come across a protégé of
  • his--one Hyde?" he asked.
  • "Hyde," repeated Lanyon. "No. Never heard of him. Since my time."
  • That was the amount of information that the lawyer carried back with him
  • to the great, dark bed on which he tossed to and fro, until the small
  • hours of the morning began to grow large. It was a night of little ease
  • to his toiling mind, toiling in mere darkness and besieged by questions.
  • Six o'clock struck on the bells of the church that was so conveniently
  • near to Mr. Utterson's dwelling, and still he was digging at the
  • problem. Hitherto it had touched him on the intellectual side alone; but
  • now his imagination also was engaged, or rather enslaved; and as he lay
  • and tossed in the gross darkness of the night and the curtained room,
  • Mr. Enfield's tale went by before his mind in a scroll of lighted
  • pictures. He would be aware of the great field of lamps of a nocturnal
  • city; then of the figure of a man walking swiftly; then of a child
  • running from the doctor's; and then these met, and that human Juggernaut
  • trod the child down and passed on regardless of her screams. Or else he
  • would see a room in a rich house, where his friend lay asleep, dreaming
  • and smiling at his dreams; and then the door of that room would be
  • opened, the curtains of the bed plucked apart, the sleeper recalled, and
  • lo! there would stand by his side a figure to whom power was given, and
  • even at that dead hour he must rise and do its bidding. The figure in
  • these two phases haunted the lawyer all night; and if at any time he
  • dozed over, it was but to see it glide more stealthily through sleeping
  • houses, or move the more swiftly and still the more swiftly, even to
  • dizziness, through wider labyrinths of lamplighted city, and at every
  • street-corner crush a child and leave her screaming. And still the
  • figure had no face by which he might know it; even in his dreams, it had
  • no face, or one that baffled him and melted before his eyes; and thus it
  • was that there sprang up and grew apace in the lawyer's mind a
  • singularly strong, almost an inordinate, curiosity to behold the
  • features of the real Mr. Hyde. If he could but once set eyes on him, he
  • thought the mystery would lighten and perhaps roll altogether away, as
  • was the habit of mysterious things when well examined. He might see a
  • reason for his friend's strange preference or bondage (call it which you
  • please) and even for the startling clauses of the will. And at least it
  • would be a face worth seeing: the face of a man who was without bowels
  • of mercy: a face which had but to show itself to raise up, in the mind
  • of the unimpressionable Enfield, a spirit of enduring hatred.
  • From that time forward, Mr. Utterson began to haunt the door in the
  • by-street of shops. In the morning before office hours, at noon when
  • business was plenty and time scarce, at night under the face of the
  • fogged city moon, by all lights and at all hours of solitude or
  • concourse, the lawyer was to be found on his chosen post.
  • "If he be Mr. Hyde," he had thought, "I shall be Mr. Seek."
  • And at last his patience was rewarded. It was a fine dry night; frost in
  • the air; the streets as clean as a ballroom floor; the lamps, unshaken
  • by any wind, drawing a regular pattern of light and shadow. By ten
  • o'clock, when the shops were closed, the by-street was very solitary
  • and, in spite of the low growl of London from all round, very silent.
  • Small sounds carried far; domestic sounds out of the houses were clearly
  • audible on either side of the roadway; and the rumour of the approach of
  • any passenger preceded him by a long time. Mr. Utterson had been some
  • minutes at his post, when he was aware of an odd, light footstep drawing
  • near. In the course of his nightly patrols he had long grown accustomed
  • to the quaint effect with which the footfalls of a single person, while
  • he is still a great way off, suddenly spring out distinct from the vast
  • hum and clatter of the city. Yet his attention had never before been so
  • sharply and decisively arrested; and it was with a strong, superstitious
  • prevision of success that he withdrew into the entry of the court.
  • The steps drew swiftly nearer, and swelled out suddenly louder as they
  • turned the end of the street. The lawyer, looking forth from the entry,
  • could soon see what manner of man he had to deal with. He was small and
  • very plainly dressed, and the look of him, even at that distance, went
  • somehow strongly against the watcher's inclination. But he made straight
  • for the door, crossing the roadway to save time; and as he came, he drew
  • a key from his pocket like one approaching home.
  • Mr. Utterson stepped out and touched him on the shoulder as he passed.
  • "Mr. Hyde, I think?"
  • Mr. Hyde shrank back with a hissing intake of the breath. But his fear
  • was only momentary; and though he did not look the lawyer in the face,
  • he answered coolly enough: "That is my name. What do you want?"
  • "I see you are going in," returned the lawyer. "I am an old friend of
  • Dr. Jekyll's--Mr. Utterson of Gaunt Street--you must have heard my name;
  • and meeting you so conveniently, I thought you might admit me."
  • "You will not find Dr. Jekyll; he is from home," replied Mr. Hyde,
  • blowing in the key. And then suddenly, but still without looking up,
  • "How did you know me?" he asked.
  • "On your side," said Mr. Utterson, "will you do me a favour?"
  • "With pleasure," replied the other. "What shall it be?"
  • "Will you let me see your face?" asked the lawyer.
  • Mr. Hyde appeared to hesitate, and then, as if upon some sudden
  • reflection, fronted about with an air of defiance; and the pair stared
  • at each other pretty fixedly for a few seconds. "Now I shall know you
  • again," said Mr. Utterson. "It may be useful."
  • "Yes," returned Mr. Hyde, "it is as well we have met; and _à propos_,
  • you should have my address." And he gave a number of a street in Soho.
  • "Good God!" thought Mr. Utterson, "can he too have been thinking of the
  • will?" But he kept his feelings to himself and only grunted in
  • acknowledgment of the address.
  • "And now," said the other, "how did you know me?"
  • "By description," was the reply.
  • "Whose description?"
  • "We have common friends," said Mr. Utterson.
  • "Common friends?" echoed Mr. Hyde, a little hoarsely. "Who are they?"
  • "Jekyll, for instance," said the lawyer.
  • "He never told you," cried Mr. Hyde, with a flush of anger. "I did not
  • think you would have lied."
  • "Come," said Mr. Utterson, "that is not fitting language."
  • The other snarled aloud into a savage laugh; and the next moment, with
  • extraordinary quickness, he had unlocked the door and disappeared into
  • the house.
  • The lawyer stood awhile when Mr. Hyde had left him, the picture of
  • disquietude. Then he began slowly to mount the street, pausing every
  • step or two and putting his hand to his brow like a man in mental
  • perplexity. The problem he was thus debating as he walked was one of a
  • class that is rarely solved. Mr. Hyde was pale and dwarfish. He gave an
  • impression of deformity without any nameable malformation, he had a
  • displeasing smile, he had borne himself to the lawyer with a sort of
  • murderous mixture of timidity and boldness, and he spoke with a husky,
  • whispering and somewhat broken voice; all these were points against him,
  • but not all of these together could explain the hitherto unknown
  • disgust, loathing, and fear with which Mr. Utterson regarded him. "There
  • must be something else," said the perplexed gentleman. "There _is_
  • something more, if I could find a name for it. God bless me, the man
  • seems hardly human! Something troglodytic, shall we say? or can it be
  • the old story of Dr. Fell? or is it the mere radiance of a foul soul
  • that thus transpires through, and transfigures, its clay continent? The
  • last, I think; for O my poor old Harry Jekyll, if ever I read Satan's
  • signature upon a face, it is on that of your new friend."
  • Round the corner from the by-street there was a square of ancient,
  • handsome houses, now for the most part decayed from their high estate
  • and let in flats and chambers to all sorts and conditions of men:
  • map-engravers, architects, shady lawyers, and the agents of obscure
  • enterprises. One house, however, second from the corner, was still
  • occupied entire; and at the door of this, which wore a great air of
  • wealth and comfort, though it was now plunged in darkness except for the
  • fan-light, Mr. Utterson stopped and knocked. A well-dressed elderly
  • servant opened the door.
  • "Is Dr. Jekyll at home, Poole?" asked the lawyer.
  • "I will see, Mr. Utterson," said Poole, admitting the visitor, as he
  • spoke, into a large, low-roofed, comfortable hall, paved with flags,
  • warmed (after the fashion of a country house) by a bright, open fire,
  • and furnished with costly cabinets of oak. "Will you wait here by the
  • fire, sir? or shall I give you a light in the dining-room?"
  • "Here, thank you," said the lawyer, and he drew near and leaned on the
  • tall fender. This hall, in which he was now left alone, was a pet fancy
  • of his friend the doctor's; and Utterson himself was wont to speak of it
  • as the pleasantest room in London. But to-night there was a shudder in
  • his blood; the face of Hyde sat heavy on his memory; he felt (what was
  • rare with him) a nausea and distaste of life; and in the gloom of his
  • spirits, he seemed to read a menace in the flickering of the firelight
  • on the polished cabinets and the uneasy starting of the shadow on the
  • roof. He was ashamed of his relief, when Poole presently returned to
  • announce that Dr. Jekyll was gone out.
  • "I saw Mr. Hyde go in by the old dissecting-room door, Poole," he said.
  • "Is that right, when Dr. Jekyll is from home?"
  • "Quite right, Mr. Utterson, sir," replied the servant. "Mr. Hyde has a
  • key."
  • "Your master seems to repose a great deal of trust in that young man,
  • Poole," resumed the other musingly.
  • "Yes, sir, he do indeed," said Poole. "We have all orders to obey him."
  • "I do not think I ever met Mr. Hyde?" asked Utterson.
  • "O dear no, sir. He never _dines_ here," replied the butler. "Indeed, we
  • see very little of him on this side of the house; he mostly comes and
  • goes by the laboratory."
  • "Well, good-night, Poole."
  • "Good-night, Mr. Utterson."
  • And the lawyer set out homeward with a very heavy heart. "Poor Harry
  • Jekyll," he thought, "my mind misgives me he is in deep waters! He was
  • wild when he was young; a long while ago, to be sure; but in the law of
  • God there is no statute of limitations. Ay, it must be that; the ghost
  • of some old sin, the cancer of some concealed disgrace: punishment
  • coming, _pede claudo_, years after memory has forgotten and self-love
  • condoned the fault." And the lawyer, scared by the thought, brooded
  • awhile on his own past, groping in all the corners of memory, lest by
  • chance some Jack-in-the-Box of an old iniquity should leap to light
  • there. His past was fairly blameless; few men could read the rolls of
  • their life with less apprehension; yet he was humbled to the dust by the
  • many ill things he had done, and raised up again into a sober and
  • fearful gratitude by the many that he had come so near to doing, yet
  • avoided. And then, by a return on his former subject, he conceived a
  • spark of hope. "This Master Hyde, if he were studied," thought he, "must
  • have secrets of his own: black secrets, by the look of him; secrets
  • compared to which poor Jekyll's worst would be like sunshine. Things
  • cannot continue as they are. It turns me cold to think of this creature
  • stealing like a thief to Harry's bedside; poor Harry, what a wakening!
  • And the danger of it; for if this Hyde suspects the existence of the
  • will, he may grow impatient to inherit. Ay, I must put my shoulder to
  • the wheel--if Jekyll will but let me," he added, "if Jekyll will only
  • let me." For once more he saw before his mind's eye, as clear as a
  • transparency, the strange clauses of the will.
  • DR. JEKYLL WAS QUITE AT EASE
  • A fortnight later, by excellent good fortune, the doctor gave one of his
  • pleasant dinners to some five or six old cronies, all intelligent,
  • reputable men, and all judges of good wine; and Mr. Utterson so
  • contrived that he remained behind after the others had departed. This
  • was no new arrangement, but a thing that had befallen many scores of
  • times. Where Utterson was liked, he was liked well. Hosts loved to
  • detain the dry lawyer, when the light-hearted and the loose-tongued had
  • already their foot on the threshold; they liked to sit awhile in his
  • unobtrusive company, practising for solitude, sobering their minds in
  • the man's rich silence after the expense and strain of gaiety. To this
  • rule Dr. Jekyll was no exception; and as he now sat on the opposite side
  • of the fire--a large, well-made, smooth-faced man of fifty, with
  • something of a slyish cast perhaps, but every mark of capacity and
  • kindness--you could see by his looks that he cherished for Mr. Utterson
  • a sincere and warm affection.
  • "I have been wanting to speak to you, Jekyll," began the latter. "You
  • know that will of yours?"
  • A close observer might have gathered that the topic was distasteful; but
  • the doctor carried it off gaily. "My poor Utterson," said he, "you are
  • unfortunate in such a client. I never saw a man so distressed as you
  • were by my will; unless it were that hide-bound pedant, Lanyon, at what
  • he called my scientific heresies. Oh, I know he's a good fellow--you
  • needn't frown--an excellent fellow, and I always mean to see more of
  • him; but a hide-bound pedant for all that; an ignorant, blatant pedant.
  • I was never more disappointed in any man than Lanyon."
  • "You know I never approved of it," pursued Utterson, ruthlessly
  • disregarding the fresh topic.
  • "My will? Yes, certainly, I know that," said the doctor, a trifle
  • sharply. "You have told me so."
  • "Well, I tell you so again," continued the lawyer. "I have been learning
  • something of young Hyde."
  • The large handsome face of Dr. Jekyll grew pale to the very lips, and
  • there came a blackness about his eyes. "I do not care to hear more,"
  • said he. "This is a matter I thought we had agreed to drop."
  • "What I heard was abominable," said Utterson.
  • "It can make no change. You do not understand my position," returned the
  • doctor, with a certain incoherency of manner. "I am painfully situated,
  • Utterson; my position is a very strange--a very strange one. It is one
  • of those affairs that cannot be mended by talking."
  • "Jekyll," said Utterson, "you know me: I am a man to be trusted. Make a
  • clean breast of this in confidence; and I make no doubt I can get you
  • out of it."
  • "My good Utterson," said the doctor, "this is very good of you, this is
  • downright good of you, and I cannot find words to thank you in. I
  • believe you fully; I would trust you before any man alive--ay, before
  • myself, if I could make the choice; but indeed it isn't what you fancy;
  • it is not so bad as that; and just to put your good heart at rest, I
  • will tell you one thing: the moment I choose, I can be rid of Mr. Hyde.
  • I give you my hand upon that; and I thank you again and again; and I
  • will just add one little word, Utterson, that I'm sure you'll take in
  • good part: this is a private matter, and I beg of you to let it sleep."
  • Utterson reflected a little, looking in the fire.
  • "I have no doubt you are perfectly right," he said at last, getting to
  • his feet.
  • "Well, but since we have touched upon this business, and for the last
  • time I hope," continued the doctor, "there is one point I should like
  • you to understand. I have really a very great interest in poor Hyde. I
  • know you have seen him; he told me so; and I fear he was rude. But I do
  • sincerely take a great, a very great interest in that young man; and if
  • I am taken away, Utterson, I wish you to promise me that you will bear
  • with him and get his rights for him. I think you would, if you knew all;
  • and it would be a weight off my mind if you would promise."
  • "I can't pretend that I shall ever like him," said the lawyer.
  • "I don't ask that," pleaded Jekyll, laying his hand upon the other's
  • arm; "I only ask for justice; I only ask you to help him for my sake,
  • when I am no longer here."
  • Utterson heaved an irrepressible sigh. "Well," said he, "I promise."
  • THE CAREW MURDER CASE
  • Nearly a year later, in the month of October 18--, London was startled
  • by a crime of singular ferocity, rendered all the more notable by the
  • high position of the victim. The details were few and startling. A
  • maid-servant living alone in a house not far from the river had gone
  • upstairs to bed about eleven. Although a fog rolled over the city in the
  • small hours, the early part of the night was cloudless, and the lane,
  • which the maid's window overlooked, was brilliantly lit by the full
  • moon. It seems she was romantically given, for she sat down upon her
  • box, which stood immediately under the window, and fell into a dream of
  • musing. Never (she used to say, with streaming tears, when she narrated
  • that experience), never had she felt more at peace with all men or
  • thought more kindly of the world. And as she so sat she became aware of
  • an aged and beautiful gentleman with white hair drawing near along the
  • lane: and advancing to meet him another and very small gentleman, to
  • whom at first she paid less attention. When they had come within speech
  • (which was just under the maid's eyes) the older man bowed and accosted
  • the other with a very pretty manner of politeness. It did not seem as if
  • the subject of his address were of great importance; indeed, from his
  • pointing, it sometimes appeared as if he were only inquiring his way;
  • but the moon shone on his face as he spoke, and the girl was pleased to
  • watch it, it seemed to breathe such an innocent and old-world kindness
  • of disposition, yet with something high too, as of a well-founded
  • self-content. Presently her eye wandered to the other, and she was
  • surprised to recognise in him a certain Mr. Hyde, who had once visited
  • her master, and for whom she had conceived a dislike. He had in his
  • hand a heavy cane, with which he was trifling; but he answered never a
  • word, and seemed to listen with an ill-contained impatience. And then
  • all of a sudden he broke out in a great flame of anger, stamping with
  • his foot, brandishing the cane, and carrying on (as the maid described
  • it) like a madman. The old gentleman took a step back, with the air of
  • one very much surprised and a trifle hurt; and at that Mr. Hyde broke
  • out of all bounds and clubbed him to the earth. And next moment, with
  • ape-like fury, he was trampling his victim under foot, and hailing down
  • a storm of blows, under which the bones were audibly shattered and the
  • body jumped upon the roadway. At the horror of these sights and sounds
  • the maid fainted.
  • It was two o'clock when she came to herself and called for the police.
  • The murderer was gone long ago; but there lay his victim in the middle
  • of the lane, incredibly mangled. The stick with which the deed had been
  • done, although it was of some rare and very tough and heavy wood, had
  • broken in the middle under the stress of this insensate cruelty; and one
  • splintered half had rolled in the neighbouring gutter--the other,
  • without doubt, had been carried away by the murderer. A purse and a gold
  • watch were found upon the victim; but no cards or papers, except a
  • sealed and stamped envelope, which he had been probably carrying to the
  • post, and which bore the name and address of Mr. Utterson.
  • This was brought to the lawyer the next morning before he was out of
  • bed; and he had no sooner seen it, and been told the circumstances, than
  • he shot out a solemn lip. "I shall say nothing till I have seen the
  • body," said he; "this may be very serious. Have the kindness to wait
  • while I dress." And with the same grave countenance he hurried through
  • his breakfast and drove to the police station, whither the body had been
  • carried. As soon as he came into the cell he nodded.
  • "Yes," said he, "I recognise him. I am sorry to say that this is Sir
  • Danvers Carew."
  • "Good God, sir," exclaimed the officer, "is it possible?" And the next
  • moment his eye lighted up with professional ambition. "This will make a
  • deal of noise," he said. "And perhaps you can help us to the man." And
  • he briefly narrated what the maid had seen, and showed the broken stick.
  • Mr. Utterson had already quailed at the name of Hyde; but when the stick
  • was laid before him he could doubt no longer; broken and battered as it
  • was, he recognised it for one that he had himself presented many years
  • before to Henry Jekyll.
  • "Is this Mr. Hyde a person of small stature?" he inquired.
  • "Particularly small and particularly wicked-looking, is what the maid
  • calls him," said the officer.
  • Mr. Utterson reflected; and then, raising his head, "If you will come
  • with me in my cab," he said, "I think I can take you to his house."
  • It was by this time about nine in the morning, and the first fog of the
  • season. A great chocolate-coloured pall lowered over heaven, but the
  • wind was continually charging and routing these embattled vapours; so
  • that as the cab crawled from street to street, Mr. Utterson beheld a
  • marvellous number of degrees and hues of twilight; for here it would be
  • dark like the back-end of evening; and there would be a glow of a rich,
  • lurid brown, like the light of some strange conflagration; and here, for
  • a moment, the fog would be quite broken up, and a haggard shaft of
  • daylight would glance in between the swirling wreaths. The dismal
  • quarter of Soho seen under these changing glimpses, with its muddy ways,
  • and slatternly passengers, and its lamps, which had never been
  • extinguished or had been kindled afresh to combat this mournful
  • re-invasion of darkness, seemed, in the lawyer's eyes, like a district
  • of some city in a nightmare.
  • The thoughts of his mind, besides, were of the gloomiest dye; and when
  • he glanced at the companion of his drive, he was conscious of some touch
  • of that terror of the law and the law's officers which may at times
  • assail the most honest.
  • As the cab drew up before the address indicated, the fog lifted a
  • little, and showed him a dingy street, a gin-palace, a low French
  • eating-house, a shop for the retail of penny numbers and twopenny
  • salads, many ragged children huddled in the doorways, and many women of
  • many different nationalities passing out, key in hand, to have a morning
  • glass; and the next moment the fog settled down again upon that part, as
  • brown as umber, and cut him off from his blackguardly surroundings. This
  • was the home of Henry Jekyll's favourite; of a man who was heir to a
  • quarter of a million sterling.
  • An ivory-faced and silvery-haired old woman opened the door. She had an
  • evil face, smoothed by hypocrisy; but her manners were excellent. Yes,
  • she said, this was Mr. Hyde's, but he was not at home; he had been in
  • that night very late, but had gone away again in less than an hour;
  • there was nothing strange in that; his habits were very irregular, and
  • he was often absent; for instance, it was nearly two months since she
  • had seen him till yesterday.
  • "Very well then, we wish to see his rooms," said the lawyer; and when
  • the woman began to declare it was impossible, "I had better tell you who
  • this person is," he added. "This is Inspector Newcomen of Scotland
  • Yard."
  • A flash of odious joy appeared upon the woman's face. "Ah!" said she,
  • "he is in trouble! What has he done?"
  • Mr. Utterson and the inspector exchanged glances. "He don't seem a very
  • popular character," observed the latter. "And now, my good woman, just
  • let me and this gentleman have a look about us."
  • In the whole extent of the house, which but for the old woman remained
  • otherwise empty, Mr. Hyde had only used a couple of rooms; but these
  • were furnished with luxury and good taste. A closet was filled with
  • wine; the plate was of silver, the napery elegant; a good picture hung
  • upon the walls, a gift (as Utterson supposed) from Henry Jekyll, who
  • was much of a connoisseur; and the carpets were of many plies and
  • agreeable in colour. At this moment, however, the rooms bore every mark
  • of having been recently and hurriedly ransacked; clothes lay about the
  • floor, with their pockets inside out; lockfast drawers stood open; and
  • on the hearth there lay a pile of grey ashes, as though many papers had
  • been burned. From these embers the inspector disinterred the butt-end of
  • a green cheque-book, which had resisted the action of the fire; the
  • other half of the stick was found behind the door; and as this clinched
  • his suspicions, the officer declared himself delighted. A visit to the
  • bank, where several thousand pounds were found to be lying to the
  • murderer's credit, completed his gratification.
  • "You may depend upon it, sir," he told Mr. Utterson: "I have him in my
  • hand. He must have lost his head, or he never would have left the stick
  • or, above all, burned the cheque-book. Why, money's life to the man. We
  • have nothing to do but wait for him at the bank, and get out the
  • handbills."
  • This last, however, was not so easy of accomplishment; for Mr. Hyde had
  • numbered few familiars--even the master of the servant-maid had only
  • seen him twice; his family could nowhere be traced; he had never been
  • photographed; and the few who could describe him differed widely, as
  • common observers will. Only on one point were they agreed; and that was
  • the haunting sense of unexpressed deformity with which the fugitive
  • impressed his beholders.
  • INCIDENT OF THE LETTER
  • It was late in the afternoon when Mr. Utterson found his way to Dr.
  • Jekyll's door, where he was at once admitted by Poole, and carried down
  • by the kitchen offices and across a yard which had once been a garden to
  • the building which was indifferently known as the laboratory or the
  • dissecting-rooms. The doctor had bought the house from the heirs of a
  • celebrated surgeon; and, his own tastes being rather chemical than
  • anatomical, had changed the destination of the block at the bottom of
  • the garden. It was the first time that the lawyer had been received in
  • that part of his friend's quarters; and he eyed the dingy windowless
  • structure with curiosity, and gazed round with a distasteful sense of
  • strangeness as he crossed the theatre, once crowded with eager students
  • and now lying gaunt and silent, the tables laden with chemical
  • apparatus, the floor strewn with crates and littered with packing straw,
  • and the light falling dimly through the foggy cupola. At the farther
  • end, a flight of stairs mounted to a door covered with red baize; and
  • through this, Mr. Utterson was at last received into the doctor's
  • cabinet. It was a large room, fitted round with glass presses,
  • furnished, among other things, with a cheval-glass and a business-table,
  • and looking out upon the court by three dusty windows barred with iron.
  • The fire burned in the grate; a lamp was set lighted on the chimney
  • shelf, for even in the houses the fog began to lie thickly; and there,
  • close up to the warmth, sat Dr. Jekyll, looking deadly sick; he did not
  • rise to meet his visitor, but held out a cold hand and bade him welcome
  • in a changed voice.
  • "And now," said Mr. Utterson, as soon as Poole had left them, "you have
  • heard the news?"
  • The doctor shuddered. "They were crying it in the square," he said. "I
  • heard them in my dining-room."
  • "One word," said the lawyer. "Carew was my client, but so are you, and I
  • want to know what I am doing. You have not been mad enough to hide this
  • fellow?"
  • "Utterson, I swear to God," cried the doctor, "I swear to God I will
  • never set eyes on him again. I bind my honour to you that I am done with
  • him in this world. It is all at an end. And indeed he does not want my
  • help; you do not know him as I do; he is safe, he is quite safe; mark my
  • words, he will never more be heard of."
  • The lawyer listened gloomily; he did not like his friend's feverish
  • manner. "You seem pretty sure of him," said he; "and for your sake, I
  • hope you may be right. If it came to a trial your name might appear."
  • "I am quite sure of him," replied Jekyll; "I have grounds for certainty
  • that I cannot share with any one. But there is one thing on which you
  • may advise me. I have--I have received a letter; and I am at a loss
  • whether I should show it to the police. I should like to leave it in
  • your hands, Utterson; you would judge wisely, I am sure; I have so great
  • a trust in you."
  • "You fear, I suppose, that it might lead to his detection?" asked the
  • lawyer.
  • "No," said the other. "I cannot say that I care what becomes of Hyde; I
  • am quite done with him. I was thinking of my own character, which this
  • hateful business has rather exposed."
  • Utterson ruminated awhile; he was surprised at his friend's selfishness,
  • and yet relieved by it. "Well," said he at last, "let me see the
  • letter."
  • The letter was written in an odd, upright hand and signed "Edward Hyde":
  • and it signified, briefly enough, that the writer's benefactor, Dr.
  • Jekyll, whom he had long so unworthily repaid for a thousand
  • generosities, need labour under no alarm for his safety, as he had means
  • of escape on which he placed a sure dependence. The lawyer liked this
  • letter well enough; it put a better colour on the intimacy than he had
  • looked for; and he blamed himself for some of his past suspicions.
  • "Have you the envelope?" he asked.
  • "I burned it," replied Jekyll, "before I thought what I was about. But
  • it bore no postmark. The note was handed in."
  • "Shall I keep this and sleep upon it?" asked Utterson.
  • "I wish you to judge for me entirely," was the reply. "I have lost
  • confidence in myself."
  • "Well, I shall consider," returned the lawyer.--"And now one word more:
  • it was Hyde who dictated the terms in your will about that
  • disappearance?"
  • The doctor seemed seized with a qualm of faintness; he shut his mouth
  • tight and nodded.
  • "I knew it," said Utterson. "He meant to murder you. You have had a fine
  • escape."
  • "I have had what is far more to the purpose," returned the doctor
  • solemnly: "I have had a lesson--O God, Utterson, what a lesson I have
  • had!" And he covered his face for a moment with his hands.
  • On his way out, the lawyer stopped and had a word or two with Poole. "By
  • the by," said he, "there was a letter handed in to-day: what was the
  • messenger like?" But Poole was positive nothing had come except by post;
  • "and only circulars by that," he added.
  • This news sent off the visitor with his fears renewed. Plainly the
  • letter had come by the laboratory door; possibly indeed, it had been
  • written in the cabinet; and if that were so, it must be differently
  • judged, and handled with the more caution. The newsboys, as he went,
  • were crying themselves hoarse along the footways: "Special edition.
  • Shocking murder of an M.P." That was the funeral oration of one friend
  • and client; and he could not help a certain apprehension lest the good
  • name of another should be sucked down in the eddy of the scandal. It
  • was, at least, a ticklish decision that he had to make; and,
  • self-reliant as he was by habit, he began to cherish a longing for
  • advice. It was not to be had directly; but perhaps, he thought, it might
  • be fished for.
  • Presently after, he sat on one side of his own hearth, with Mr. Guest,
  • his head clerk, upon the other, and midway between, at a nicely
  • calculated distance from the fire, a bottle of a particular old wine
  • that had long dwelt unsunned in the foundations of his house. The fog
  • still slept on the wing above the drowned city, where the lamps
  • glimmered like carbuncles; and through the muffle and smother of these
  • fallen clouds, the procession of the town's life was still rolling on
  • through the great arteries with a sound as of a mighty wind. But the
  • room was gay with firelight. In the bottle the acids were long ago
  • resolved; the imperial dye had softened with time, as the colour grows
  • richer in stained windows; and the glow of hot autumn afternoons on
  • hillside vineyards was ready to be set free and to disperse the fogs of
  • London. Insensibly the lawyer melted. There was no man from whom he kept
  • fewer secrets than Mr. Guest; and he was not always sure that he kept as
  • many as he meant. Guest had often been on business to the doctor's; he
  • knew Poole; he could scarce have failed to hear of Mr. Hyde's
  • familiarity about the house; he might draw conclusions: was it not as
  • well, then, that he should see a letter which put that mystery to
  • rights? and above all since Guest, being a great student and critic of
  • handwriting, would consider the step natural and obliging? The clerk,
  • besides, was a man of counsel; he would scarce read so strange a
  • document without dropping a remark; and by that remark Mr. Utterson
  • might shape his future course.
  • "This is a sad business about Sir Danvers," he said.
  • "Yes, sir, indeed. It has elicited a great deal of public feeling,"
  • returned Guest. "The man, of course, was mad."
  • "I should like to hear your views on that," replied Utterson. "I have a
  • document here in his handwriting; it is between ourselves, for I scarce
  • know what to do about it; it is an ugly business at the best. But there
  • it is; quite in your way: a murderer's autograph."
  • Guest's eyes brightened, and he sat down at once and studied it with
  • passion. "No, sir," he said; "not mad; but it is an odd hand."
  • "And by all accounts a very odd writer," added the lawyer.
  • Just then the servant entered with a note.
  • "Is that from Dr. Jekyll, sir?" inquired the clerk. "I thought I knew
  • the writing. Anything private, Mr. Utterson?"
  • "Only an invitation to dinner. Why? do you want to see it?"
  • "One moment. I thank you, sir"; and the clerk laid the two sheets of
  • paper alongside and sedulously compared their contents. "Thank you,
  • sir," he said at last, returning both; "it's a very interesting
  • autograph."
  • There was a pause, during which Mr. Utterson struggled with himself.
  • "Why did you compare them, Guest?" he inquired suddenly.
  • "Well, sir," returned the clerk, "there's a rather singular resemblance;
  • the two hands are in many points identical: only differently sloped."
  • "Rather quaint," said Utterson.
  • "It is, as you say, rather quaint," returned Guest.
  • "I wouldn't speak of this note, you know," said the master.
  • "No, sir," said the clerk. "I understand."
  • But no sooner was Mr. Utterson alone that night than he locked the note
  • into his safe, where it reposed from that time forward. "What!" he
  • thought. "Henry Jekyll forge for a murderer!" And his blood ran cold in
  • his veins.
  • REMARKABLE INCIDENT OF DR. LANYON
  • Time ran on; thousands of pounds were offered in reward, for the death
  • of Sir Danvers was resented as a public injury; but Mr. Hyde had
  • disappeared out of the ken of the police as though he had never existed.
  • Much of his past was unearthed, indeed, and all disreputable: tales came
  • out of the man's cruelty, at once so callous and violent, of his vile
  • life, of his strange associates, of the hatred that seemed to have
  • surrounded his career; but of his present whereabouts, not a whisper.
  • From the time he had left the house in Soho on the morning of the
  • murder, he was simply blotted out; and gradually, as time drew on, Mr.
  • Utterson began to recover from the hotness of his alarm, and to grow
  • more at quiet with himself. The death of Sir Danvers was, to his way of
  • thinking, more than paid for by the disappearance of Mr. Hyde. Now that
  • that evil influence had been withdrawn, a new life began for Dr. Jekyll.
  • He came out of his seclusion, renewed relations with his friends, became
  • once more their familiar guest and entertainer; and whilst he had always
  • been known for charities, he was now no less distinguished for religion.
  • He was busy, he was much in the open air, he did good; his face seemed
  • to open and brighten, as if with an inward consciousness of service; and
  • for more than two months the doctor was at peace.
  • On the 8th of January Utterson had dined at the doctor's with a small
  • party; Lanyon had been there; and the face of the host had looked from
  • one to the other as in the old days when the trio were inseparable
  • friends. On the 12th, and again on the 14th, the door was shut against
  • the lawyer. "The doctor was confined to the house," Poole said, "and saw
  • no one." On the 15th he tried again, and was again refused; and having
  • now been used for the last two months to see his friend almost daily, he
  • found this return of solitude to weigh upon his spirits. The fifth night
  • he had in Guest to dine with him; and the sixth he betook himself to Dr.
  • Lanyon's.
  • There at least he was not denied admittance; but when he came in, he was
  • shocked at the change which had taken place in the doctor's appearance.
  • He had his death-warrant written legibly upon his face. The rosy man had
  • grown pale; his flesh had fallen away; he was visibly balder and older;
  • and yet it was not so much these tokens of a swift physical decay that
  • arrested the lawyer's notice, as a look in the eye and quality of manner
  • that seemed to testify to some deep-seated terror of the mind. It was
  • unlikely that the doctor should fear death; and yet that was what
  • Utterson was tempted to suspect. "Yes," he thought; "he is a doctor, he
  • must know his own state and that his days are counted; and the knowledge
  • is more than he can bear." And yet when Utterson remarked on his
  • ill-looks, it was with an air of great firmness that Lanyon declared
  • himself a doomed man.
  • "I have had a shock," he said, "and I shall never recover. It is a
  • question of weeks. Well, life has been pleasant; I liked it; yes, sir, I
  • used to like it. I sometimes think if we knew all we should be more glad
  • to get away."
  • "Jekyll is ill too," observed Utterson. "Have you seen him?"
  • But Lanyon's face changed, and he held up a trembling hand. "I wish to
  • see or hear no more of Dr. Jekyll," he said in a loud, unsteady voice.
  • "I am quite done with that person; and I beg that you will spare me any
  • allusion to one whom I regard as dead."
  • "Tut-tut," said Mr. Utterson; and then, after a considerable pause,
  • "Can't I do anything?" he inquired. "We are three very old friends,
  • Lanyon; we shall not live to make others."
  • "Nothing can be done," returned Lanyon; "ask himself."
  • "He will not see me," said the lawyer.
  • "I am not surprised at that," was the reply. "Some day, Utterson, after
  • I am dead, you may perhaps come to learn the right and wrong of this. I
  • cannot tell you. And in the meantime, if you can sit and talk with me of
  • other things, for God's sake, stay and do so; but if you cannot keep
  • clear of this accursed topic, then, in God's name, go, for I cannot bear
  • it."
  • As soon as he got home, Utterson sat down and wrote to Jekyll,
  • complaining of his exclusion from the house, and asking the cause of
  • this unhappy break with Lanyon; and the next day brought him a long
  • answer, often very pathetically worded, and sometimes darkly mysterious
  • in drift. The quarrel with Lanyon was incurable. "I do not blame our old
  • friend," Jekyll wrote, "but I share his view that we must never meet. I
  • mean from henceforth to lead a life of extreme seclusion; you must not
  • be surprised, nor must you doubt my friendship, if my door is often shut
  • even to you. You must suffer me to go my own dark way. I have brought on
  • myself a punishment and a danger that I cannot name. If I am the chief
  • of sinners, I am the chief of sufferers also. I could not think that
  • this earth contained a place for sufferings and terrors so unmanning;
  • and you can but do one thing, Utterson, to lighten this destiny, and
  • that is to respect my silence." Utterson was amazed; the dark influence
  • of Hyde had been withdrawn, the doctor had returned to his old tasks and
  • amities; a week ago, the prospect had smiled with every promise of a
  • cheerful and an honoured age; and now in a moment, friendship and peace
  • of mind and the whole tenor of his life were wrecked. So great and
  • unprepared a change pointed to madness; but in view of Lanyon's manner
  • and words, there must lie for it some deeper ground.
  • A week afterwards Dr. Lanyon took to his bed, and in something less than
  • a fortnight he was dead. The night after the funeral, at which he had
  • been sadly affected, Utterson locked the door of his business-room, and
  • sitting there by the light of a melancholy candle, drew out and set
  • before him an envelope addressed by the hand and sealed with the seal of
  • his dead friend. "PRIVATE: for the hands of G. J. Utterson ALONE, and in
  • case of his predecease _to be destroyed unread_," so it was emphatically
  • superscribed; and the lawyer dreaded to behold the contents. "I have
  • buried one friend to-day," he thought: "what if this should cost me
  • another?" And then he condemned the fear as a disloyalty, and broke the
  • seal. Within there was another enclosure, likewise sealed, and marked
  • upon the cover as "not to be opened till the death or disappearance of
  • Dr. Henry Jekyll." Utterson could not trust his eyes. Yes, it was
  • disappearance; here again, as in the mad will which he had long ago
  • restored to its author, here again were the idea of a disappearance and
  • the name of Henry Jekyll bracketed. But in the will that idea had sprung
  • from the sinister suggestion of the man Hyde; it was set there with a
  • purpose all too plain and horrible. Written by the hand of Lanyon, what
  • should it mean? A great curiosity came on the trustee, to disregard the
  • prohibition and dive at once to the bottom of these mysteries; but
  • professional honour and faith to his dead friend were stringent
  • obligations; and the packet slept in the inmost corner of his private
  • safe.
  • It is one thing to mortify curiosity, another to conquer it; and it may
  • be doubted if, from that day forth, Utterson desired the society of his
  • surviving friend with the same eagerness. He thought of him kindly; but
  • his thoughts were disquieted and fearful. He went to call indeed; but he
  • was perhaps relieved to be denied admittance; perhaps, in his heart, he
  • preferred to speak with Poole upon the doorstep and surrounded by the
  • air and sounds of the open city, rather than to be admitted into that
  • house of voluntary bondage, and to sit and speak with its inscrutable
  • recluse. Poole had, indeed, no very pleasant news to communicate. The
  • doctor, it appeared, now more than ever confined himself to the cabinet
  • over the laboratory, where he would sometimes even sleep; he was out of
  • spirits, he had grown very silent, he did not read; it seemed as if he
  • had something on his mind. Utterson became so used to the unvarying
  • character of these reports, that he fell off little by little in the
  • frequency of his visits.
  • INCIDENT AT THE WINDOW
  • It chanced on Sunday, when Mr. Utterson was on his usual walk with Mr.
  • Enfield, that their way lay once again through the by-street; and that
  • when they came in front of the door, both stopped to gaze on it.
  • "Well," said Enfield, "that story's at an end at least. We shall never
  • see more of Mr. Hyde."
  • "I hope not," said Utterson. "Did I ever tell you that I once saw him,
  • and shared your feeling of repulsion?"
  • "It was impossible to do the one without the other," returned Enfield.
  • "And by the way, what an ass you must have thought me, not to know that
  • this was a back way to Dr. Jekyll's! It was partly your own fault that I
  • found it out, even when I did."
  • "So you found it out, did you?" said Utterson. "But if that be so, we
  • may step into the court and take a look at the windows. To tell you the
  • truth, I am uneasy about poor Jekyll; and even outside, I feel as if the
  • presence of a friend might do him good."
  • The court was very cool and a little damp, and full of premature
  • twilight, although the sky, high up overhead, was still bright with
  • sunset. The middle one of the three windows was half-way open; and
  • sitting close beside it, taking the air with an infinite sadness of
  • mien, like some disconsolate prisoner, Utterson saw Dr. Jekyll.
  • "What! Jekyll!" he cried. "I trust you are better."
  • "I am very low, Utterson," replied the doctor drearily, "very low. It
  • will not last long, thank God."
  • "You stay too much indoors," said the lawyer. "You should be out,
  • whipping up the circulation like Mr. Enfield and me. (This is my
  • cousin--Mr. Enfield--Dr. Jekyll.) Come now; get your hat and take a
  • quick turn with us."
  • "You are very good," sighed the other. "I should like to very much; but
  • no, no, no, it is quite impossible; I dare not. But indeed, Utterson, I
  • am very glad to see you; this is really a great pleasure; I would ask
  • you and Mr. Enfield up, but the place is really not fit."
  • "Why then," said the lawyer good-naturedly, "the best thing we can do is
  • to stay down here and speak with you from where we are."
  • "That is just what I was about to venture to propose," returned the
  • doctor, with a smile. But the words were hardly uttered, before the
  • smile was struck out of his face and succeeded by an expression of such
  • abject terror and despair as froze the very blood of the two gentleman
  • below. They saw it but for a glimpse, for the window was instantly
  • thrust down; but that glimpse had been sufficient, and they turned and
  • left the court without a word. In silence, too, the by-street; and it
  • was not until they had come into a neighbouring thoroughfare, where even
  • upon a Sunday there were still some stirrings of life, that Mr. Utterson
  • at last turned and looked at his companion. They were both pale; and
  • there was an answering horror in their eyes.
  • "God forgive us, God forgive us!" said Mr. Utterson.
  • But Mr. Enfield only nodded his head very seriously, and walked on once
  • more in silence.
  • THE LAST NIGHT
  • Mr. Utterson was sitting by his fireside one evening after dinner, when
  • he was surprised to receive a visit from Poole.
  • "Bless me, Poole, what brings you here?" he cried; and then, taking a
  • second look at him, "What ails you?" he added, "is the doctor ill?"
  • "Mr. Utterson," said the man, "there is something wrong."
  • "Take a seat, and here is a glass of wine for you," said the lawyer.
  • "Now, take your time, and tell me plainly what you want."
  • "You know the doctor's ways, sir," replied Poole, "and how he shuts
  • himself up. Well, he's shut up again in the cabinet; and I don't like
  • it, sir--I wish I may die if I like it. Mr. Utterson, sir, I'm afraid."
  • "Now, my good man," said the lawyer, "be explicit. What are you afraid
  • of?"
  • "I've been afraid for about a week," returned Poole, doggedly
  • disregarding the question, "and I can bear it no more."
  • The man's appearance amply bore out his words; his manner was altered
  • for the worse; and except for the moment when he had first announced his
  • terror, he had not once looked the lawyer in the face. Even now, he sat
  • with the glass of wine untasted on his knee, and his eyes directed to a
  • corner of the floor. "I can bear it no more," he repeated.
  • "Come," said the lawyer, "I see you have some good reason, Poole; I see
  • there is something seriously amiss. Try to tell me what it is."
  • "I think there's been foul play," said Poole hoarsely.
  • "Foul play!" cried the lawyer, a good deal frightened, and rather
  • inclined to be irritated in consequence. "What foul play? What does the
  • man mean?"
  • "I daren't say, sir," was the answer; "but will you come along with me
  • and see for yourself?"
  • Mr. Utterson's only answer was to rise and get his hat and greatcoat;
  • but he observed with wonder the greatness of the relief that appeared
  • upon the butler's face, and perhaps with no less, that the wine was
  • still untasted when he set it down to follow.
  • It was a wild, cold, seasonable night of March, with a pale moon, lying
  • on her back as though the wind had tilted her, and a flying wrack of the
  • most diaphanous and lawny texture. The wind made talking difficult, and
  • flecked the blood into the face. It seemed to have swept the streets
  • unusually bare of passengers, besides; for Mr. Utterson thought he had
  • never seen that part of London so deserted. He could have wished it
  • otherwise; never in his life had he been conscious of so sharp a wish to
  • see and touch his fellow-creatures; for, struggle as he might, there was
  • borne in upon his mind a crushing anticipation of calamity. The square,
  • when they got there, was all full of wind and dust, and the thin trees
  • in the garden were lashing themselves along the railing. Poole, who had
  • kept all the way a pace or two ahead, now pulled up in the middle of the
  • pavement, and, in spite of the biting weather, took off his hat and
  • mopped his brow with a red pocket-handkerchief. But for all the hurry of
  • his coming, these were not the dews of exertion that he wiped away, but
  • the moisture of some strangling anguish; for his face was white, and his
  • voice, when he spoke, harsh and broken.
  • "Well, sir," he said, "here we are, and God grant there be nothing
  • wrong."
  • "Amen, Poole," said the lawyer.
  • Thereupon the servant knocked in a very guarded manner; the door was
  • opened on the chain; and a voice asked from within, "Is that you,
  • Poole?"
  • "It's all right," said Poole. "Open the door."
  • The hall, when they entered it, was brightly lighted up; the fire was
  • built high; and about the hearth the whole of the servants, men and
  • women, stood huddled together like a flock of sheep. At the sight of Mr.
  • Utterson, the housemaid broke into hysterical whimpering; and the cook,
  • crying out "Bless God! it's Mr. Utterson," ran forward as if to take him
  • in her arms.
  • "What, what? Are you all here?" said the lawyer peevishly. "Very
  • irregular, very unseemly; your master would be far from pleased."
  • "They're all afraid," said Poole.
  • Blank silence followed, no one protesting; only the maid lifted up her
  • voice and now wept loudly.
  • "Hold your tongue!" Poole said to her, with a ferocity of accent that
  • testified to his own jangled nerves; and indeed, when the girl had so
  • suddenly raised the note of her lamentation, they had all started and
  • turned towards the inner door with faces of dreadful expectation. "And
  • now," continued the butler, addressing the knife-boy, "reach me a
  • candle, and we'll get this through hands at once." And then he begged
  • Mr. Utterson to follow him, and led the way to the back-garden.
  • "Now, sir," said he, "you come as gently as you can. I want you to hear,
  • and I don't want you to be heard. And see here, sir, if by any chance he
  • was to ask you in, don't go."
  • Mr. Utterson's nerves, at this unlooked-for termination, gave a jerk
  • that nearly threw him from his balance; but he re-collected his courage
  • and followed the butler into the laboratory building and through the
  • surgical theatre, with its lumber of crates and bottles, to the foot of
  • the stair. Here Poole motioned him to stand on one side and listen;
  • while he himself, setting down the candle and making a great and obvious
  • call on his resolution, mounted the steps and knocked with a somewhat
  • uncertain hand on the red baize of the cabinet door.
  • "Mr. Utterson, sir, asking to see you," he called; and, even as he did
  • so, once more violently signed to the lawyer to give ear.
  • A voice answered from within: "Tell him I cannot see any one," it said
  • complainingly.
  • "Thank you, sir," said Poole, with a note of something like triumph in
  • his voice; and taking up his candle, he led Mr. Utterson back across the
  • yard and into the great kitchen, where the fire was out and the beetles
  • were leaping on the floor.
  • "Sir," he said, looking Mr. Utterson in the eyes, "was that my master's
  • voice?"
  • "It seems much changed," replied the lawyer, very pale, but giving look
  • for look.
  • "Changed? Well, yes, I think so," said the butler. "Have I been twenty
  • years in this man's house, to be deceived about his voice? No, sir;
  • master's made away with; he was made away with eight days ago, when we
  • heard him cry out upon the name of God; and _who's_ in there instead of
  • him, and _why_ it stays there, is a thing that cries to Heaven, Mr.
  • Utterson!"
  • "This is a very strange tale, Poole; this is rather a wild tale, my
  • man," said Mr. Utterson, biting his finger. "Suppose it were as you
  • suppose, supposing Dr. Jekyll to have been--well, murdered, what could
  • induce the murderer to stay? That won't hold water; it doesn't commend
  • itself to reason."
  • "Well, Mr. Utterson, you are a hard man to satisfy, but I'll do it yet,"
  • said Poole. "All this last week (you must know) him, or it, or whatever
  • it is that lives in that cabinet, has been crying night and day for some
  • sort of medicine and cannot get it to his mind. It was sometimes his
  • way--the master's, that is--to write his orders on a sheet of paper and
  • throw it on the stair. We've had nothing else this week back; nothing
  • but papers, and a closed door, and the very meals left there to be
  • smuggled in when nobody was looking. Well, sir, every day, ay, and
  • twice and thrice in the same day, there have been orders and complaints,
  • and I have been sent flying to all the wholesale chemists in town. Every
  • time I brought the stuff back, there would be another paper telling me
  • to return it, because it was not pure, and another order to a different
  • firm. This drug is wanted bitter bad, sir, whatever for."
  • "Have you any of these papers?" asked Mr. Utterson.
  • Poole felt in his pocket and handed out a crumpled note, which the
  • lawyer, bending nearer to the candle, carefully examined. Its contents
  • ran thus: "Dr. Jekyll presents his compliments to Messrs. Maw. He
  • assures them that their last sample is impure, and quite useless for his
  • present purpose. In the year 18--, Dr. J. purchased a somewhat large
  • quantity from Messrs. M. He now begs them to search with the most
  • sedulous care, and should any of the same quality be left, to forward it
  • to him at once. Expense is no consideration. The importance of this to
  • Dr. J. can hardly be exaggerated." So far the letter had run composedly
  • enough, but here, with a sudden splutter of the pen, the writer's
  • emotion had broken loose. "For God's sake," he had added, "find me some
  • of the old."
  • "This is a strange note," said Mr. Utterson; and then sharply, "How do
  • you come to have it open?"
  • "The man at Maw's was main angry, sir, and he threw it back to me like
  • so much dirt," returned Poole.
  • "This is unquestionably the doctor's hand, do you know?" resumed the
  • lawyer.
  • "I thought it looked like it," said the servant rather sulkily; and
  • then, with another voice, "But what matters hand-of-write?" he said.
  • "I've seen him!"
  • "Seen him?" repeated Mr. Utterson. "Well?"
  • "That's it!" said Poole. "It was this way. I came suddenly into the
  • theatre from the garden. It seems he had slipped out to look for this
  • drug, or whatever it is; for the cabinet door was open, and there he
  • was at the far end of the room digging among the crates. He looked up
  • when I came in, gave a kind of cry, and whipped upstairs into the
  • cabinet. It was but for one minute that I saw him, but the hair stood up
  • on my head like quills. Sir, if that was my master, why had he a mask
  • upon his face? If it was my master, why did he cry out like a rat, and
  • run from me? I have served him long enough. And then ..." the man paused
  • and passed his hand over his face.
  • "These are all very strange circumstances," said Mr. Utterson, "but I
  • think I begin to see daylight. Your master, Poole, is plainly seized
  • with one of those maladies that both torture and deform the sufferer;
  • hence, for aught I know, the alteration of his voice; hence the mask and
  • his avoidance of his friends; hence his eagerness to find this drug, by
  • means of which the poor soul retains some hope of ultimate recovery--God
  • grant that he be not deceived. There is my explanation; it is sad
  • enough, Poole, ay, and appalling to consider; but it is plain and
  • natural, hangs well together, and delivers us from all exorbitant
  • alarms."
  • "Sir," said the butler, turning to a sort of mottled pallor, "that thing
  • was not my master, and there's the truth. My master"--here he looked
  • round him and began to whisper--"is a tall, fine build of a man, and
  • this was more of a dwarf." Utterson attempted to protest. "O sir," cried
  • Poole, "do you think I do not know my master after twenty years? do you
  • think I do not know where his head comes to in the cabinet door, where I
  • saw him every morning of my life? No, sir, that thing in the mask was
  • never Dr. Jekyll--God knows what it was, but it was never Dr. Jekyll;
  • and it is the belief of my heart that there was murder done."
  • "Poole," replied the lawyer, "if you say that, it will become my duty to
  • make certain. Much as I desire to spare your master's feelings, much as
  • I am puzzled by this note which seems to prove him to be still alive, I
  • shall consider it my duty to break in that door."
  • "Ah, Mr. Utterson, that's talking!" cried the butler.
  • "And now comes the second question," resumed Utterson: "Who is going to
  • do it?"
  • "Why, you and me, sir," was the undaunted reply.
  • "That is very well said," returned the lawyer; "and whatever comes of
  • it, I shall make it my business to see you are no loser."
  • "There is an axe in the theatre," continued Poole; "and you might take
  • the kitchen poker for yourself."
  • The lawyer took that rude but weighty instrument into his hand, and
  • balanced it. "Do you know, Poole," he said, looking up, "that you and I
  • are about to place ourselves in a position of some peril?"
  • "You may say so, sir, indeed," returned the butler.
  • "It is well, then, that we should be frank," said the other. "We both
  • think more than we have said; let us make a clean breast. This masked
  • figure that you saw, did you recognise it?"
  • "Well, sir, it went so quick, and the creature was so doubled up, that I
  • could hardly swear to that," was the answer. "But if you mean, was it
  • Mr. Hyde?--why, yes, I think it was! You see, it was much of the same
  • bigness; and it had the same quick light way with it; and then who else
  • could have got in by the laboratory door? You have not forgot, sir, that
  • at the time of the murder he had still the key with him? But that's not
  • all. I don't know, Mr. Utterson, if ever you met this Mr. Hyde?"
  • "Yes," said the lawyer, "I once spoke with him."
  • "Then you must know as well as the rest of us that there was something
  • queer about that gentleman--something that gave a man a turn--I don't
  • know rightly how to say it, sir, beyond this: that you felt it in your
  • marrow kind of cold and thin."
  • "I own I felt something of what you describe," said Mr. Utterson.
  • "Quite so, sir," returned Poole. "Well, when that masked thing like a
  • monkey jumped from among the chemicals and whipped into the cabinet, it
  • went down my spine like ice. Oh, I know it's not evidence, Mr. Utterson;
  • I'm book-learned enough for that; but a man has his feelings, and I give
  • you my Bible-word it was Mr. Hyde!"
  • "Ay, ay," said the lawyer. "My fears incline to the same point. Evil, I
  • fear, founded--evil was sure to come--of that connection. Ay, truly, I
  • believe you; I believe poor Harry is killed; and I believe his murderer
  • (for what purpose, God alone can tell) is still lurking in his victim's
  • room. Well, let our name be vengeance. Call Bradshaw."
  • The footman came at the summons, very white and nervous.
  • "Pull yourself together, Bradshaw," said the lawyer. "This suspense, I
  • know, is telling upon all of you; but it is now our intention to make an
  • end of it. Poole, here, and I are going to force our way into the
  • cabinet. If all is well, my shoulders are broad enough to bear the
  • blame. Meanwhile, lest anything should really be amiss, or any
  • malefactor seek to escape by the back, you and the boy must go round the
  • corner with a pair of good sticks, and take your post at the laboratory
  • door. We give you ten minutes to get to your stations."
  • As Bradshaw left, the lawyer looked at his watch. "And now, Poole, let
  • us get to ours," he said; and taking the poker under his arm, he led the
  • way into the yard. The scud had banked over the moon, and it was now
  • quite dark. The wind, which only broke in puffs and draughts into that
  • deep well of building, tossed the light of the candle to and fro about
  • their steps, until they came into the shelter of the theatre, where they
  • sat down silently to wait. London hummed solemnly all around; but nearer
  • at hand, the stillness was only broken by the sound of a footfall moving
  • to and fro along the cabinet floor.
  • "So it will walk all day, sir," whispered Poole; "ay, and the better
  • part of the night. Only when a new sample comes from the chemist,
  • there's a bit of a break. Ah, it's an ill-conscience that's such an
  • enemy to rest! Ah, sir, there's blood foully shed in every step of it!
  • But hark again, a little closer--put your heart in your ears, Mr.
  • Utterson, and tell me, is that the doctor's foot?"
  • The steps fell lightly and oddly, with a certain swing, for all they
  • went so slowly; it was different indeed from the heavy creaking tread of
  • Henry Jekyll. Utterson sighed. "Is there never anything else?" he asked.
  • Poole nodded. "Once," he said. "Once I heard it weeping!"
  • "Weeping? how that?" said the lawyer, conscious of a sudden chill of
  • horror.
  • "Weeping like a woman or a lost soul," said the butler. "I came away
  • with that upon my heart that I could have wept too."
  • But now the ten minutes drew to an end. Poole disinterred the axe from
  • under a stack of packing straw; the candle was set upon the nearest
  • table to light them to the attack; and they drew near with bated breath
  • to where that patient foot was still going up and down, up and down, in
  • the quiet of the night.
  • "Jekyll," cried Utterson, with a loud voice, "I demand to see you." He
  • paused a moment, but there came no reply. "I give you fair warning, our
  • suspicions are aroused, and I must and shall see you," he resumed; "if
  • not by fair means, then by foul--if not of your consent, then by brute
  • force!"
  • "Utterson," said the voice, "for God's sake have mercy!"
  • "Ah, that's not Jekyll's voice--it's Hyde's!" cried Utterson. "Down with
  • the door, Poole."
  • Poole swung the axe over his shoulder; the blow shook the building, and
  • the red baize door leaped against the lock and hinges. A dismal screech,
  • as of mere animal terror, rang from the cabinet. Up went the axe again,
  • and again the panels crashed and the frame bounded; four times the blow
  • fell; but the wood was tough and the fittings were of excellent
  • workmanship; and it was not until the fifth, that the lock burst in
  • sunder and the wreck of the door fell inwards on the carpet.
  • The besiegers, appalled by their own riot and the stillness that had
  • succeeded, stood back a little and peered in. There lay the cabinet
  • before their eyes in the quiet lamplight, a good fire glowing and
  • chattering on the hearth, the kettle singing its thin strain, a drawer
  • or two open, papers neatly set forth on the business-table, and, nearer
  • the fire, the things laid out for tea: the quietest room, you would have
  • said, and, but for the glazed presses full of chemicals, the most
  • commonplace that night in London.
  • Right in the midst there lay the body of a man sorely contorted, and
  • still twitching. They drew near on tiptoe, turned it on its back, and
  • beheld the face of Edward Hyde. He was dressed in clothes far too large
  • for him, clothes of the doctor's bigness; the cords of his face still
  • moved with a semblance of life, but life was quite gone; and by the
  • crushed phial in the hand and the strong smell of kernels that hung upon
  • the air, Utterson knew that he was looking on the body of a
  • self-destroyer.
  • "We have come too late," he said sternly, "whether to save or punish.
  • Hyde is gone to his account; and it only remains for us to find the body
  • of your master."
  • The far greater proportion of the building was occupied by the theatre,
  • which filled almost the whole ground story and was lighted from above,
  • and by the cabinet, which formed an upper story at one end and looked
  • upon the court. A corridor joined the theatre to the door on the
  • by-street; and with this, the cabinet communicated separately by a
  • second flight of stairs. There were besides a few dark closets and a
  • spacious cellar. All these they now thoroughly examined. Each closet
  • needed but a glance, for all were empty, and all, by the dust that fell
  • from their doors, had stood long unopened. The cellar, indeed, was
  • filled with crazy lumber, mostly dating from the times of the surgeon
  • who was Jekyll's predecessor; but even as they opened the door, they
  • were advertised of the uselessness of further search, by the fall of a
  • perfect mat of cobweb which had for years sealed up the entrance.
  • Nowhere was there any trace of Henry Jekyll, dead or alive.
  • Poole stamped on the flags of the corridor. "He must be buried here," he
  • said, hearkening to the sound.
  • "Or he may have fled," said Utterson, and he turned to examine the door
  • in the by-street. It was locked; and lying near by on the flags, they
  • found the key, already stained with rust.
  • "This does not look like use," observed the lawyer.
  • "Use!" echoed Poole. "Do you not see, sir, it is broken? much as if a
  • man had stamped on it."
  • "Ay," continued Utterson, "and the fractures, too, are rusty." The two
  • men looked at each other with a scare. "This is beyond me, Poole," said
  • the lawyer. "Let us go back to the cabinet."
  • They mounted the stair in silence, and, still with an occasional
  • awe-struck glance at the dead body, proceeded more thoroughly to examine
  • the contents of the cabinet. At one table there were traces of chemical
  • work, various measured heaps of some white salt being laid on glass
  • saucers, as though for an experiment in which the unhappy man had been
  • prevented.
  • "That is the same drug that I was always bringing him," said Poole; and
  • even as he spoke, the kettle with a startling noise boiled over.
  • This brought them to the fireside, where the easy-chair was drawn cosily
  • up, and the tea-things stood ready to the sitter's elbow, the very sugar
  • in the cup. There were several books on a shelf; one lay beside the
  • tea-things open, and Utterson was amazed to find it a copy of a pious
  • work, for which Jekyll had several times expressed a great esteem,
  • annotated, in his own hand, with startling blasphemies.
  • Next, in the course of their review of the chamber, the searchers came
  • to the cheval-glass, into whose depths they looked with an involuntary
  • horror. But it was so turned as to show them nothing but the rosy glow
  • playing on the roof, the fire sparkling in a hundred repetitions along
  • the glazed front of the presses, and their own pale and fearful
  • countenances stooping to look in.
  • "This glass have seen some strange things, sir," whispered Poole.
  • "And surely none stranger than itself," echoed the lawyer in the same
  • tones. "For what did Jekyll"--he caught himself up at the word with a
  • start, and then conquering the weakness: "what could Jekyll want with
  • it?" he said.
  • "You may say that!" said Poole.
  • Next they turned to the business-table. On the desk, among the neat
  • array of papers, a large envelope was uppermost, and bore, in the
  • doctor's hand, the name of Mr. Utterson. The lawyer unsealed it, and
  • several enclosures fell to the floor. The first was a will, drawn in the
  • same eccentric terms as the one which he had returned six months before,
  • to serve as a testament in case of death and as a deed of gift in case
  • of disappearance; but, in place of the name of Edward Hyde, the lawyer,
  • with indescribable amazement, read the name of Gabriel John Utterson. He
  • looked at Poole, and then back at the paper, and last of all at the dead
  • malefactor stretched upon the carpet.
  • "My head goes round," he said. "He has been all these days in
  • possession; he had no cause to like me; he must have raged to see
  • himself displaced; and he has not destroyed this document."
  • He caught up the next paper; it was a brief note in the doctor's hand,
  • and dated at the top. "O Poole!" the lawyer cried, "he was alive and
  • here this day. He cannot have been disposed of in so short a space, he
  • must be still alive, he must have fled! And then, why fled? and how?
  • and in that case, can we venture to declare this suicide? Oh, we must be
  • careful. I foresee that we may yet involve your master in some dire
  • catastrophe."
  • "Why don't you read it, sir?" asked Poole.
  • "Because I fear," replied the lawyer solemnly. "God grant I have no
  • cause for it!" and with that he brought the paper to his eyes and read
  • as follows:
  • "My dear Utterson,--When this shall fall into your hands, I shall
  • have disappeared, under what circumstances I have not the penetration
  • to foresee, but my instinct and all the circumstances of my nameless
  • situation tell me that the end is sure, and must be early. Go then,
  • and first read the narrative which Lanyon warned me he was to place
  • in your hands; and if you care to hear more, turn to the confession
  • of Your unworthy and unhappy friend,
  • "HENRY JEKYLL."
  • "There was a third enclosure?" asked Utterson.
  • "Here sir," said Poole, and gave into his hands a considerable packet
  • sealed in several places.
  • The lawyer put it in his pocket. "I would say nothing of this paper. If
  • your master has fled or is dead, we may at least save his credit. It is
  • now ten; I must go home and read these documents in quiet; but I shall
  • be back before midnight, when we shall send for the police."
  • They went out, locking the door of the theatre behind them; and
  • Utterson, once more leaving the servants gathered about the fire in the
  • hall, trudged back to his office to read the two narratives in which
  • this mystery was now to be explained.
  • DR. LANYON'S NARRATIVE
  • On the ninth of January, now four days ago, I received by the evening
  • delivery a registered envelope, addressed in the hand of my colleague
  • and old school-companion, Henry Jekyll. I was a good deal surprised by
  • this; for we were by no means in the habit of correspondence; I had seen
  • the man, dined with him, indeed, the night before; and I could imagine
  • nothing in our intercourse that should justify the formality of
  • registration. The contents increased my wonder; for this is how the
  • letter ran:--
  • "10th December, 18--
  • "Dear Lanyon,--You are one of my oldest friends; and although we may
  • have differed at times on scientific questions, I cannot remember, at
  • least on my side, any break in our affection. There was never a day
  • when, if you had said to me, 'Jekyll, my life, my honour, my reason,
  • depend upon you,' I would not have sacrificed my fortune or my left
  • hand to help you. Lanyon, my life, my honour, my reason, are all at
  • your mercy; if you fail me to-night, I am lost. You might suppose,
  • after this preface, that I am going to ask you for something
  • dishonourable to grant. Judge for yourself.
  • "I want you to postpone all other engagements for to-night--ay, even
  • if you were summoned to the bedside of an emperor; to take a cab,
  • unless your carriage should be actually at the door; and with this
  • letter in your hand for consultation, to drive straight to my house.
  • Poole, my butler, has his orders; you will find him waiting your
  • arrival with a locksmith. The door of my cabinet is then to be
  • forced; and you are to go in alone; to open the glazed press (letter
  • E) on the left hand, breaking the lock if it be shut; and to draw
  • out, _with all its contents as they stand_, the fourth drawer from
  • the top or (which is the same thing) the third from the bottom. In my
  • extreme distress of mind I have a morbid fear of misdirecting you;
  • but even if I am in error, you may know the right drawer by its
  • contents: some powders, a phial, and a paper book. This drawer I beg
  • of you to carry back with you to Cavendish Square exactly as it
  • stands.
  • "That is the first part of the service: now for the second. You
  • should be back, if you set out at once on the receipt of this, long
  • before midnight; but I will leave you that amount of margin, not only
  • in the fear of one of those obstacles that can neither be prevented
  • nor foreseen, but because an hour when your servants are in bed is to
  • be preferred for what will then remain to do. At midnight, then, I
  • have to ask you to be alone in your consulting-room, to admit with
  • your own hand into the house a man who will present himself in my
  • name, and to place in his hands the drawer that you will have brought
  • with you from my cabinet. Then you will have played your part and
  • earned my gratitude completely. Five minutes afterwards, if you
  • insist upon an explanation, you will have understood that these
  • arrangements are of capital importance; and that by the neglect of
  • one of them, fantastic as they must appear, you might have charged
  • your conscience with my death or the shipwreck of my reason.
  • "Confident as I am that you will not trifle with this appeal, my
  • heart sinks and my hand trembles at the bare thought of such a
  • possibility. Think of me at this hour, in a strange place, labouring
  • under a blackness of distress that no fancy can exaggerate, and yet
  • well aware that, if you will but punctually serve me, my troubles
  • will roll away like a story that is told. Serve me, my dear Lanyon,
  • and save
  • "Your friend,
  • "H. J.
  • "_P.S._--I had already sealed this up when a fresh terror struck upon
  • my soul. It is possible that the post office may fail me, and this
  • letter not come into your hands until to-morrow morning. In that
  • case, dear Lanyon, do my errand when it shall be most convenient for
  • you in the course of the day; and once more expect my messenger at
  • midnight. It may then already be too late; and if that night passes
  • without event, you will know that you have seen the last of Henry
  • Jekyll."
  • Upon the reading of this letter I made sure my colleague was insane; but
  • till that was proved beyond the possibility of doubt, I felt bound to do
  • as he requested. The less I understood of this farrago, the less I was
  • in a position to judge of its importance; and an appeal so worded could
  • not be set aside without a grave responsibility. I rose accordingly from
  • table, got into a hansom, and drove straight to Jekyll's house. The
  • butler was awaiting my arrival; he had received by the same post as mine
  • a registered letter of instruction, and had sent at once for a locksmith
  • and a carpenter. The tradesmen came while we were yet speaking; and we
  • moved in a body to old Dr. Denman's surgical theatre, from which (as you
  • are doubtless aware) Jekyll's private cabinet is most conveniently
  • entered. The door was very strong, the lock excellent; the carpenter
  • avowed he would have great trouble and have to do much damage, if force
  • were to be used; and the locksmith was near despair. But this last was a
  • handy fellow, and after two hours' work the door stood open. The press
  • marked E was unlocked; and I took out the drawer, had it filled up with
  • straw and tied in a sheet, and returned with it to Cavendish Square.
  • Here I proceeded to examine its contents. The powders were neatly enough
  • made up, but not with the nicety of the dispensing chemist; so that it
  • was plain they were of Jekyll's private manufacture; and when I opened
  • one of the wrappers, I found what seemed to me a simple, crystalline
  • salt of a white colour. The phial, to which I next turned my attention,
  • might have been about half-full of a blood-red liquor, which was highly
  • pungent to the sense of smell and seemed to me to contain phosphorus and
  • some volatile ether. At the other ingredients I could make no guess. The
  • book was an ordinary version-book, and contained little but a series of
  • dates. These covered a period of many years, but I observed that the
  • entries ceased nearly a year ago, and quite abruptly. Here and there a
  • brief remark was appended to a date, usually no more than a single word:
  • "double" occurring perhaps six times in a total of several hundred
  • entries; and once very early in the list, and followed by several marks
  • of exclamation, "total failure!!!" All this, though it whetted my
  • curiosity, told me little that was definite. Here was a phial of some
  • tincture, a paper of some salt, and a record of a series of experiments
  • that had led (like too many of Jekyll's investigations) to no end of
  • practical usefulness. How could the presence of these articles in my
  • house affect either the honour, the sanity, or the life of my flighty
  • colleague? If his messenger could go to one place, why could he not go
  • to another? And even granting some impediment, why was this gentleman to
  • be received by me in secret? The more I reflected, the more convinced I
  • grew that I was dealing with a case of cerebral disease; and though I
  • dismissed my servants to bed, I loaded an old revolver that I might be
  • found in some posture of self-defence.
  • Twelve o'clock had scarce rung out over London, ere the knocker sounded
  • very gently on the door. I went myself at the summons, and found a small
  • man crouching against the pillars of the portico.
  • "Are you come from Dr. Jekyll?" I asked.
  • He told me "yes" by a constrained gesture; and when I had bidden him
  • enter, he did not obey me without a searching backward glance into the
  • darkness of the square. There was a policeman not far off, advancing
  • with his bull's-eye open; and at the sight I thought my visitor started
  • and made greater haste.
  • These particulars struck me, I confess, disagreeably; and as I followed
  • him into the bright light of the consulting-room, I kept my hand ready
  • on my weapon. Here, at last, I had a chance of clearly seeing him. I had
  • never set eyes on him before, so much was certain. He was small, as I
  • have said; I was struck besides with the shocking expression of his
  • face, with his remarkable combination of great muscular activity and
  • great apparent debility of constitution, and--last but not least--with
  • the odd, subjective disturbance caused by his neighbourhood. This bore
  • some resemblance to incipient rigor, and was accompanied by a marked
  • sinking of the pulse. At the time, I set it down to some idiosyncratic,
  • personal distaste, and merely wondered at the acuteness of the symptoms;
  • but I have since had reason to believe the cause to lie much deeper in
  • the nature of man, and to turn on some nobler hinge than the principle
  • of hatred.
  • This person (who had thus, from the first moment of his entrance, struck
  • in me what I can only describe as a disgustful curiosity) was dressed in
  • a fashion that would have made an ordinary person laughable: his
  • clothes, that is to say, although they were of rich and sober fabric,
  • were enormously too large for him in every measurement--the trousers
  • hanging on his legs and rolled up to keep them from the ground, the
  • waist of the coat below his haunches and the collar sprawling wide upon
  • his shoulders. Strange to relate, this ludicrous accoutrement was far
  • from moving me to laughter. Rather, as there was something abnormal and
  • misbegotten in the very essence of the creature that now faced
  • me--something seizing, surprising, and revolting--this fresh disparity
  • seemed but to fit in with and to reinforce it; so that to my interest in
  • the man's nature and character there was added a curiosity as to his
  • origin, his life, his fortune and status in the world.
  • These observations, though they have taken so great a space to be set
  • down in, were yet the work of a few seconds. My visitor was, indeed, on
  • fire with sombre excitement.
  • "Have you got it?" he cried. "Have you got it?" And so lively was his
  • impatience that he even laid his hand upon my arm and sought to shake
  • me.
  • I put him back, conscious at his touch of a certain icy pang along my
  • blood. "Come, sir," said I. "You forget that I have not yet the pleasure
  • of your acquaintance. Be seated, if you please." And I showed him an
  • example, and sat down myself in my customary seat and with as fair an
  • imitation of my ordinary manner to a patient as the lateness of the
  • hour, the nature of my pre-occupations, and the horror I had of my
  • visitor, would suffer me to muster.
  • "I beg your pardon, Dr. Lanyon," he replied civilly enough. "What you
  • say is very well founded; and my impatience has shown its heels to my
  • politeness. I come here at the instance of your colleague, Dr. Henry
  • Jekyll, on a piece of business of some moment; and I understood ..." he
  • paused and put his hand to his throat, and I could see, in spite of his
  • collected manner, that he was wrestling against the approaches of the
  • hysteria--"I understood, a drawer...."
  • But here I took pity on my visitor's suspense, and some perhaps on my
  • own growing curiosity.
  • "There it is, sir," said I, pointing to the drawer, where it lay on the
  • floor behind a table and still covered with the sheet.
  • He sprang to it, and then paused, and laid his hand upon his heart; I
  • could hear his teeth grate with the convulsive action of his jaws; and
  • his face was so ghastly to see that I grew alarmed both for his life and
  • reason.
  • "Compose yourself," said I.
  • He turned a dreadful smile to me, and as if with the decision of
  • despair, plucked away the sheet. At sight of the contents he uttered one
  • loud sob of such immense relief that I sat petrified. And the next
  • moment, in a voice that was already fairly well under control, "Have you
  • a graduated glass?" he asked.
  • I rose from my place with something of an effort and gave him what he
  • asked.
  • He thanked me with a smiling nod, measured out a few minims of the red
  • tincture and added one of the powders. The mixture, which was at first
  • of a reddish hue, began, in proportion as the crystals melted, to
  • brighten in colour, to effervesce audibly, and to throw off small fumes
  • of vapour. Suddenly and at the same moment, the ebullition ceased and
  • the compound changed to a dark purple, which faded again more slowly to
  • a watery green. My visitor, who had watched these metamorphoses with a
  • keen eye, smiled, set down the glass upon the table, and then turned and
  • looked upon me with an air of scrutiny.
  • "And now," said he, "to settle what remains. Will you be wise? will you
  • be guided? will you suffer me to take this glass in my hand and to go
  • forth from your house without further parley? or has the greed of
  • curiosity too much command of you? Think before you answer, for it shall
  • be done as you decide. As you decide, you shall be left as you were
  • before, and neither richer nor wiser, unless the sense of service
  • rendered to a man in mortal distress may be counted as a kind of riches
  • of the soul. Or, if you shall so prefer to choose, a new province of
  • knowledge and new avenues to fame and power shall be laid open to you,
  • here, in this room, upon the instant; and your sight shall be blasted by
  • a prodigy to stagger the unbelief of Satan."
  • "Sir," said I, affecting a coolness that I was far from truly
  • possessing, "you speak enigmas, and you will perhaps not wonder that I
  • hear you with no very strong impression of belief. But I have gone too
  • far in the way of inexplicable services to pause before I see the end."
  • "It is well," replied my visitor. "Lanyon, you remember your vows: what
  • follows is under the seal of our profession. And now, you who have so
  • long been bound to the most narrow and material views, you who have
  • denied the virtue of transcendental medicine, you who have derided your
  • superiors--behold!"
  • He put the glass to his lips and drank at one gulp. A cry followed; he
  • reeled, staggered, clutched at the table and held on, staring with
  • injected eyes, gasping with open mouth; and as I looked there came, I
  • thought, a change--he seemed to swell--his face became suddenly black
  • and the features seemed to melt and alter--and the next moment I had
  • sprung to my feet and leaped back against the wall, my arm raised to
  • shield me from that prodigy, my mind submerged in terror.
  • "O God!" I screamed, and "O God!" again and again; for there before my
  • eyes--pale and shaken, and half fainting, and groping before him with
  • his hands, like a man restored from death--there stood Henry Jekyll!
  • What he told me in the next hour I cannot bring my mind to set on paper.
  • I saw what I saw, I heard what I heard, and my soul sickened at it; and
  • yet now when that sight has faded from my eyes, I ask myself if I
  • believe it, and I cannot answer. My life is shaken to its roots; sleep
  • has left me; the deadliest terror sits by me at all hours of the day and
  • night; I feel that my days are numbered, and that I must die; and yet I
  • shall die incredulous. As for the moral turpitude that man unveiled to
  • me, even with tears of penitence, I cannot, even in memory, dwell on it
  • without a start of horror. I will say but one thing, Utterson, and that
  • (if you can bring your mind to credit it) will be more than enough. The
  • creature who crept into my house that night was, on Jekyll's own
  • confession, known by the name of Hyde, and hunted for in every corner of
  • the land as the murderer of Carew.
  • HASTIE LANYON.
  • HENRY JEKYLL'S FULL STATEMENT OF THE CASE
  • I was born in the year 18-- to a large fortune, endowed besides with
  • excellent parts, inclined by nature to industry, fond of the respect of
  • the wise and good among my fellow-men, and thus, as might have been
  • supposed, with every guarantee of an honourable and distinguished
  • future. And indeed the worst of my faults was a certain impatient gaiety
  • of disposition such as has made the happiness of many, but such as I
  • found it hard to reconcile with my imperious desire to carry my head
  • high, and wear a more than commonly grave countenance before the public.
  • Hence it came about that I concealed my pleasures; and that when I
  • reached years of reflection, and began to look round me and take stock
  • of my progress and position in the world, I stood already committed to a
  • profound duplicity of life. Many a man would have even blazoned such
  • irregularities as I was guilty of; but from the high views that I had
  • set before me, I regarded and hid them with an almost morbid sense of
  • shame. It was thus rather the exacting nature of my aspirations than any
  • particular degradation in my faults, that made me what I was, and, with
  • even a deeper trench than in the majority of men, severed in me those
  • provinces of good and ill which divide and compound man's dual nature.
  • In this case, I was driven to reflect deeply and inveterately on that
  • hard law of life, which lies at the root of religion and is one of the
  • most plentiful springs of distress. Though so profound a double-dealer,
  • I was in no sense a hypocrite; both sides of me were in dead earnest; I
  • was no more myself when I laid aside restraint and plunged in shame,
  • than when I laboured, in the eye of day, at the furtherance of
  • knowledge or the relief of sorrow and suffering. And it chanced that the
  • direction of my scientific studies, which led wholly towards the mystic
  • and the transcendental, reacted and shed a strong light on this
  • consciousness of the perennial war among my members. With every day, and
  • from both sides of my intelligence, the moral and the intellectual, I
  • thus drew steadily nearer to that truth, by whose partial discovery I
  • have been doomed to such a dreadful shipwreck: that man is not truly
  • one, but truly two. I say two, because the state of my own knowledge
  • does not pass beyond that point. Others will follow, others will
  • outstrip me on the same lines; and I hazard the guess that man will be
  • ultimately known for a mere polity of multifarious, incongruous and
  • independent denizens. I for my part, from the nature of my life,
  • advanced infallibly in one direction, and in one direction only. It was
  • on the moral side, and in my own person, that I learned to recognise the
  • thorough and primitive duality of man; I saw that of the two natures
  • that contended in the field of my consciousness, even if I could rightly
  • be said to be either, it was only because I was radically both; and from
  • an early date, even before the course of my scientific discoveries had
  • begun to suggest the most naked possibility of such a miracle, I had
  • learned to dwell with pleasure, as a beloved day-dream, on the thought
  • of the separation of these elements. If each, I told myself, could but
  • be housed in separate identities, life would be relieved of all that was
  • unbearable; the unjust might go his way, delivered from the aspirations
  • and remorse of his more upright twin; and the just could walk
  • steadfastly and securely on his upward path, doing the good things in
  • which he found his pleasure, and no longer exposed to disgrace and
  • penitence by the hands of this extraneous evil. It was the curse of
  • mankind that these incongruous fagots were thus bound together--that in
  • the agonised womb of consciousness these polar twins should be
  • continuously struggling. How, then, were they dissociated?
  • I was so far in my reflections when, as I have said, a side-light began
  • to shine upon the subject from the laboratory table. I began to perceive
  • more deeply than it has ever yet been stated, the trembling
  • immateriality, the mist-like transience, of this seemingly so solid body
  • in which we walk attired. Certain agents I found to have the power to
  • shake and to pluck that fleshy vestment, even as a wind might toss the
  • curtains of a pavilion. For two good reasons, I will not enter deeply
  • into this scientific branch of my confession. First, because I have been
  • made to learn that the doom and burthen of our life is bound for ever on
  • man's shoulders, and when the attempt is made to cast it off, it but
  • returns upon us with more unfamiliar and more awful pressure. Second,
  • because as my narrative will make, alas! too evident, my discoveries
  • were incomplete. Enough, then, that I not only recognised my natural
  • body for the mere aura and effulgence of certain of the powers that made
  • up my spirit, but managed to compound a drug by which these powers
  • should be dethroned from their supremacy, and a second form and
  • countenance substituted, none the less natural to me because they were
  • the expression, and bore the stamp, of lower elements in my soul.
  • I hesitated long before I put this theory to the test of practice. I
  • knew well that I risked death; for any drug that so potently controlled
  • and shook the very fortress of identity, might by the least scruple of
  • an overdose or at the least inopportunity in the moment of exhibition,
  • utterly blot out that immaterial tabernacle which I looked to it to
  • change. But the temptation of a discovery so singular and profound at
  • last overcame the suggestions of alarm. I had long since prepared my
  • tincture; I purchased at once, from a firm of wholesale chemists, a
  • large quantity of a particular salt which I knew, from my experiments,
  • to be the last ingredient required; and late one accursed night, I
  • compounded the elements, watched them boil and smoke together in the
  • glass, and when the ebullition had subsided, with a strong glow of
  • courage drank off the potion.
  • The most racking pangs succeeded; a grinding in the bones, deadly
  • nausea, and a horror of the spirit that cannot be exceeded at the hour
  • of birth or death. Then these agonies began swiftly to subside, and I
  • came to myself as if out of a great sickness. There was something
  • strange in my sensations, something indescribably new and, from its very
  • novelty, incredibly sweet. I felt younger, lighter, happier in body;
  • within I was conscious of a heady recklessness, a current of disordered
  • sensual images running like a mill-race in my fancy, a solution of the
  • bonds of obligation, an unknown but not an innocent freedom of the soul.
  • I knew myself, at the first breath of this new life, to be more wicked,
  • tenfold more wicked, sold a slave to my original evil; and the thought,
  • in that moment, braced and delighted me like wine. I stretched out my
  • hands, exulting in the freshness of these sensations; and in the act I
  • was suddenly aware that I had lost in stature.
  • There was no mirror, at that date, in my room; that which stands beside
  • me as I write was brought there later on, and for the very purpose of
  • these transformations. The night, however, was far gone into the
  • morning--the morning, black as it was, was nearly ripe for the
  • conception of the day--the inmates of my house were locked in the most
  • rigorous hours of slumber; and I determined, flushed as I was with hope
  • and triumph, to venture in my new shape as far as to my bedroom. I
  • crossed the yard, wherein the constellations looked down upon me, I
  • could have thought, with wonder, the first creature of that sort that
  • their unsleeping vigilance had yet disclosed to them; I stole through
  • the corridors, a stranger in my own house; and, coming to my room, I saw
  • for the first time the appearance of Edward Hyde.
  • I must here speak by theory alone, saying not that which I know, but
  • that which I suppose to be most probable. The evil side of my nature, to
  • which I had now transferred the stamping efficacy, was less robust and
  • less developed than the good which I had just deposed. Again, in the
  • course of my life, which had been, after all, nine-tenths a life of
  • effort, virtue, and control, it had been much less exercised and much
  • less exhausted. And hence, as I think, it came about that Edward Hyde
  • was so much smaller, slighter, and younger than Henry Jekyll. Even as
  • good shone upon the countenance of the one, evil was written broadly and
  • plainly on the face of the other. Evil besides (which I must still
  • believe to be the lethal side of man) had left on that body an imprint
  • of deformity and decay. And yet when I looked upon that ugly idol in the
  • glass, I was conscious of no repugnance, rather of a leap of welcome.
  • This too, was myself. It seemed natural and human. In my eyes it bore a
  • livelier image of the spirit, it seemed more express and single, than
  • the imperfect and divided countenance I had been hitherto accustomed to
  • call mine. And in so far I was doubtless right. I have observed that
  • when I bore the semblance of Edward Hyde, none could come near to me at
  • first without a visible misgiving of the flesh. This, as I take it, was
  • because all human beings, as we meet them, are commingled out of good
  • and evil: and Edward Hyde, alone in the ranks of mankind, was pure evil.
  • I lingered but a moment at the mirror: the second and conclusive
  • experiment had yet to be attempted; it yet remained to be seen if I had
  • lost my identity beyond redemption and must flee before daylight from a
  • house that was no longer mine; and, hurrying back to my cabinet, I once
  • more prepared and drank the cup, once more suffered the pangs of
  • dissolution, and came to myself once more with the character, the
  • stature, and the face of Henry Jekyll.
  • That night I had come to the fatal cross roads. Had I approached my
  • discovery in a more noble spirit, had I risked the experiment while
  • under the empire of generous or pious aspirations, all must have been
  • otherwise, and from these agonies of death and birth I had come forth an
  • angel instead of a fiend. The drug had no discriminating action; it was
  • neither diabolical nor divine; it but shook the doors of the
  • prison-house of my disposition; and like the captives of Philippi, that
  • which stood within ran forth. At that time my virtue slumbered; my
  • evil, kept awake by ambition, was alert and swift to seize the occasion;
  • and the thing that was projected was Edward Hyde. Hence, although I had
  • now two characters as well as two appearances, one was wholly evil, and
  • the other was still the old Henry Jekyll, that incongruous compound of
  • whose reformation and improvement I had already learned to despair. The
  • movement was thus wholly toward the worse.
  • Even at that time I had not yet conquered my aversion to the dryness of
  • a life of study. I would still be merrily disposed at times; and as my
  • pleasures were (to say the least) undignified, and I was not only well
  • known and highly considered, but growing towards the elderly man, this
  • incoherency of my life was daily growing more unwelcome. It was on this
  • side that my new power tempted me until I fell in slavery. I had but to
  • drink the cup, to doff at once the body of the noted professor, and to
  • assume, like a thick cloak, that of Edward Hyde. I smiled at the notion;
  • it seemed to me at the time to be humorous; and I made my preparations
  • with the most studious care. I took and furnished that house in Soho, to
  • which Hyde was tracked by the police; and engaged as housekeeper a
  • creature whom I well knew to be silent and unscrupulous. On the other
  • side, I announced to my servants that a Mr. Hyde (whom I described) was
  • to have full liberty and power about my house in the square; and to
  • parry mishaps, I even called and made myself a familiar object, in my
  • second character. I next drew up that will to which you so much
  • objected; so that if anything befell me in the person of Doctor Jekyll,
  • I could enter on that of Edward Hyde without pecuniary loss. And thus
  • fortified, as I supposed, on every side, I began to profit by the
  • strange immunities of my position.
  • Men have before hired bravos to transact their crimes, while their own
  • person and reputation sat under shelter. I was the first that ever did
  • so for his pleasures. I was the first that could thus plod in the public
  • eye with a load of genial respectability, and in a moment, like a
  • schoolboy, strip off these leadings and spring headlong into the sea of
  • liberty. But for me, in my impenetrable mantle, the safety was complete.
  • Think of it--I did not even exist! Let me but escape into my
  • laboratory-door, give me but a second or two to mix and swallow the
  • draught that I had always standing ready; and whatever he had done,
  • Edward Hyde would pass away like the stain of breath upon a mirror; and
  • there in his stead, quietly at home, trimming the midnight lamp in his
  • study, a man who could afford to laugh at suspicion, would be Henry
  • Jekyll.
  • The pleasures which I made haste to seek in my disguise were, as I have
  • said, undignified; I would scarce use a harder term. But in the hands of
  • Edward Hyde they soon began to turn towards the monstrous. When I would
  • come back from these excursions, I was often plunged into a kind of
  • wonder at my vicarious depravity. This familiar that I called out of my
  • own soul, and sent forth alone to do his good pleasure, was a being
  • inherently malign and villainous; his every act and thought centred on
  • self; drinking pleasure with bestial avidity from any degree of torture
  • to another; relentless like a man of stone. Henry Jekyll stood at times
  • aghast before the acts of Edward Hyde; but the situation was apart from
  • ordinary laws, and insidiously relaxed the grasp of conscience. It was
  • Hyde, after all, and Hyde alone, that was guilty. Jekyll was no worse;
  • he woke again to his good qualities seemingly unimpaired; he would even
  • make haste, where it was possible, to undo the evil done by Hyde. And
  • thus his conscience slumbered.
  • Into the details of the infamy at which I thus connived (for even now I
  • can scarce grant that I committed it) I have no design of entering; I
  • mean but to point out the warnings and the successive steps with which
  • my chastisement approached. I met with one accident which, as it brought
  • on no consequence, I shall no more than mention. An act of cruelty to a
  • child aroused against me the anger of a passer-by, whom I recognised the
  • other day in the person of your kinsman; the doctor and the child's
  • family joined him; there were moments when I feared for my life; and at
  • last, in order to pacify their too just resentment, Edward Hyde had to
  • bring them to the door, and pay them in a cheque drawn in the name of
  • Henry Jekyll. But this danger was easily eliminated from the future, by
  • opening an account at another bank in the name of Edward Hyde himself;
  • and when, by sloping my own hand backward, I had supplied my double with
  • a signature, I thought I sat beyond the reach of fate.
  • Some two months before the murder of Sir Danvers, I had been out for one
  • of my adventures, had returned at a late hour, and woke the next day in
  • bed with somewhat odd sensations. It was in vain I looked about me; in
  • vain I saw the decent furniture and tall proportions of my room in the
  • square; in vain that I recognised the pattern of the bed-curtains and
  • the design of the mahogany frame; something still kept insisting that I
  • was not where I was, that I had not wakened where I seemed to be, but in
  • the little room in Soho where I was accustomed to sleep in the body of
  • Edward Hyde. I smiled to myself, and, in my psychological way, began
  • lazily to inquire into the elements of this illusion, occasionally, even
  • as I did so, dropping back into a comfortable morning doze. I was still
  • so engaged when, in one of my more wakeful moments, my eye fell upon my
  • hand. Now the hand of Henry Jekyll (as you have often remarked) was
  • professional in shape and size: it was large, firm, white, and comely.
  • But the hand which I now saw, clearly enough, in the yellow light of a
  • mid-London morning, lying half shut on the bed-clothes, was lean,
  • corded, knuckly, of a dusky pallor, and thickly shaded with a swart
  • growth of hair. It was the hand of Edward Hyde.
  • I must have stared upon it for near half a minute, sunk as I was in the
  • mere stupidity of wonder, before terror woke up in my breast as sudden
  • and startling as the crash of cymbals; and bounding from my bed, I
  • rushed to the mirror. At the sight that met my eyes my blood was changed
  • into something exquisitely thin and icy. Yes, I had gone to bed Henry
  • Jekyll, I had awakened Edward Hyde. How was this to be explained? I
  • asked myself; and then, with another bound of terror--how was it to be
  • remedied? It was well on in the morning; the servants were up; all my
  • drugs were in the cabinet--a long journey, down two pairs of stairs,
  • through the back passage, across the open court and through the
  • anatomical theatre, from where I was then standing horror-struck. It
  • might indeed be possible to cover my face; but of what use was that,
  • when I was unable to conceal the alteration in my stature? And then,
  • with an overpowering sweetness of relief, it came back upon my mind that
  • the servants were already used to the coming and going of my second
  • self. I had soon dressed, as well as I was able, in clothes of my own
  • size: had soon passed through the house, where Bradshaw stared and drew
  • back at seeing Mr. Hyde at such an hour and in such a strange array; and
  • ten minutes later Dr. Jekyll had returned to his own shape, and was
  • sitting down, with a darkened brow, to make a feint of breakfasting.
  • Small indeed was my appetite. This inexplicable incident, this reversal
  • of my previous experience, seemed, like the Babylonian finger on the
  • wall, to be spelling out the letters of my judgment; and I began to
  • reflect more seriously than ever before on the issues and possibilities
  • of my double existence. That part of me which I had the power of
  • projecting had lately been much exercised and nourished; it had seemed
  • to me of late as though the body of Edward Hyde had grown in stature, as
  • though (when I wore that form) I were conscious of a more generous tide
  • of blood; and I began to spy a danger that, if this were much prolonged,
  • the balance of my nature might be permanently overthrown, the power of
  • voluntary change be forfeited, and the character of Edward Hyde become
  • irrevocably mine. The power of the drug had not always been equally
  • displayed. Once, very early in my career, it had totally failed me;
  • since then I had been obliged on more than one occasion to double, and
  • once, with infinite risk of death, to treble the amount; and these rare
  • uncertainties had cast hitherto the sole shadow on my contentment. Now,
  • however, and in the light of that morning's accident, I was led to
  • remark that whereas, in the beginning, the difficulty had been to throw
  • off the body of Jekyll, it had of late gradually but decidedly
  • transferred itself to the other side. All things therefore seemed to
  • point to this: that I was slowly losing hold of my original and better
  • self, and becoming slowly incorporated with my second and worse.
  • Between these two, I now felt I had to choose. My two natures had memory
  • in common, but all other faculties were most unequally shared between
  • them. Jekyll (who was composite) now with the most sensitive
  • apprehensions, now with a greedy gusto, projected and shared in the
  • pleasures and adventures of Hyde; but Hyde was indifferent to Jekyll, or
  • but remembered him as the mountain bandit remembers the cavern in which
  • he conceals himself from pursuit. Jekyll had more than a father's
  • interest; Hyde had more than a son's indifference. To cast in my lot
  • with Jekyll was to die to those appetites which I had long secretly
  • indulged, and had of late begun to pamper. To cast it in with Hyde was
  • to die to a thousand interests and aspirations, and to become, at a blow
  • and for ever, despised and friendless. The bargain might appear unequal;
  • but there was still another consideration in the scales; for while
  • Jekyll would suffer smartingly in the fires of abstinence, Hyde would be
  • not even conscious of all that he had lost. Strange as my circumstances
  • were, the terms of this debate are as old and commonplace as man; much
  • the same inducements and alarms cast the die for any tempted and
  • trembling sinner; and it fell out with me, as it falls with so vast a
  • majority of my fellows, that I chose the better part, and was found
  • wanting in the strength to keep to it.
  • Yes, I preferred the elderly and discontented doctor, surrounded by
  • friends and cherishing honest hopes; and bade a resolute farewell to the
  • liberty, the comparative youth, the light step, leaping pulses, and
  • secret pleasures, that I had enjoyed in the disguise of Hyde. I made
  • this choice perhaps with some unconscious reservation, for I neither
  • gave up the house in Soho, nor destroyed the clothes of Edward Hyde,
  • which still lay ready in my cabinet. For two months, however, I was true
  • to my determination; for two months I led a life of such severity as I
  • had never before attained to, and enjoyed the compensations of an
  • approving conscience. But time began at last to obliterate the freshness
  • of my alarm; the praises of conscience began to grow into a thing of
  • course; I began to be tortured with throes and longings, as of Hyde
  • struggling after freedom; and at last, in an hour of moral weakness, I
  • once again compounded and swallowed the transforming draught.
  • I do not suppose that, when a drunkard reasons with himself upon his
  • vice, he is once out of five hundred times affected by the dangers that
  • he runs through his brutish, physical insensibility; neither had I, long
  • as I had considered my position, made enough allowance for the complete
  • moral insensibility and insensate readiness to evil, which were the
  • leading characters of Edward Hyde. Yet it was by these that I was
  • punished. My devil had been long caged, he came out roaring. I was
  • conscious, even when I took the draught, of a more unbridled, a more
  • furious propensity to ill. It must have been this, I suppose, that
  • stirred in my soul that tempest of impatience with which I listened to
  • the civilities of my unhappy victim; I declare at least, before God, no
  • man morally sane could have been guilty of that crime upon so pitiful a
  • provocation; and that I struck in no more reasonable spirit than that in
  • which a sick child may break a plaything. But I had voluntarily stripped
  • myself of all those balancing instincts, by which even the worst of us
  • continues to walk with some degree of steadiness among temptations; and
  • in my case, to be tempted, however slightly, was to fall.
  • Instantly the spirit of hell awoke in me and raged. With a transport of
  • glee I mauled the unresisting body, tasting delight from every blow: and
  • it was not till weariness had begun to succeed, that I was suddenly, in
  • the top fit of my delirium, struck through the heart by a cold thrill of
  • terror. A mist dispersed; I saw my life to be forfeit; and fled from the
  • scene of these excesses, at once glorying and trembling, my lust of evil
  • gratified and stimulated, my love of life screwed to the topmost peg. I
  • ran to the house in Soho, and (to make assurance doubly sure) destroyed
  • my papers; thence I set out through the lamplit streets, in the same
  • divided ecstasy of mind, gloating on my crime, light-headedly devising
  • others in the future, and yet still hastening and still hearkening in my
  • wake for the steps of the avenger. Hyde had a song upon his lips as he
  • compounded the draught, and as he drank it, pledged the dead man. The
  • pangs of transformation had not done tearing him, before Henry Jekyll,
  • with streaming tears of gratitude and remorse, had fallen upon his knees
  • and lifted his clasped hands to God. The veil of self-indulgence was
  • rent from head to foot, I saw my life as a whole: I followed it up from
  • the days of childhood, when I had walked with my father's hand, and
  • through the self-denying toils of my professional life, to arrive again
  • and again, with the same sense of unreality, at the damned horrors of
  • the evening. I could have screamed aloud; I sought with tears and
  • prayers to smother down the crowd of hideous images and sounds with
  • which my memory swarmed against me; and still, between the petitions,
  • the ugly face of my iniquity stared into my soul. As the acuteness of
  • this remorse began to die away, it was succeeded by a sense of joy. The
  • problem of my conduct was solved. Hyde was thenceforth impossible;
  • whether I would or not, I was now confined to the better part of my
  • existence; and oh how I rejoiced to think it! with what willing humility
  • I embraced anew the restrictions of natural life! with what sincere
  • renunciation I locked the door by which I had so often gone and come,
  • and ground the key under my heel!
  • The next day came the news that the murder had been overlooked, that the
  • guilt of Hyde was patent to the world, and that the victim was a man
  • high in public estimation. It was not only a crime, it had been a tragic
  • folly. I think I was glad to know it; I think I was glad to have my
  • better impulses thus buttressed and guarded by the terrors of the
  • scaffold. Jekyll was now my city of refuge; let but Hyde peep out an
  • instant, and the hands of all men would be raised to take and slay him.
  • I resolved in my future conduct to redeem the past; and I can say with
  • honesty that my resolve was fruitful of some good. You know yourself how
  • earnestly in the last months of last year, I laboured to relieve
  • suffering; you know that much was done for others, and that the days
  • passed quietly, almost happily for myself. Nor can I truly say that I
  • wearied of this beneficent and innocent life; I think instead that I
  • daily enjoyed it more completely; but I was still cursed with my duality
  • of purpose; and as the first edge of my penitence wore off, the lower
  • side of me, so long indulged, so recently chained down, began to growl
  • for licence. Not that I dreamed of resuscitating Hyde; the bare idea of
  • that would startle me to frenzy: no, it was in my own person that I was
  • once more tempted to trifle with my conscience; and it was as an
  • ordinary secret sinner that I at last fell before the assaults of
  • temptation.
  • There comes an end to all things; the most capacious measure is filled
  • at last; and this brief condescension to evil finally destroyed the
  • balance of my soul. And yet I was not alarmed; the fall seemed natural,
  • like a return to the old days before I had made my discovery. It was a
  • fine, clear, January day, wet under foot where the frost had melted, but
  • cloudless overhead; and the Regent's Park was full of winter chirrupings
  • and sweet with spring odours. I sat in the sun on a bench; the animal
  • within me licking the chops of memory; the spiritual side a little
  • drowsed, promising subsequent penitence, but not yet moved to begin.
  • After all, I reflected, I was like my neighbours; and then I smiled,
  • comparing myself with other men, comparing my active goodwill with the
  • lazy cruelty of their neglect. And at the very moment of that
  • vainglorious thought a qualm came over me, a horrid nausea and the most
  • deadly shuddering. These passed away, and left me faint; and then, as in
  • its turn the faintness subsided, I began to be aware of a change in the
  • temper of my thoughts, a greater boldness, a contempt of danger, a
  • solution of the bonds of obligation. I looked down; my clothes hung
  • formlessly on my shrunken limbs; the hand that lay on my knee was corded
  • and hairy. I was once more Edward Hyde. A moment before I had been safe
  • of all men's respect, wealthy, beloved--the cloth laying for me in the
  • dining-room at home; and now I was the common quarry of mankind, hunted,
  • houseless, a known murderer, thrall to the gallows.
  • My reason wavered, but it did not fail me utterly. I have more than once
  • observed that, in my second character, my faculties seemed sharpened to
  • a point and my spirits more tensely elastic; thus it came about that,
  • where Jekyll perhaps might have succumbed, Hyde rose to the importance
  • of the moment. My drugs were in one of the presses of my cabinet; how
  • was I to reach them? That was the problem that (crushing my temples in
  • my hands) I set myself to solve. The laboratory door I had closed. If I
  • sought to enter by the house, my own servants would consign me to the
  • gallows. I saw I must employ another hand, and thought of Lanyon. How
  • was he to be reached? how persuaded? Supposing that I escaped capture in
  • the streets, how was I to make my way into his presence? and how should
  • I, an unknown and displeasing visitor, prevail on the famous physician
  • to rifle the study of his colleague, Dr. Jekyll? Then I remembered that
  • of my original character, one part remained to me: I could write my own
  • hand; and once I had conceived that kindling spark, the way that I must
  • follow became lighted up from end to end.
  • Thereupon I arranged my clothes as best I could, and summoning a passing
  • hansom, drove to a hotel in Portland Street, the name of which I chanced
  • to remember. At my appearance (which was indeed comical enough, however
  • tragic a fate these garments covered) the driver could not conceal his
  • mirth. I gnashed my teeth upon him with a gust of devilish fury; and the
  • smile withered from his face--happily for him--yet more happily for
  • myself, for in another instant I had certainly dragged him from his
  • perch. At the inn, as I entered, I looked about me with so black a
  • countenance as made the attendants tremble; not a look did they exchange
  • in my presence; but obsequiously took my orders, led me to a private
  • room, and brought me wherewithal to write. Hyde in danger of his life
  • was a creature new to me: shaken with inordinate anger, strung to the
  • pitch of murder, lusting to inflict pain. Yet the creature was astute;
  • mastered his fury with a great effort of the will; composed his two
  • important letters, one to Lanyon and one to Poole; and that he might
  • receive actual evidence of their being posted, sent them out with
  • directions that they should be registered.
  • Thenceforward, he sat all day over the fire in the private room, gnawing
  • his nails; there he dined, sitting alone with his fears, the waiter
  • visibly quailing before his eye; and then, when the night was fully
  • come, he set forth in the corner of a closed cab, and was driven to and
  • fro about the streets of the city. He, I say--I cannot say, I. That
  • child of Hell had nothing human; nothing lived in him but fear and
  • hatred. And when at last, thinking the driver had begun to grow
  • suspicious, he discharged the cab and ventured on foot, attired in his
  • misfitting clothes, an object marked out for observation, into the midst
  • of the nocturnal passengers, these two base passions raged within him
  • like a tempest. He walked fast, hunted by his fears, chattering to
  • himself, skulking through the less frequented thoroughfares, counting
  • the minutes that still divided him from midnight. Once a woman spoke to
  • him, offering, I think, a box of lights. He smote her in the face, and
  • she fled.
  • When I came to myself at Lanyon's, the horror of my old friend perhaps
  • affected me somewhat: I do not know; it was at least but a drop in the
  • sea to the abhorrence with which I looked back upon these hours. A
  • change had come over me. It was no longer the fear of the gallows, it
  • was the horror of being Hyde that racked me. I received Lanyon's
  • condemnation partly in a dream; it was partly in a dream that I came
  • home to my own house and got into bed. I slept after the prostration of
  • the day, with a stringent and profound slumber which not even the
  • nightmares that wrung me could avail to break. I awoke in the morning
  • shaken, weakened, but refreshed. I still hated and feared the thought of
  • the brute that slept within me, and I had not, of course, forgotten the
  • appalling dangers of the day before; but I was once more at home, in my
  • own house and close to my drugs; and gratitude for my escape shone so
  • strong in my soul that it almost rivalled the brightness of hope.
  • I was stepping leisurely across the court after breakfast, drinking the
  • chill of the air with pleasure, when I was seized again with those
  • indescribable sensations that heralded the change; and I had but the
  • time to gain the shelter of my cabinet, before I was once again raging
  • and freezing with the passions of Hyde. It took on this occasion a
  • double dose to recall me to myself; and alas! six hours after, as I sat
  • looking sadly in the fire, the pangs returned, and the drug had to be
  • re-administered. In short, from that day forth it seemed only by a great
  • effort as of gymnastics, and only under the immediate stimulation of the
  • drug, that I was able to wear the countenance of Jekyll. At all hours of
  • the day and night I would be taken with the premonitory shudder; above
  • all, if I slept, or even dozed for a moment in my chair, it was always
  • as Hyde that I awakened. Under the strain of this continually impending
  • doom and by the sleeplessness to which I now condemned myself, ay, even
  • beyond what I had thought possible to man, I became, in my own person, a
  • creature eaten up and emptied by fever, languidly weak both in body and
  • mind, and solely occupied by one thought: the horror of my other self.
  • But when I slept, or when the virtue of the medicine wore off, I would
  • leap almost without transition (for the pangs of transformation grew
  • daily less marked) into the possession of a fancy brimming with images
  • of terror, a soul boiling with causeless hatreds, and a body that seemed
  • not strong enough to contain the raging energies of life. The powers of
  • Hyde seemed to have grown with the sickliness of Jekyll. And certainly
  • the hate that now divided them was equal on each side. With Jekyll, it
  • was a thing of vital instinct. He had now seen the full deformity of
  • that creature that shared with him some of the phenomena of
  • consciousness, and was co-heir with him to death: and beyond these links
  • of community, which in themselves made the most poignant part of his
  • distress, he thought of Hyde, for all his energy of life, as of
  • something not only hellish but inorganic. This was the shocking thing;
  • that the slime of the pit seemed to utter cries and voices; that the
  • amorphous dust gesticulated and sinned; that what was dead, and had no
  • shape, should usurp the offices of life. And this again, that that
  • insurgent horror was knit to him closer than a wife, closer than an eye;
  • lay caged in his flesh, where he heard it mutter and felt it struggle to
  • be born; and at every hour of weakness, and in the confidence of
  • slumber, prevailed against him, and deposed him out of life. The hatred
  • of Hyde for Jekyll was of a different order. His terror of the gallows
  • drove him continually to commit temporary suicide, and return to his
  • subordinate station of a part instead of a person; but he loathed the
  • necessity, he loathed the despondency into which Jekyll was now fallen,
  • and he resented the dislike with which he was himself regarded. Hence
  • the ape-like tricks that he would play me, scrawling in my own hand
  • blasphemies on the pages of my books, burning the letters and destroying
  • the portrait of my father; and indeed, had it not been for his fear of
  • death, he would long ago have ruined himself in order to involve me in
  • the ruin. But his love of life is wonderful; I go further: I, who sicken
  • and freeze at the mere thought of him, when I recall the abjection and
  • passion of this attachment, and when I know how he fears my power to
  • cut him off by suicide, I find it in my heart to pity him.
  • It is useless, and the time awfully fails me, to prolong this
  • description; no one has ever suffered such torments, let that suffice;
  • and yet even to these, habit brought--no, not alleviation--but a certain
  • callousness of soul, a certain acquiescence of despair; and my
  • punishment might have gone on for years, but for the last calamity which
  • has now fallen, and which has finally severed me from my own face and
  • nature. My provision of the salt, which had never been renewed since the
  • date of the first experiment, began to run low. I sent out for a fresh
  • supply, and mixed the draught; the ebullition followed, and the first
  • change of colour, not the second; I drank it and it was without
  • efficiency. You will learn from Poole how I have had London ransacked;
  • it was in vain; and I am now persuaded that my first supply was impure,
  • and that it was that unknown impurity which lent efficacy to the
  • draught.
  • About a week has passed, and I am now finishing this statement under the
  • influence of the last of the old powders. This, then, is the last time,
  • short of a miracle, that Henry Jekyll can think his own thoughts or see
  • his own face (now how sadly altered!) in the glass. Nor must I delay too
  • long to bring my writing to an end; for if my narrative has hitherto
  • escaped destruction, it has been by a combination of great prudence and
  • great good luck. Should the throes of change take me in the act of
  • writing it, Hyde will tear it in pieces; but if some time shall have
  • elapsed after I have laid it by, his wonderful selfishness and
  • circumscription to the moment will probably save it once again from the
  • action of his ape-like spite. And indeed the doom that is closing on us
  • both has already changed and crushed him. Half an hour from now, when I
  • shall again and for ever re-indue that hated personality, I know how I
  • shall sit shuddering and weeping in my chair, or continue, with the most
  • strained and fearstruck ecstasy of listening, to pace up and down this
  • room (my last earthly refuge) and give ear to every sound of menace.
  • Will Hyde die upon the scaffold? or will he find the courage to release
  • himself at the last moment? God knows; I am careless; this is my true
  • hour of death, and what is to follow concerns another than myself. Here
  • then, as I lay down the pen and proceed to seal up my confession, I
  • bring the life of that unhappy Henry Jekyll to an end.
  • THRAWN JANET
  • THRAWN JANET
  • The Reverend Murdoch Soulis was long minister of the moorland parish of
  • Balweary, in the vale of Dule. A severe, bleak-faced old man, dreadful
  • to his hearers, he dwelt in the last years of his life, without relative
  • or servant or any human company, in the small and lonely manse under the
  • Hanging Shaw. In spite of the iron composure of his features, his eye
  • was wild, scared, and uncertain; and when he dwelt, in private
  • admonitions, on the future of the impenitent, it seemed as if his eye
  • pierced through the storms of time to the terrors of eternity. Many
  • young persons, coming to prepare themselves against the season of the
  • Holy Communion, were dreadfully affected by his talk. He had a sermon on
  • 1st Peter v. and 8th, "The devil as a roaring lion," on the Sunday after
  • every seventeenth of August, and he was accustomed to surpass himself
  • upon that text both by the appalling nature of the matter and the terror
  • of his bearing in the pulpit. The children were frightened into fits,
  • and the old looked more than usually oracular, and were, all that day,
  • full of those hints that Hamlet deprecated. The manse itself, where it
  • stood by the water of Dule among some thick trees, with the Shaw
  • overhanging it on the one side, and on the other many cold, moorish
  • hill-tops rising towards the sky, had begun, at a very early period of
  • Mr. Soulis's ministry, to be avoided in the dusk hours by all who valued
  • themselves upon their prudence; and guidmen sitting at the clachan
  • alehouse shook their heads together at the thought of passing late by
  • that uncanny neighbourhood. There was one spot, to be more particular,
  • which was regarded with especial awe. The manse stood between the
  • high-road and the water of Dule, with a gable to each; its back was
  • towards the kirktown of Balweary, nearly half a mile away; in front of
  • it, a bare garden, hedged with thorn, occupied the land between the
  • river and the road. The house was two stories high, with two large rooms
  • on each. It opened not directly on the garden, but on a causewayed path,
  • or passage, giving on the road on the one hand, and closed on the other
  • by the tall willows and elders that bordered on the stream. And it was
  • this strip of causeway that enjoyed among the young parishioners of
  • Balweary so infamous a reputation. The minister walked there often after
  • dark, sometimes groaning aloud in the instancy of his unspoken prayers;
  • and when he was from home, and the manse door was locked, the more
  • daring schoolboys ventured, with beating hearts, to "follow my leader"
  • across that legendary spot.
  • This atmosphere of terror, surrounding, as it did, a man of God of
  • spotless character and orthodoxy, was a common cause of wonder and
  • subject of inquiry among the few strangers who were led by chance or
  • business into that unknown, outlying country. But many even of the
  • people of the parish were ignorant of the strange events which had
  • marked the first year of Mr. Soulis's ministrations; and among those who
  • were better informed, some were naturally reticent, and others shy of
  • that particular topic. Now and again, only, one of the older folk would
  • warm into courage over his third tumbler, and recount the cause of the
  • minister's strange looks and solitary life.
  • Fifty years syne, when Mr. Soulis cam' first into Ba'weary, he was still
  • a young man--a callant, the folk said--fu' o' book-learnin' an' grand at
  • the exposition, but, as was natural in sae young a man, wi' nae leevin'
  • experience in religion. The younger sort were greatly taken wi' his
  • gifts an' his gab; but auld, concerned, serious men and women were moved
  • even to prayer for the young man, whom they took to be a self-deceiver,
  • an' the parish that was like to be sae ill-supplied. It was before the
  • days o' the Moderates--weary fa' them; but ill things are like
  • guid--they baith come bit by bit, a pickle at a time; an' there were
  • folk even then that said the Lord had left the college professors to
  • their ain devices, an' the lads that went to study wi' them wad hae done
  • mair an' better sittin' in a peat-bog, like their forbears o' the
  • persecution, wi' a Bible under their oxter an' a speerit o' prayer in
  • their heart. There was nae doubt, onyway, but that Mr. Soulis had been
  • ower lang at the college. He was careful an' troubled for mony things
  • besides the ae thing needful. He had a feck o' books wi' him--mair than
  • had ever been seen before in a' that presbytery; and a sair wark the
  • carrier had wi' them, for they were a' like to have smoored in the
  • De'il's Hag between this an' Kilmackerlie. They were books o' divinity,
  • to be sure, or so they ca'd them; but the serious were of opinion there
  • was little service for sae mony, when the hale o' God's Word would gang
  • in the neuk o' a plaid. Then he wad sit half the day, an' half the nicht
  • forbye, which was scant decent--writin', nae less; an' first, they were
  • feared he wad read his sermons; an' syne it proved he was writin' a book
  • himsel', which was surely no' flttin' for ane o' his years an' sma'
  • experience.
  • Onyway it behoved him to get an auld, decent wife to keep the manse for
  • him an' see to his bit denners; an' he was recommended to an auld
  • limmer--Janet M'Clour, they ca'd her--an' sae far left to himsel' as to
  • be ower persuaded. There was mony advised him to the contrar, for Janet
  • was mair than suspeckit by the best folk in Ba'weary. Lang or that, she
  • had had a wean to a dragoon; she hadna come forrit[5] for maybe thretty
  • year; an' bairns had seen her mumblin' to hersel' up on Key's Loan in
  • the gloamin', whilk was an unco time an' place for a God-fearin' woman.
  • Howsoever, it was the laird himsel' that had first tauld the minister o'
  • Janet; an' in thae days he wad hae gane a far gate to pleesure the
  • laird. When folk tauld him that Janet was sib to the de'il, it was a'
  • superstition by his way o' it; an' when they cast up the Bible to him
  • an' the witch o' Endor, he wad threep it doun their thrapples that thir
  • days were a' gane by, an' the de'il was mercifully restrained.
  • Weel, when it got about the clachan that Janet M'Clour was to be servant
  • at the manse, the folk were fair mad wi' her an' him thegither; an' some
  • o' the guid wives had nae better to dae than get round her door-cheeks
  • and chairge her wi' a' that was ken't again' her, frae the sodger's
  • bairn to John Tamson's twa kye. She was nae great speaker; folk usually
  • let her gang her ain gate, an' she let them gang theirs, wi' neither
  • Fair-guid-een nor Fair-guid-day: but when she buckled to, she had a
  • tongue to deave the miller. Up she got, an' there wasna an auld story in
  • Ba'weary but she gart somebody lowp for it that day; they couldna say ae
  • thing but she could say twa to it; till, at the hinder end, the
  • guidwives up and claught hand o' her, an' clawed the coats aff her back,
  • an' pu'd her doun the clachan to the water o' Dule, to see if she were a
  • witch or no, soom or droun. The carline skirled till ye could hear her
  • at the Hangin' Shaw, an' she focht like ten; there was mony a guidwife
  • bure the mark o' her neist day an' mony a lang day after; an' just in
  • the hottest o' the collieshangie, wha suld come up (for his sins) but
  • the new minister.
  • "Women," said he (and he had a grand voice), "I charge you in the Lord's
  • name to let her go."
  • Janet ran to him--she was fair wud wi' terror--an' clang to him, an'
  • prayed him, for Christ's sake, save her frae the cummers; an' they, for
  • their pairt, tauld him a' that was ken't, an' maybe mair.
  • "Woman," says he to Janet, "is this true?"
  • "As the Lord sees me," says she, "as the Lord made me, no a word o't.
  • Forbye the bairn," says she, "I've been a decent woman a' my days."
  • "Will you," says Mr. Soulis, "in the name of God, and before me, His
  • unworthy minister, renounce the devil and his works?"
  • Weel, it wad appear that when he askit that, she gave a girn that fairly
  • frichtit them that saw her, an' they could hear her teeth play dirl
  • thegither in her chafts; but there was naething for't but the ae way or
  • the ither; an' Janet lifted up her hand an' renounced the de'il before
  • them a'.
  • "And now," says Mr. Soulis to the guidwives, "home with ye, one and all,
  • and pray to God for His forgiveness."
  • An' he gied Janet his arm, though she had little on her but a sark, an'
  • took her up the clachan to her ain door like a leddy o' the land; an'
  • her screighin' and laughin' as was a scandal to be heard.
  • There were mony grave folk lang ower their prayers that nicht; but when
  • the morn cam' there was sic a fear fell upon a' Ba'weary that the bairns
  • hid theirsels, an' even the men-folk stood an' keekit frae their doors.
  • For there was Janet comin' doun the clachan--her or her likeness, nane
  • could tell--wi' her neck thrawn, an' her heid on ae side, like a body
  • that has been hangit, an' a girn on her face like an unstreakit corp. By
  • an' by they got used wi' it, an' even speered at her to ken what was
  • wrang; but frae that day forth she couldna speak like a Christian woman,
  • but slavered an' played click wi' her teeth like a pair o' shears; an'
  • frae that day forth the name o' God cam' never on her lips. Whiles she
  • wad try to say it, but it michtna be. Them that kenned best said least;
  • but they never gied that Thing the name o' Janet M'Clour; for the auld
  • Janet, by their way o't, was in muckle hell that day. But the minister
  • was neither to haud nor to bind; he preached about naething but the
  • folk's cruelty that had gi'en her a stroke of the palsy; he skelpit the
  • bairns that meddled her; an' he had her up to the manse that same nicht,
  • an' dwalled there a' his lane wi' her under the Hangin' Shaw.
  • Weel, time gaed by: an' the idler sort commenced to think mair lichtly
  • o' that black business. The minister was weel thocht o'; he was aye late
  • at the writing, folk wad see his can'le doon by the Dule water after
  • twal' at e'en; an' he seemed pleased wi' himsel' an' upsitten as at
  • first, though a' body could see that he was dwining. As for Janet she
  • cam' an' she gaed; if she didna speak muckle afore, it was reason she
  • should speak less then; she meddled naebody; but she was an eldritch
  • thing to see, an' nane wad hae mistrysted wi' her for Ba'weary glebe.
  • About the end o' July there cam' a spell o' weather, the like o't never
  • was in that countryside; it was lown an' het an' heartless; the herds
  • couldna win up the Black Hill, the bairns were ower weariet to play; an'
  • yet it was gousty too, wi' claps o' het wund that rumm'led in the glens,
  • and bits o' shouers that slockened naething. We aye thocht it but to
  • thun'er on the morn; but the morn cam', an' the morn's morning, an' it
  • was aye the same uncanny weather, sair on folks and bestial. O' a' that
  • were the waur, nane suffered like Mr. Soulis; he could neither sleep nor
  • eat, he tauld his elders; an' when he wasna writin' at his weary book,
  • he wad be stravaguin' ower a' the countryside like a man possessed, when
  • a' body else was blithe to keep caller ben the house.
  • Abune Hangin' Shaw, in the bield o' the Black Hill, there's a bit
  • enclosed grund wi' an iron yett; an' it seems, in the auld days, that
  • was the kirkyaird o' Ba'weary, and consecrated by the Papists before the
  • blessed licht shone upon the kingdom. It was a great howff o' Mr.
  • Soulis's, onyway; there he wad sit an' consider his sermons; an' indeed
  • it's a bieldy bit. Weel, as he cam' ower the wast end o' the Black Hill
  • ae day, he saw first twa, an' syne fower, an' syne seeven corbie craws
  • fleein' round an' round abune the auld kirkyaird. They flew laigh an'
  • heavy, an' squawked to ither as they gaed; an' it was clear to Mr.
  • Soulis that something had put them frae their ordinar'. He wasna easy
  • fleyed, an' gaed straucht up to the wa's; an' what suld he find there
  • but a man, or the appearance o' a man, sittin' in the inside upon a
  • grave. He was of a great stature, an' black as hell, an' his e'en were
  • singular to see.[6] Mr. Soulis had heard tell o' black men, mony's the
  • time; but there was something unco about this black man that daunted
  • him. Het as he was, he took a kind o' cauld grue in the marrow o' his
  • banes; but up he spak for a' that; an' says he: "My friend, are you a
  • stranger in this place?" The black man answered never a word; he got
  • upon his feet, an' begoud to hirsle to the wa' on the far side; but he
  • aye lookit at the minister; an' the minister stood an' lookit back; till
  • a' in a meenit the black man was ower the wa' an' rinnin' for the bield
  • o' the trees. Mr. Soulis, he hardly kenned why, ran after him; but he
  • was fair forjeskit wi' his walk an' the het, unhalesome weather; an' rin
  • as he likit, he got nae mair than a glisk o' the black man amang the
  • birks, till he won doun to the foot o' the hillside, an' there he saw
  • him ance mair, gaun hap-step-an'-lowp ower Dule water to the manse.
  • Mr. Soulis wasna weel pleased that this fearsome gangrel suld mak' sae
  • free wi' Ba'weary manse; an' he ran the harder, an', wet shoon, ower the
  • burn, an' up the walk; but the deil a black man was there to see. He
  • stepped out upon the road, but there was naebody there; he gaed a' ower
  • the gairden, but na, nae black man. At the hinder end, an' a bit feared,
  • as was but natural, he lifted the hasp an' into the manse; an' there was
  • Janet M'Clour before his een, wi' her thrawn craig, an' nane sae pleased
  • to see him. An' he aye minded sinsyne, when first he set his een upon
  • her, he had the same cauld and deidly grue.
  • "Janet," says he, "have you seen a black man?"
  • "A black man?" quo' she. "Save us a'! Ye're no wise, minister. There's
  • nae black man in a' Ba'weary."
  • But she didna speak plain, ye maun understand; but yam-yammered, like a
  • powney wi' the bit in its moo.
  • "Weel," says he, "Janet, if there was nae black man, I have spoken with
  • the Accuser of the Brethren."
  • An' he sat down like ane wi' a fever, an' his teeth chittered in his
  • heid.
  • "Hoots," says she, "think shame to yoursel', minister"; an' gied him a
  • drap brandy that she keept aye by her.
  • Syne Mr. Soulis gaed into his study amang a' his books. It's a lang,
  • laigh, mirk chalmer, perishin' cauld in winter, an' no' very dry even in
  • the tap o' the simmer, for the manse stands near the burn. Sae doun he
  • sat, an' thocht o' a' that had come an' gane since he was in Ba'weary,
  • an' his hame, an' the days when he was a bairn an' ran daffin' on the
  • braes; an' that black man aye ran in his heid like the owercome o' a
  • sang. Aye the mair he thocht, the mair he thocht o' the black man. He
  • tried the prayer, an' the words wadna come to him; an' he tried, they
  • say, to write at his book, but he couldna mak' nae mair o' that. There
  • was whiles he thocht the black man was at his oxter, an' the swat stood
  • upon him cauld as well-water; an' there was ither whiles when he cam' to
  • himsel' like a christened bairn an' minded naething.
  • The upshot was that he gaed to the window an' stood glowrin' at Dule
  • water. The trees are unco thick, an' the water lies deep an' black under
  • the manse; an' there was Janet washin' the cla'es wi' her coats kilted.
  • She had her back to the minister, an' he, for his pairt, hardly kenned
  • what he was lookin' at. Syne she turned round, an' shawed her face; Mr.
  • Soulis had the same cauld grue as twice that day afore, an' it was borne
  • in upon him what folk said, that Janet was deid lang syne, an' this was
  • a bogle in her clay-cauld flesh. He drew back a pickle and he scanned
  • her narrowly. She was tramp-trampin' in the cla'es, croonin' to hersel';
  • and eh! Gude guide us, but it was a fearsome face. Whiles she sang
  • louder, but there was nae man born o' woman that could tell the words o'
  • her sang; an' whiles she lookit side-lang doun, but there was naething
  • there for her to look at. There gaed a scunner through the flesh upon
  • his banes; an' that was Heeven's advertisement. But Mr. Soulis just
  • blamed himsel', he said, to think sae ill o' a puir, auld afflicted wife
  • that hadna a freend forbye himsel'; an' he put up a bit prayer for him
  • an' her, an' drank a little caller water--for his heart rose again' the
  • meat--an' gaed up to his naked bed in the gloamin'.
  • That was a nicht that has never been forgotten in Ba'weary, the nicht o'
  • the seeventeenth o' August, seeventeen hun'er' an' twal'. It had been
  • het afore, as I hae said, but that nicht it was better than ever. The
  • sun gaed doun amang unco-lookin' clouds; it fell as mirk as the pit; no'
  • a star, no' a breath o' wund; ye couldna see your han' afore your face,
  • an' even the auld folk cuist the covers frae their beds an' lay pechin'
  • for their breath. Wi' a' that he had upon his mind, it was geyan
  • unlikely Mr. Soulis wad get muckle sleep. He lay an' he tummled; the
  • gude, caller bed that he got into brunt his very banes; whiles he slept,
  • an' whiles he waukened; whiles he heard the time o' nicht, an' whiles a
  • tyke yowlin' up the muir, as if somebody was deid; whiles he thocht he
  • heard bogles claverin' in his lug, an' whiles he saw spunkies in the
  • room. He behoved, he judged, to be sick; an' sick he was--little he
  • jaloosed the sickness.
  • At the hinder end he got a clearness in his mind, sat up in his sark on
  • the bed-side, an' fell thinkin' ance mair o' the black man an' Janet. He
  • couldna weel tell how--maybe it was the cauld to his feet--but it cam'
  • in upon him wi' a spate that there was some connection between thir twa,
  • an' that either or baith o' them were bogles. An' just at that moment,
  • in Janet's room, which was neist to his, there cam' a stramp o' feet as
  • if men were wars'lin', an' then a loud bang; an' then a wund gaed
  • reishling round the fower quarters o' the house; an' then a' was aince
  • mair as seelent as the grave.
  • Mr. Soulis was feared for neither man nor deevil. He got his tinder-box,
  • an' lit a can'le, an' made three steps o't ower to Janet's door. It was
  • on the hasp, an' he pushed it open, an' keekit bauldly in. It was a big
  • room, as big as the minister's ain, an' plenished wi' grand, auld, solid
  • gear, for he had naething else. There was a fower-posted bed wi' auld
  • tapestry; an' a braw cabinet o' aik, that was fu' o' the minister's
  • divinity books, an' put there to be out o' the gate; an' a wheen duds o'
  • Janet's lying here an' there about the floor. But nae Janet could Mr.
  • Soulis see; nor ony sign o' a contention. In he gaed (an' there's few
  • that wad hae followed him) an' lookit a' round, an' listened. But there
  • was naething to be heard, neither inside the manse nor in a' Ba'weary
  • parish, an' naething to be seen but the muckle shadows turnin' round the
  • can'le. An' then a' at aince, the minister's heart played dunt an' stood
  • stock-still; an' a cauld wund blew amang the hairs o' his heid. Whaten a
  • weary sicht was that for the puir man's een! For there was Janet hangin'
  • frae a nail beside the auld aik cabinet: her heid aye lay on her
  • shouther, her een were steekit, the tongue projected frae her mouth, an'
  • her heels were twa feet clear abune the floor.
  • "God forgive us all!" thocht Mr. Soulis; "poor Janet's dead."
  • He cam' a step nearer to the corp; an' then his heart fair whammled in
  • his inside. For, by what cantrip it wad ill beseem a man to judge, she
  • was hingin' frae a single nail an' by a single wursted thread for
  • darnin' hose.
  • It's an awfu' thing to be your lane at nicht wi' siccan prodigies o'
  • darkness; but Mr. Soulis was strong in the Lord. He turned an' gaed his
  • ways oot o' that room, an' lockit the door ahint him; an' step by step,
  • doon the stairs, as heavy as leed; an' set doon the can'le on the table
  • at the stairfoot. He couldna pray, he couldna think, he was dreepin' wi'
  • caul' swat, an' naething could he hear but the dunt-dunt-duntin' o' his
  • ain heart. He micht maybe hae stood there an hour, or maybe twa, he
  • minded sae little; when a' o' a sudden, he heard a laigh, uncanny steer
  • upstairs; a foot gaed to an' fro in the chalmer whaur the corp was
  • hingin'; syne the door was opened, though he minded weel that he had
  • lockit it; an' syne there was a step upon the landin', an' it seemed to
  • him as if the corp was lookin' ower the rail an' doun upon him whaur he
  • stood.
  • He took up the can'le again (for he couldna want the licht), an' as
  • saftly as ever he could, gaed straucht out o' the manse an' to the far
  • end o' the causeway. It was aye pit-mirk; the flame o' the can'le, when
  • he set it on the grund, brunt steedy and clear as in a room; naething
  • moved, but the Dule water seepin' an' sabbin' doun the glen, an' yon
  • unhaly footstep that cam' ploddin' doun the stairs inside the manse. He
  • kenned the foot ower weel, for it was Janet's; an' at ilka step that
  • cam' a wee thing nearer, the cauld got deeper in his vitals. He
  • commended his soul to Him that made an' keepit him; "and, O Lord," said
  • he, "give me strength this night to war against the powers of evil."
  • By this time the foot was comin' through the passage for the door; he
  • could hear a hand skirt alang the wa', as if the fearsome thing was
  • feelin' for its way. The saughs tossed an' maned thegither, a lang sigh
  • cam' ower the hills, the flame o' the can'le was blawn aboot; an' there
  • stood the corp o' Thrawn Janet, wi' her grogram goun an' her black
  • mutch, wi' the heid aye upon the shouther, an' the girn still upon the
  • face o't--leevin', ye wad hae said--deid, as Mr. Soulis weel
  • kenned--upon the threshold o' the manse.
  • It's a strange thing that the saul o' man should be that thirled into
  • his perishable body; but the minister saw that, an' his heart didna
  • break.
  • She didna stand there lang; she began to move again an' cam' slowly
  • towards Mr. Soulis whaur he stood under the saughs. A' the life o' his
  • body, a' the strength o' his speerit, were glowerin' frae his een. It
  • seemed she was gaun to speak, but wanted words, an' made a sign wi' the
  • left hand. There cam' a clap o' wund, like a cat's fuff; oot gaed the
  • can'le, the saughs skreighed like folk; and Mr. Soulis kenned that, live
  • or die, this was the end o't.
  • "Witch, beldame, devil!" he cried, "I charge you, by the power of God,
  • begone--if you be dead, to the grave--if you be damned, to hell."
  • An' at that moment the Lord's ain hand out o' the Heevens struck the
  • Horror whaur it stood; the auld, deid, desecrated corp o' the
  • witch-wife, sae lang keepit frae the grave an' hirsled round by de'ils,
  • lowed up like a brunstane spunk an' fell in ashes to the grund; the
  • thunder followed, peal on dirlin' peal, the rairin' rain upon the back
  • o' that; an' Mr. Soulis lowped through the garden hedge, an' ran, wi'
  • skelloch upon skelloch, for the clachan.
  • That same mornin', John Christie saw the Black Man pass the Muckle Cairn
  • as it was chappin' six; before eicht, he gaed by the change-house at
  • Knockdow; an' no' lang after, Sandy M'Lellan saw him gaun linkin' doun
  • the braes frae Kilmackerlie. There's little doubt but it was him that
  • dwalled sae lang in Janet's body; but he was awa' at last; an' sinsyne
  • the de'il has never fashed us in Ba'weary.
  • But it was a sair dispensation for the minister; lang, lang he lay
  • ravin' in his bed; an' frae that hour to this he was the man ye ken the
  • day.
  • FOOTNOTES:
  • [5] "To come forrit"--to offer oneself as a communicant.
  • [6] It was a common belief in Scotland that the devil appeared as a
  • black man. This appears in several witch trials, and I think in
  • Law's "Memorials," that delightful storehouse of the quaint and
  • grisly.
  • END OF VOL. V
  • PRINTED BY CASSELL AND COMPANY, LIMITED, LA BELLE SAUVAGE, LONDON, E.C.
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Works of Robert Louis Stevenson -
  • Swanston Edition Vol. 5 (of 25), by Robert Louis Stevenson
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK WORKS OF STEVENSON ***
  • ***** This file should be named 30744-8.txt or 30744-8.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/3/0/7/4/30744/
  • Produced by Marius Masi, Jonathan Ingram and the Online
  • Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
  • Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
  • of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
  • The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.